SCHEDULES

SCHEDULE 1Abolition of starting and savings rates and creation of starting rate for savings

Section 5

Part 1Amendments of ITA 2007

1

ITA 2007 is amended as follows.

2

For section 7 (savings rate) substitute—

“7The starting rate for savings

The starting rate for savings is 10%.”

3

(1)

Section 10 (income charged at main rates: individuals) is amended as follows.

(2)

Omit subsection (1).

(3)

For subsection (2) substitute—

“(2)

Income tax on an individual's income up to the basic rate limit is charged at the basic rate (except to the extent that, in accordance with section 12, it is charged at the starting rate for savings).”

(4)

In subsection (4), omit the entry relating to section 12.

(5)

Insert at the end—

“(6)

The basic rate limit is increased in some circumstances: see—

(a)

section 414(2) (gift aid relief), and

(b)

section 192(4) of FA 2004 (relief for pension contributions).

(7)

See section 21 for indexation of the basic rate limit.”

(6)

Accordingly, in the heading, omit “starting,”.

4

In section 11(2) (income charged at the basic rate: persons other than individuals), omit the reference to section 12.

5

For section 12 substitute—

“12Income charged at the starting rate for savings

(1)

Income tax is charged at the starting rate for savings (rather than the basic rate) on so much of an individual's income up to the starting rate limit for savings as is savings income.

(2)

This is subject to any provisions of the Income Tax Acts (apart from section 10) which provide for income of an individual to be charged at different rates of income tax in some circumstances.

(3)

The starting rate limit for savings is £2,320.

(4)

See section 21 for indexation of the starting rate limit for savings.

(5)

Section 16 has effect for determining the extent to which a person's income up to the starting rate limit for savings consists of savings income.”

6

In section 13 (income charged at dividend ordinary and dividend upper rates: individuals)—

(a)

in subsection (1)(b), omit “starting or”, and

(b)

in subsection (4), omit “starting,”.

7

In section 16(1) (savings and dividend income to be treated as highest part of total income), for the words from “the rate” to the end substitute“—

(a)

the extent to which a person's income up to the starting rate limit for savings consists of savings income, and

(b)

the rate at which income tax would be charged on a person's dividend income apart from section 13.”

8

(1)

Section 17 (repayment: tax paid at basic rate instead of starting rate or savings rate) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for “starting or savings rate” substitute “ starting rate for savings ”.

(3)

Accordingly, in the heading, for “starting or savings rate” substitute starting rate for savings.

9

For the heading before section 20 substitute— “ Indexation of basic rate limit and starting rate limit for savings ”.

10

Omit section 20 (starting rate limit and basic rate limit).

11

(1)

Section 21 (indexation of starting and basic rate limits) is amended as follows.

(2)

Omit subsection (2).

(3)

After subsection (3) insert—

“(3A)

The starting rate limit for savings for the tax year is the amount found as follows.

Step 1

Increase the starting rate limit for savings for the previous tax year by the same percentage as the percentage increase in the retail prices index.

Step 2

If the result of Step 1 is a multiple of £10, it is the starting rate limit for savings for the tax year.

If the result of Step 1 is not a multiple of £10, round it up to the nearest amount which is a multiple of £10.

That amount is the starting rate limit for savings for the tax year.”

(4)

In subsection (4), for “(2) and (3)” substitute “ (3) and (3A) ”.

(5)

In subsection (5)—

(a)

for “section 20” substitute “ sections 10 and 12 ”,

(b)

for “(2) and (3)” substitute “ (3) and (3A) ”, and

(c)

for “starting rate limit and the basic rate limit” substitute “ basic rate limit and starting rate limit for savings ”.

(6)

Accordingly, in the heading, for “starting rate limit and the basic rate limit” substitute basic rate limit and starting rate limit for savings.

12

In section 31(2), omit “or savings rate”.

13

(1)

Section 158 (form and amount of EIS relief) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (2), for “savings rate” substitute EIS rate ”.

(3)

After that subsection insert—

“(2A)

In this Part “the EIS rate” means 20%.”

14

In section 209(3) (withdrawal or reduction of EIS relief: disposal of shares)—

(a)

in the formula, for “S” substitute “ EISR ”, and

(b)

for the definition of “S” substitute “ EISR is the EIS rate. ”

15

In section 210(1)(b) (cases where maximum EIS relief not obtained), for “savings rate for that year” substitute EIS rate ”.

16

In section 213(2) (withdrawal or reduction of EIS relief: value received by investor)—

(a)

in the formula, for “S” substitute “ EISR ”, and

(b)

for the definition of “S” substitute “ EISR is the EIS rate. ”

17

In section 220(1)(b) (cases where maximum EIS relief not obtained), for “savings rate for that year” substitute EIS rate ”.

18

In section 224(2) (withdrawal or reduction of EIS relief: repayments etc of share capital to other persons)—

(a)

in the formula, for “S” substitute “ EISR ”, and

(b)

for the definition of “S” substitute “ EISR is the EIS rate. ”

19

In section 229(1)(b) (cases where maximum EIS relief not obtained), for “savings rate for that year” substitute EIS rate ”.

20

In section 414(2) (relief for gifts to charity), for “section 20” substitute “ section 10 ”.

21

In section 486(1) (how allowable expenses are to be set against trust rate income), in Step 5, for “savings rate” substitute “ basic rate ”.

22

(1)

Section 498 (types of income tax for purposes of section 497) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), in Type 3A, for “savings rate” substitute “ basic rate ”.

(3)

In that subsection, in Type 4, omit “or at the savings rate”.

(4)

In subsection (2A), for “savings rate” substitute “ basic rate ”.

F123

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

24

In section 745(1) (rates of tax applicable to income charged under sections 720 and 727 etc), for “savings rate” substitute “ starting rate for savings ”.

F225

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

26

In section 874(2) (deduction from payments of yearly interest), for “savings rate” substitute “ basic rate ”.

27

In section 889(4) (deduction from payments in respect of building society securities), for “savings rate” substitute “ basic rate ”.

28

In section 892(2) (deduction from UK public dividends), for “savings rate” substitute “ basic rate ”.

29

In section 901(4) (deduction from annual payments made by other persons), for “the applicable rate (see section 902)” substitute “ the basic rate in force for the tax year in which the payment is made ”.

30

Omit section 902 (meaning of “applicable rate” in section 901).

31

In section 919(2) (manufactured interest on UK securities: payments by UK residents etc), for “savings rate” substitute “ basic rate ”.

32

In section 939(2) (duty to retain bonds where issue treated as payment of interest), for “savings rate” substitute “ basic rate ”.

33

(1)

Section 989 (definitions) is amended as follows.

(2)

In the definition of “basic rate limit”, for “20(2)” substitute “ 10 ”.

(3)

Omit the definition of “savings rate”.

(4)

For the definitions of “starting rate” and “starting rate limit” substitute—

““starting rate for savings” has the meaning given by section 7,

starting rate limit for savings” has the meaning given by section 12,”.

34

In section 1014(5)(b)(i) (orders and regulations not subject to annulment), for “starting rate limit and basic rate limit” substitute “ basic rate limit and starting rate limit for savings ”.

35

In Schedule 1 (consequential amendments), omit paragraphs 85(2), 86, 112, 151, 152, 191, 244, 259, 279, 530, 535(2), 536(3), 537, 538, 564, 565 and 592(47) and (49).

36

(1)

Schedule 4 (index of defined expressions) is amended as follows.

(2)

After the entry relating to “EIS” insert—

“EIS rate (in Part 5)

section 158(2A)”.

(3)

For the entries relating to “starting rate” and “starting rate limit” substitute—

“starting rate for savings

section 7

starting rate limit for savings

section 12”.

(4)

Omit the entry relating to “savings rate”.

Part 2Other amendments

TMA 1970

37

TMA 1970 is amended as follows.

38

In section 7(6) (notice of liability to income tax and capital gains tax), for “, the savings rate or the starting rate” substitute “ or the starting rate for savings ”.

39

In section 91(3)(c) (effect of interest on reliefs), for “, the savings rate or the starting rate” substitute “ or the starting rate for savings ”.

ICTA

40

ICTA is amended as follows.

F341

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F342

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

43

In section 552(5)(f)(i) (information: duty of insurers), for “savings rate” substitute “ basic rate ”.

F444

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

45

In section 701(3A) (estates of deceased persons in administration), omit—

(a)

“, the savings rate” (in both places),

(b)

“at the savings rate or”, and

(c)

sub-paragraph (ii) of paragraph (b) and the “and” before it.

46

Omit section 789(2) (double taxation arrangements made under old law: surtax).

FA 1989

47

In section 88(1) of FA 1989 (insurance companies: policy holders' share of profits), for “savings rate” substitute “ basic rate ”.

TCGA 1992

F548

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

FA 1996

49

Omit paragraph 21 of Schedule 6 to FA 1996 (which amends section 789(2) of ICTA).

ITTOIA 2005

50

ITTOIA 2005 is amended as follows.

51

In section 465A(1)(b) (gains from contracts for life insurance etc: amounts for which individuals liable to be treated as highest part of total income), for “savings rate” substitute “ basic rate ”.

52

In section 466(2) (gains from contracts for life insurance etc: personal representatives), for “savings rate” substitute “ basic rate ”.

53

In section 467(7) (gains from contracts for life insurance etc: UK resident trustees), for “savings rate” substitute “ basic rate ”.

54

(1)

Section 530 (gains from contracts for life insurance etc: income tax treated as paid) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for “savings rate” substitute “ basic rate ”.

(3)

Omit subsection (6).

55

In section 535(3) (gains from contracts for life insurance etc: top slicing relief)—

(a)

for “SRL” in both places substitute “ BRL ”, and

(b)

for “savings rate” substitute “ basic rate ”.

56

In section 536(1) (gains from contracts for life insurance etc: top slicing relieved liability-one chargeable event), for “savings rate” substitute “ basic rate ”.

57

In section 537 (gains from contracts for life insurance etc: top slicing relieved liability-two or more chargeable events), for “savings rate” substitute “ basic rate ”.

58

In section 539(5) (gains from contracts for life insurance etc: relief for deficiencies)—

(a)

omit Step 2,

(b)

in Step 3, for “2” substitute “ 1 ” and omit “other”, and

(c)

in Step 5, omit the sentence relating to Step 2.

F659

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

60

In section 679(3) (income from which basic amounts are treated as paid), omit paragraph (b) (apart from the “and” at the end).

61

In section 680(4) (income treated as bearing income tax), for “savings rate” substitute “ basic rate ”.

62

(1)

Section 680A (income treated as savings income or dividend income) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1)—

(a)

for “Subsections (2) and (3) apply” substitute “ Subsection (3) applies ”, and

(b)

omit “the savings rate or”.

(3)

Omit subsection (2).

(4)

In subsection (3), for the words from the beginning to “it” substitute “ The income ”.

(5)

In subsection (4)—

(a)

for “Subsections (5) and (6) apply” substitute “ Subsection (6) applies ”, and

(b)

omit “the savings rate or”.

(6)

Omit subsection (5).

(7)

In subsection (6), for the words from the beginning to “it” substitute “ The income ”.

(8)

Accordingly, in the heading omit “savings income or”.

63

(1)

Schedule 4 (index of defined expressions) is amended as follows.

(2)

For the entry relating to “starting rate” substitute—

“starting rate for savings

section 7 of ITA 2007 (as applied by section 989 of that Act)

starting rate limit for savings

section 12 of ITA 2007 (as applied by section 989 of that Act)”.

(3)

Omit the entry relating to “savings rate”.

F(No.2)A 2005

64

In section 7(5) of F(No.2)A 2005 (charge to income tax on social security pension lump sum)—

(a)

omit paragraph (b), and

(b)

in paragraph (c), for “exceeds the starting rate limit” substitute “ is greater than nil ”.

Part 3Commencement

65

Apart from the amendments made by paragraph 11, the amendments made by this Schedule have effect for the tax year 2008-09 and subsequent tax years.

SCHEDULE 2Capital gains tax reform

Section 8

Rate: consequentials

1

TCGA 1992 is amended as follows.

2

In section 2(7)(a) (chargeable gains and allowable losses), omit “77 or”.

3

Omit section 6 (rates: special cases).

4

In section 13(7A) (attribution of gains to members of non-resident companies: ordering rules), omit paragraphs (b) to (d).

5

Omit sections 77 to 79 (charge on settlor with interest in settlement).

6

Omit section 88(6) (gains of dual resident settlements: sections 77 to 79 to be ignored).

7

(1)

Schedule 4A (disposal of interest in settled property: deemed disposal of underlying assets) is amended as follows.

(2)

In paragraph 7—

(a)

in sub-paragraph (4), for “77(2) to (5) and (8)” substitute “ 169F(2) to (6) ”, and

(b)

in sub-paragraph (5)(c), for “77(2A)(a) or (b)” substitute “ 169F(3A)(a) or (b) ”.

(3)

In paragraph 12—

(a)

for “section 79(1) and (3) to (5A)” substitute “ paragraphs 7 and 8(1), (3), (6) and (7) of Schedule 5 ”, and

(b)

for “sections 77 and 78” substitute “ section 86 ”.

8

(1)

Schedule 4B (transfers of value by trustees linked with trustee borrowing) is amended as follows.

(2)

In paragraph 1(1), omit “77,”.

(3)

In paragraph 3, omit—

(a)

in sub-paragraph (1), “77,”, and

(b)

sub-paragraph (2),

and in the heading before it omit “77,”.

9

Omit paragraph 6(3) of Schedule 4C (attribution of gains to beneficiaries: sections 77 to 79 to be ignored).

10

In paragraph 1(1) of Schedule 5 (construction of section 86(1)(e)), for “sections 3 and 77 to 79” substitute “ section 3 ”.

11

Chapter 4 of Part 2 of FA 2005 (trusts with vulnerable beneficiary) is amended as follows.

12

In section 23(4) (introduction), for “33” substitute “ 32 ”.

13

In section 26(1) (income tax: amount of relief), in the definition of VQTI, after “extra” insert “ income ”.

14

(1)

Section 28 (vulnerable person's liability: VQTI) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), after “total” (in both cases) insert “ income ”.

(3)

In subsection (2), omit “and capital gains tax”.

(4)

In subsection (4), omit paragraph (b) and the “and” before it.

(5)

In subsection (7), omit paragraph (b) and the “and” before it.

15

In section 30 (qualifying trust gains: special capital gains tax treatment), omit subsections (1A) and (3A).

16

(1)

Section 31 (UK resident vulnerable persons: section 77 treatment) is amended as follows.

(2)

For subsections (2) and (3) substitute—

“(2)

The trustees' liability to capital gains tax for the tax year is to be reduced by an amount equal to—

TQTG-VQTGmath

where—

TQTG is the amount of capital gains tax to which the trustees would (apart from this Chapter) be liable for the tax year in respect of the qualifying trust gains, and

VQTG is the amount arrived at under subsection (3).

(3)

That amount is—

TLVA-TLVBmath

where—

TLVB is the total amount of capital gains tax to which the vulnerable person is liable for the tax year, and

TLVA is what TLVB would be if the qualifying trust gains accrued to the vulnerable person (instead of to the trustees) and no allowable losses were deducted from the qualifying trust gains.”

(3)

In the heading, for “section 77 treatment” substitute amount of relief.

17

(1)

Section 32 (non-UK resident vulnerable persons: amount of relief) is amended as follows

(2)

In subsection (2), for the definition of VQTG substitute— “ VQTG is the amount arrived at under subsection (3). ”

(3)

After that subsection insert—

“(3)

That amount is—

TLVA-TLVBmath

where—

TLVB is the total amount of capital gains tax to which the vulnerable person would be liable for the tax year if the vulnerable person's taxable amount for the tax year for the purposes of section 3 of TCGA 1992 were equal to the vulnerable person's deemed CGT taxable amount for the tax year (if any), and

TLVA is what TLVB would be if the vulnerable person's taxable amount for the tax year for the purposes of section 3 of TCGA 1992 were equal to the aggregate of the vulnerable person's deemed CGT taxable amount for the tax year (if any) and the amount of the qualifying trust gains.

(4)

For the purposes of this section the vulnerable person's deemed CGT taxable amount for the tax year is to be determined in accordance with Schedule 1.”

18

Omit section 33 (non-UK resident vulnerable person's liability: VQTG).

19

In section 41(3) (interpretation), for “33” substitute “ 32 ”.

20

(1)

Schedule 1 (non-UK resident vulnerable persons: interpretation) is amended as follows.

(2)

Omit paragraphs 1 and 2.

(3)

Omit paragraph 4.

(4)

In paragraph 7(1), for “paragraphs 4 and 6” substitute “ paragraph 6 ”.

21

In consequence of section 8 and paragraphs 1 to 20, omit—

(a)

paragraphs 27 to 29 of Schedule 17 to FA 1995,

(b)

paragraphs 24 and 25 of Schedule 4 to F(No.2)A 1997,

(c)

in FA 1998—

(i)

section 120, and

(ii)

paragraph 6(1) of Schedule 21,

(d)

section 26 of FA 1999,

(e)

section 37 of FA 2000,

(f)

paragraph 3 of Schedule 11 to FA 2002,

(g)

paragraph 2 of Schedule 21 to FA 2004,

(h)

paragraphs 427 and 428 of Schedule 1 to ITTOIA 2005,

(i)

section 44(2) of FA 2005,

(j)

paragraphs 3, 13, 29, 31 and 48(1) of Schedule 12 to FA 2006, and

(k)

paragraphs 295, 296 and 301 of Schedule 1 to ITA 2007.

22

The amendments made by paragraphs 1 to 21 have effect for the tax year 2008-09 and subsequent tax years.

Abolition of taper relief

23

TCGA 1992 is amended as follows.

24

(1)

Section 2 (chargeable gains and allowable losses) is amended as follows.

(2)

For subsections (4) to (6) substitute—

“(4)

If chargeable gains are treated by virtue of section 87 or 89(2) as accruing to a person in a tax year (“the relevant deemed gains”)—

(a)

subsection (2) has effect as if the relevant deemed gains had not accrued, and

(b)

the amount on which the person is charged to capital gains tax for that year is the sum of—

(i)

the amount given by subsection (2) as it has effect by virtue of paragraph (a), and

(ii)

the amount of the relevant deemed gains.

(5)

In subsection (4) the reference to section 87 or 89(2) is to that section read, where appropriate, with section 10A.”

(3)

In subsection (7), omit—

(a)

in paragraph (b) of the first sentence, sub-paragraph (ii) and the “and” before it,

(b)

in paragraph (c) of the first sentence, “(“the equal tapered amounts”)”, and

(c)

in the words following paragraph (c) in the first sentence, and in the second sentence (in both places), “equal-tapered”.

(4)

Omit subsection (8).

25

Omit section 2A (taper relief).

26

(1)

Section 3 (annual exempt amount) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (5), for the words from “which, after” to the end of paragraph (c) substitute “ which ”.

(3)

In subsection (5C)(c)—

(a)

for “in a year in which any amount falls to be brought into account by virtue of section 2(5)(b)” substitute “ if section 2(4) applies for that year, ”, and

(b)

for “falling to be so brought into account” substitute “ mentioned in section 2(4)(b)(ii) ”.

27

In section 3A(2) (reporting limits)—

(a)

omit paragraph (a), and

(b)

in paragraph (b), for “such a deduction does fall to be made is the amount before deduction of losses or any reduction for taper relief” substitute “ a deduction falls to be made in respect of allowable losses is the amount before the deduction ”.

28

Omit section 13(10A) (attribution of gains to members of non-resident companies).

29

(1)

Section 62 (death) is amended as follows

(2)

In subsection (2A), for “brought into account for that year by virtue of section 2(5)(b)” substitute “ treated as accruing by virtue of section 87 or 89(2) (read, where appropriate, with section 10A) ”.

(3)

Omit subsection (2B).

30

In section 86(1)(e) (attribution of gains to settlors with interest in non-resident or dual resident settlements), for the words after “under section 2(2)” substitute “ if the assumption as to residence specified in subsection (3) below were made; ”.

31

(1)

Section 86A (attribution of gains to settlor in section 10A cases) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (2)—

(a)

for “the tapered section 86(1)(e) amount” substitute “ the amount falling within section 86(1)(e) ”, and

(b)

for “the tapered section 86(1)(e) amounts” substitute “ the amounts falling within section 86(1)(e) ”.

(3)

Omit subsection (2A).

(4)

Omit subsection (2B).

(5)

In subsection (7), for “the tapered section 10A amount” substitute “ the amount (or aggregate amount) falling in accordance with that section to be so attributed ”.

(6)

Omit subsection (7A).

32

Omit section 150D (enterprise investment scheme: application of taper relief).

33

In subsection (8) of section 165 (relief for gifts of business assets), for paragraph (aa) substitute—

“(aa)

“holding company”, “trading company” and “trading group” have the meaning given by section 165A; and”.

34

After that section insert—

“165AMeaning of “holding company”, “trading company” and “trading group”

(1)

This section has effect for the interpretation of section 165 (and this section).

(2)

Holding company” means a company that has one or more 51% subsidiaries.

(3)

Trading company” means a company carrying on trading activities whose activities do not include to a substantial extent activities other than trading activities.

(4)

For the purposes of subsection (3) above “trading activities” means activities carried on by the company—

(a)

in the course of, or for the purposes of, a trade being carried on by it,

(b)

for the purposes of a trade that it is preparing to carry on,

(c)

with a view to its acquiring or starting to carry on a trade, or

(d)

with a view to its acquiring a significant interest in the share capital of another company that—

(i)

is a trading company or the holding company of a trading group, and

(ii)

if the acquiring company is a member of a group of companies, is not a member of that group.

(5)

Activities do not qualify as trading activities under subsection (4)(c) or (d) above unless the acquisition is made, or the company starts to carry on the trade, as soon as is reasonably practicable in the circumstances.

(6)

The reference in subsection (4)(d) above to the acquisition of a significant interest in the share capital of another company is to an acquisition of ordinary share capital in the other company—

(a)

such as would make that company a 51% subsidiary of the acquiring company, or

(b)

such as would give the acquiring company a qualifying shareholding in a joint venture company without making the two companies members of the same group of companies.

(7)

For the purpose of determining whether a company which has a qualifying shareholding in a joint venture company is a trading company—

(a)

any holding by it of shares in the joint venture company is to be disregarded, and

(b)

it is to be treated as carrying on an appropriate proportion of the activities of the joint venture company or, where the joint venture company is the holding company of a trading group, of the activities of that group;

and in paragraph (b) above “appropriate proportion” means a proportion corresponding to the percentage of the ordinary share capital of the joint venture company held by the company.

(8)

Trading group” means a group of companies—

(a)

one or more of whose members carry on trading activities, and

(b)

the activities of whose members, taken together, do not include to a substantial extent activities other than trading activities.

(9)

For the purposes of subsection (8) above “trading activities” means activities carried on by a member of the group—

(a)

in the course of, or for the purposes of, a trade being carried on by any member of the group,

(b)

for the purposes of a trade that any member of the group is preparing to carry on,

(c)

with a view to any member of the group acquiring or starting to carry on a trade, or

(d)

with a view to any member of the group acquiring a significant interest in the share capital of another company that—

(i)

is a trading company or the holding company of a trading group, and

(ii)

is not a member of the same group of companies as the acquiring company.

(10)

Activities do not qualify as trading activities under subsection (9)(c) or (d) above unless the acquisition is made, or the group member in question starts to carry on the trade, as soon as is reasonably practicable in the circumstances.

(11)

The reference in subsection (9)(d) above to the acquisition of a significant interest in the share capital of another company is to an acquisition of ordinary share capital in the other company—

(a)

such as would make that company a member of the same group of companies as the acquiring company, or

(b)

such as would give the acquiring company a qualifying shareholding in a joint venture company without making the joint venture company a member of the same group of companies as the acquiring company.

(12)

For the purpose of determining whether a group of companies is a trading group in a case where any one or more members of the group has a qualifying shareholding in a joint venture company which is not a member of the group—

(a)

every holding of shares in the joint venture company by a member of the group having a qualifying shareholding in it is to be disregarded, and

(b)

each member of the group having such a qualifying shareholding is to be treated as carrying on an appropriate proportion of the activities of the joint venture company or, where the joint venture company is a holding company of a trading group, of the activities of that group;

and in paragraph (b) above “appropriate proportion” means a proportion corresponding to the percentage of the ordinary share capital of the joint venture company held by the member of the group.

(13)

For the purposes of this section the activities of the members of a group of companies are to be treated as one business (with the result that activities are disregarded to the extent that they are intra-group activities).

(14)

In this section—

51% subsidiary” has the meaning given by section 838 of the Taxes Act,

group of companies” means a company which has one or more 51% subsidiaries together with those subsidiaries,

joint venture company” means a company—

(a)

which is a trading company or the holding company of a trading group, and

(b)

75% or more of the ordinary share capital of which (in aggregate) is held by not more than 5 persons (the shareholdings of members of a group of companies being regarded for the purposes of this paragraph as held by a single company),

ordinary share capital” has the meaning given by section 989 of ITA 2007,

qualifying shareholding”, in relation to a company and a joint venture company, means—

(a)

the holding by the company of 10% or more of the ordinary share capital of the joint venture company, or

(b)

(where the company is a member of a group of companies) the holding by the company and the other members of the group (between them) of 10% or more of that ordinary share capital, and

trade” means (subject to section 241(3)) anything which—

(a)

is a trade, profession or vocation, within the meaning of the Income Tax Acts, and

(b)

is conducted on a commercial basis and with a view to the realisation of profits.”

35

Omit section 214C (re-organisations of mutual business: gains not eligible for taper relief) and the heading before it.

36

In section 228(8) (relief for employee share ownership trusts), for “meanings given by paragraph 22 of Schedule A1” substitute “ same meaning as in section 165 (see section 165A) ”.

37

In section 241(3A) (furnished holiday lettings), omit “Schedule A1 (taper relief),”.

38

In section 253(14)(b) (relief for loans to traders), for “meaning given by paragraph 22 of Schedule A1” substitute “ same meaning as in section 165 (see section 165A) ”.

39

Omit section 261C(2)(a) (treating trading loss etc as CGT loss: meaning of “the maximum amount”).

40

In section 279(2)(a) (foreign assets: delayed remittances), omit “(before the application of any taper relief)”.

41

In section 279A(7)(b) (deferred unascertainable consideration: election for treatment of loss), for “any amounts that fall to be brought into account for that year under section 2(4)(b) by virtue of section 2(5)(b),” substitute “ the total amount of chargeable gains treated as accruing in that year by virtue of section 87 or 89(2) (read, where appropriate, with section 10A), ”.

42

In section 279B(1) (provisions supplementary to section 279A), for paragraph (b) substitute—

“(b)

the person would be so chargeable if—

(i)

chargeable gains accrued to the person in the year, and

(ii)

the amount calculated under section 2(2) for the year in relation to the person exceeded the exempt amount for the year (within the meaning of section 3).”

43

(1)

Section 279C (effect of election under section 279A) is amended as follows.

(2)

For subsections (3) and (4) substitute—

“(3)

The amount of the relevant loss that falls to be deducted (in accordance with section 2(2)(a)) from the chargeable gains of the first eligible year is limited to the first year limit.

(4)

The first year limit is the amount calculated under section 2(2) (read, where appropriate, with section 2(4)(a)) for the first eligible year.

(4A)

For the purpose of making that calculation—

(a)

no account is to be taken of the relevant loss, but

(b)

the effect of any previous election under section 279A is to be taken into account.”

(3)

In subsection (6)(c), for “the provisions specified in subsection (8) below” substitute “ amounts of chargeable gains treated as accruing in that later year by virtue of section 87 or 89(2) (read, where appropriate, with section 10A) ”.

(4)

Omit subsection (8).

(5)

Omit subsection (10).

44

Omit section 284B(1) (provisions supplementary to section 284A).

45

Omit Schedule A1 (taper relief).

46

Schedule 4C (transfers of value: attribution of gains to beneficiaries) is amended as follows.

47

(1)

Paragraph 6 (gains attributed to settlor) is amended as follows.

(2)

In sub-paragraph (1), for “the tapered amount of any chargeable gains” substitute “ the amount of any chargeable gains ”.

(3)

Omit sub-paragraph (1A).

48

Omit paragraph 11 (taper relief).

49

Omit Schedule 5BA (application of taper relief to enterprise investment scheme).

50

Omit paragraph 15 of Schedule 7D (enterprise management incentives).

F751

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

52

In paragraph 86(2) of Schedule 7 to ITEPA 2003 (transitionals and savings), omit the second sentence.

53

Omit section 185G(3)(c) of FA 2004 (disposal by person holding taxable interest directly).

54

Omit section 161(5) of ITA 2007 (other tax reliefs relating to EIS).

55

In consequence of paragraphs 23 to 54, omit—

(a)

in FA 1998—

(i)

section 121(1) and (2),

(ii)

section 140(5),

(iii)

Schedule 20, and

(iv)

paragraphs 2, 4, 6(3) and (4), 7 and 9 of Schedule 21,

(b)

in FA 1999—

(i)

section 72, and

(ii)

Schedule 7,

(c)

sections 66 and 67 of FA 2000,

(d)

in FA 2001—

(i)

section 78, and

(ii)

Schedule 26,

(e)

in FA 2002—

(i)

sections 46 and 47,

(ii)

paragraph 5(13) of Schedule 9,

(iii)

Schedule 10, and

(iv)

paragraphs 2(2) and 4 to 6 of Schedule 11,

(f)

in FA 2003—

(i)

section 160, and

(ii)

paragraph 5 of Schedule 29,

(g)

in Schedule 21 to FA 2004—

(i)

paragraphs 3(4) and 8, and

(ii)

in paragraph 10, in sub-paragraph (4), “, 8(2)” and sub-paragraph (6),

(h)

paragraphs 13 and 27 of Schedule 12 to FA 2006, and

(i)

paragraphs 313 and 343 of Schedule 1 to ITA 2007.

56

(1)

The amendments made by paragraph 31(2) and (3) have effect where the intervening year is the tax year 2008-09 or any subsequent tax year.

(2)

The amendments made by paragraphs 41 and 43 have effect where the eligible year is the tax year 2008-09 or any subsequent tax year.

(3)

The other amendments made by paragraphs 23 to 55 have effect in relation to chargeable gains accruing or treated as accruing in the tax year 2008-09 or any subsequent tax year.

Abolition of “kink” test

57

TCGA 1992 is amended as follows.

58

(1)

Section 35 (assets held on 31 March 1982) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (2)—

(a)

for “Subject to the following provisions of this section, in” substitute “ In ”, and

(b)

for “him” substitute “ that person ”.

(3)

After that subsection insert—

“(2A)

For the purposes of corporation tax, subsection (2) above has effect subject to subsections (3) to (8) below (and see also subsections (9) and (10)).”

(4)

In subsection (3)(d), for the words after “any of” substitute “ the no gain/no loss provisions. ”

(5)

In subsection (4), for “him” substitute “ that person ”.

(6)

In subsection (5), for “him” (in both places) substitute “ that person ”.

(7)

In subsection (6), omit—

(a)

paragraph (a),

(b)

in paragraph (aa), “in the case of an election for the purposes of corporation tax,”, and

(c)

in paragraph (b), “in either case”.

(8)

In subsection (7), for “him” substitute “ that person ”.

(9)

In subsection (9), after “effect” insert “ for the purposes of corporation tax ”.

(10)

In subsection (10), insert at the end “ for the purposes of capital gains tax and corporation tax ”.

59

After that section insert—

“35ADisposal of asset acquired on no gain/no loss disposal

(1)

This section applies for the purposes of capital gains tax in relation to a disposal of an asset if—

(a)

the person making the disposal acquired the asset after 31 March 1982 and before 6 April 2008,

(b)

the disposal by which the person acquired the asset (“the relevant disposal”), and any previous disposal of the asset after 31 March 1982, was a disposal on which, by virtue of any enactment, neither a gain nor a loss accrued to the person making the disposal, and

(c)

section 35(2) did not apply to the relevant disposal.

(2)

It is to be assumed that section 35(2) did apply to the relevant disposal (and that section 56(2) applied to the relevant disposal accordingly).”

60

In section 55(5) (indexation allowance: assets acquired on no gain/no loss disposal), for “enactments specified in section 35(3)(d)” substitute “ no gain/no loss provisions ”.

61

In section 73(1) (death of life tenant: exclusion of chargeable gain), for “6th April 1965” substitute “ 31 March 1982 ”.

62

In section 175(2C) (replacement of business assets by member of group), for “enactments specified in section 35(3)(d)” substitute “ no gain/no loss provisions ”.

63

In section 288 (interpretation), after subsection (3) insert—

“(3A)

For the purposes of this Act, the following are “the no gain/no loss provisions”—

(a)

sections 58, 73, 139, 140A, 140E, 171, 211, 215, 216, 217A, 218 to 221, 257(3), 258(4), 264 and 267(2) of this Act;

(b)

section 148 of the 1979 Act;

(c)

section 148 of the Finance Act 1982;

(d)

section 130(3) of the Transport Act 1985;

(e)

section 486(8) of the Taxes Act;

(f)

paragraph 2(1) of Schedule 7 to the Broadcasting Act 1996;

(g)

paragraphs 3 and 9 of Schedule 26 to the Transport Act 2000;

(h)

paragraphs 3, 18, 29 and 32 of Schedule 9 to the Energy Act 2004;

(i)

paragraph 9 of Schedule 4 to the Consumers, Estate Agents and Redress Act 2007.”

64

(1)

Schedule 2 (assets held on 6 April 1965) is amended as follows.

(2)

Omit paragraph 1(3).

(3)

In paragraph 4—

(a)

omit sub-paragraph (6),

(b)

in sub-paragraph (8), for “him” substitute “ the person ”,

(c)

in sub-paragraph (9)—

(i)

for “either section 58 or” (in both places) substitute “ section ”,

(ii)

omit “the spouse or civil partner of the holder, or”, and

(iii)

for “him” substitute “ the holder ”,

(d)

in sub-paragraph (10)(a), for “he” (in both places) substitute “ the person ”, and

(e)

in sub-paragraph (11), omit—

(i)

paragraph (a),

(ii)

in paragraph (b), “in the case of an election for the purposes of corporation tax,”, and

(iii)

in paragraph (c), “in either case,”.

(4)

In paragraph 17(3) omit—

(a)

paragraph (a),

(b)

in paragraph (b), “in the case of an election for the purposes of corporation tax,”, and

(c)

in paragraph (c), “in either case,”.

(5)

Omit paragraph 22.

65

(1)

Schedule 3 (assets held on 31 March 1982) is amended as follows.

(2)

In paragraph 1—

(a)

in sub-paragraph (1)—

(i)

for “Where—” substitute “ For the purposes of corporation tax, where— ”, and

(ii)

for “he” (in each place) substitute “ the person ”, and

(b)

in sub-paragraph (2), for “enactments specified in section 35(3)(d)” substitute “ no gain/no loss provisions ”.

(3)

In paragraph 2(1) and (3), omit “58 or”.

66

In paragraph 7 of Schedule 4 (deferred charges on pre-31 March 1982 gains), for “enactments specified in section 35(3)(d)” substitute “ no gain/no loss provisions ”.

67

In paragraph 7 of Schedule 4ZA (sub-fund settlements), for “sections 104(1) and 109(2)(a)” substitute “ section 104(1) ”.

68

In paragraph 12(b) of Schedule 7A (restriction on set-off or pre-entry losses), for “enactment specified in section 35(3)(d)” substitute “ of the no gain/no loss provisions ”.

69

(1)

FA 1997 is amended as follows.

(2)

In section 89(8)(a) (earn-out rights), for “enactments specified in section 35(3)(d) of that Act” substitute “ no gain/no loss provisions (within the meaning of that Act: see section 288(3A) of that Act) ”.

F8(3)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

70

In consequence of paragraphs 57 to 69, omit—

(a)

in F(No.2)A 1992—

(i)

section 46(2),

(ii)

paragraph 21(2) of Schedule 9, and

(iii)

paragraph 5(9) of Schedule 17,

(b)

in FA 1994—

(i)

paragraph 2(2) of Schedule 24, and

(ii)

paragraph 4(3) of Schedule 25,

(c)

paragraph 2(3) of Schedule 4 to the Coal Industry Act 1994 (c. 21),

(d)

paragraph 3 of Schedule 7 to the Broadcasting Act 1996 (c. 55),

(e)

in the Transport Act 2000 (c. 38)—

(i)

paragraph 2(3) of Schedule 7, and

(ii)

paragraph 37 of Schedule 26,

(f)

paragraph 36 of Schedule 9 to the Energy Act 2004 (c. 20),

(g)

paragraph 33 of Schedule 10 to the Railways Act 2005 (c. 14),

(h)

section 59(2) of F(No.2)A 2005,

(i)

paragraph 14(3) of Schedule 9 to FA 2007, and

(j)

paragraph 11 of Schedule 7 to the Consumers, Estate Agents and Redress Act 2007 (c. 17).

71

The amendments made by paragraphs 57 to 70 have effect in relation to disposals on or after 6 April 2008.

Abolition of “halving relief”

72

TCGA 1992 is amended as follows.

73

In section 36 (reduction of deferred charges where wholly or partly attributable to pre-31 March 1982 increase in value), for “tax” substitute “ corporation tax in respect of chargeable gains ”.

74

(1)

Schedule 4 (deferred charges on pre-31 March 1982 gains) is amended as follows.

(2)

Before paragraph 1 insert—

“Application of Schedule

A1

This Schedule applies only for the purposes of corporation tax.”

(3)

In paragraph 2(5), omit—

(a)

“, 162, 165”, and

(b)

“of this Act and section 79 of the Finance Act 1980”.

(4)

In paragraph 4(2), omit “168 (as modified by section 67(6)),”.

(5)

In paragraph 9(1), omit—

(a)

in paragraph (b), “in the case of a disposal made by, or a gain treated as accruing to, a person chargeable to corporation tax,”,

(b)

paragraph (c), and

(c)

“or (as the case may be) on or before such later date”.

75

In consequence of paragraph 74, omit paragraph 43 of Schedule 21 to FA 1996.

76

The amendments made by paragraphs 72 to 75 have effect in relation to disposals which occur on or after 6 April 2008 and to which Schedule 4 to TCGA 1992 would otherwise apply.

Abolition of indexation allowance

77

TCGA 1992 is amended as follows.

78

At the beginning of Chapter 4 of Part 2 (indexation allowance), insert—

“52AChapter to apply only for corporation tax purposes

This Chapter applies only for the purposes of corporation tax.”

79

In section 53 (indexation allowance), omit—

(a)

subsection (1A), and

(b)

in subsection (4), “, 110A”.

80

(1)

Section 54 (calculation of indexation allowance) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for “the relevant month” substitute “ the month in which the disposal occurs ”.

(3)

Omit subsection (1A).

81

(1)

Section 145 (call options: indexation allowance) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), omit “(subject to subsection (1A) below)”.

(3)

Omit subsection (1A).

82

In consequence of the amendments made by paragraphs 77 to 81, omit section 122(1) to (3) and (5) of FA 1998.

83

The amendments made by paragraphs 77 to 82 have effect in computing gains on disposals made on or after 6 April 2008.

Simplification of pooling etc

84

TCGA 1992 is amended as follows.

85

(1)

Section 104 (share pooling: general interpretative provisions) is amended as follows.

(2)

For subsections (2) and (2A) substitute—

“(2)

For the purposes of corporation tax, subsection (1) does not apply to any securities acquired by a company before 1 April 1982.

(2A)

See also sections 105 to 105B and—

(a)

section 106A in the case of capital gains tax, or

(b)

sections 107 to 114 in the case of corporation tax.”

(3)

In subsection (3), omit “, 110A”.

(4)

After that subsection insert—

“(3A)

For the purposes of capital gains tax section 35(2) applies in relation to a section 104 holding as if the reference to an asset were to any of the securities constituting or forming part of the section 104 holding which were held by the person making the disposal on 31 March 1982.”

(5)

In subsection (5), omit “, 110A”.

86

In section 105 (disposal on or before day of acquisition), after subsection (2) insert—

“(3)

None of the securities which, by virtue of this section, are identified with other securities shall be regarded as forming part of an existing section 104 holding or as constituting a section 104 holding.”

87

(1)

Section 106A (identification of securities: general rules for capital gains tax) is amended as follows.

(2)

After subsection (5) insert—

“(5ZA)

None of the securities which, by virtue of subsection (5) above, are identified with other securities shall be regarded as forming part of an existing section 104 holding or as constituting a section 104 holding.”

(3)

In subsection (6), before “securities” (in each place) insert “ relevant ”.

(4)

Omit subsection (7).

(5)

Omit subsection (8).

(6)

For subsection (10) substitute—

“(10)

In this section—

securities” means any securities within the meaning of section 104 or any relevant securities, and

relevant securities” means—

(a)

securities within the meaning of Chapter 2 of Part 12 of ITA 2007 (accrued income profits),

(b)

qualifying corporate bonds, and

(c)

securities which are, or have at any time been, material interests in a non-qualifying offshore fund, within the meaning of Chapter 5 of Part 17 of the Taxes Act.”

(7)

In the heading, omit “general rules for”.

88

In the heading of section 107 (identification of securities etc: general rules), insert at the end for corporation tax.

89

In the heading of section 108 (identification of relevant securities), insert at the end for corporation tax.

90

(1)

Section 109 (pre-April 1982 share pools) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for “This” substitute “ For the purposes of corporation tax, this ”.

(3)

In the heading, for “Pre-April” substitute Corporation tax: pre-April.

91

For the heading of section 110 substitute Indexation for section 104 holdings for corporation tax.

92

Omit section 110A (indexation for section 104 holdings: CGT).

93

In the heading of section 112 (parallel pooling regulations), insert at the end : corporation tax.

94

(1)

Section 113 (calls on shares) is amended as follows.

(2)

Before subsection (1) insert—

“A1

This section has effect for the purposes of corporation tax.”

(3)

In the heading, insert at the end : corporation tax.

95

(1)

Section 114 (consideration for options) is amended as follows.

(2)

Before subsection (1) insert—

“A1

This section has effect for the purposes of corporation tax.”

(3)

In the heading, insert at the end : corporation tax.

96

In FA 1998, omit—

(a)

section 123(1) and (2), and

(b)

section 125(2) and (3).

97

Chapter 6 of Part 4 of ITA 2007 (losses on disposals of shares) is amended as follows.

98

(1)

Section 147 (limits on share loss relief) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1)(b)—

(a)

in sub-paragraph (i), omit “or a 1982 holding” and “or” at the end, and

(b)

for sub-paragraph (ii) substitute—

“(ii)

at a time earlier than the time of the disposal but after 5 April 2008 formed part of a section 104 holding, or

(iii)

at a time earlier than that time and than 6 April 2008 formed part of an old section 104 holding or a 1982 holding, and”.

(3)

In subsection (7)—

(a)

in the definition of “section 104 holding”, after “1992” insert “ and “old section 104 holding” is a holding that was a section 104 holding within the meaning of that provision as it applied in relation to disposals before 6 April 2008 ”, and

(b)

in the definition of “1982 holding”, insert at the end “ as it applied in relation to disposals before 6 April 2008 ”.

99

(1)

Section 148 (disposal of shares forming part of mixed holding) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (3)(a)(ii), omit “or a 1982 holding”.

(3)

In subsection (5), omit “or 1982”.

(4)

In subsection (9), for “and “1982 holding” have” substitute “ has ”.

100

The amendments made by paragraphs 84 to 99 have effect in relation to disposals on or after 6 April 2008.

Meaning of “tax year”

101

(1)

Section 288 of TCGA 1992 (interpretation) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for the definition of “year of assessment” substitute—

““year of assessment” means tax year;”.

(3)

After that subsection insert—

“(1ZA)

In this Act and other enactments relating to capital gains tax “tax year” means a year beginning on 6 April and ending on the following 5 April; and “the tax year 2008-09” means the tax year beginning on 6 April 2008 (and any corresponding expression in which two years are similarly mentioned is to be read in the same way).”

102

In consequence of the amendments made by paragraph 101, omit—

(a)

the definition of “tax year” in section 41(1) of FA 2005, and

(b)

paragraph 342(2)(i) of Schedule 1 to ITA 2007.

SCHEDULE 3Entrepreneurs' relief

Section 9

Introduction

1

TCGA 1992 is amended as follows.

Main provisions

2

In Part 5 (transfer of business assets), after section 169G insert—

“Chapter 3Entrepreneurs' relief

169HIntroduction

(1)

This Chapter provides relief from capital gains tax in respect of qualifying business disposals (to be known as “entrepreneurs' relief”).

(2)

The following are qualifying business disposals—

(a)

a material disposal of business assets: see section 169I,

(b)

a disposal of trust business assets: see section 169J, and

(c)

a disposal associated with a relevant material disposal: see section 169K.

(3)

But in the case of certain qualifying business disposals, entrepreneurs' relief is given only in respect of disposals of relevant business assets comprised in the qualifying business disposal: see section 169L.

(4)

Section 169M makes provision requiring the making of a claim for entrepreneurs' relief.

(5)

Sections 169N to 169P make provision as to the amount of entrepreneurs' relief.

(6)

Sections 169Q and 169R make provision about reorganisations.

(7)

Section 169S contains interpretative provisions for the purposes of this Chapter.

169IMaterial disposal of business assets

(1)

There is a material disposal of business assets where—

(a)

an individual makes a disposal of business assets (see subsection (2)), and

(b)

the disposal of business assets is a material disposal (see subsections (3) to (7)).

(2)

For the purposes of this Chapter a disposal of business assets is—

(a)

a disposal of the whole or part of a business,

(b)

a disposal of (or of interests in) one or more assets in use, at the time at which a business ceases to be carried on, for the purposes of the business, or

(c)

a disposal of one or more assets consisting of (or of interests in) shares in or securities of a company.

(3)

A disposal within paragraph (a) of subsection (2) is a material disposal if the business is owned by the individual throughout the period of 1 year ending with the date of the disposal.

(4)

A disposal within paragraph (b) of that subsection is a material disposal if—

(a)

the business is owned by the individual throughout the period of 1 year ending with the date on which the business ceases to be carried on, and

(b)

that date is within the period of 3 years ending with the date of the disposal.

(5)

A disposal within paragraph (c) of subsection (2) is a material disposal if condition A or B is met.

(6)

Condition A is that, throughout the period of 1 year ending with the date of the disposal—

(a)

the company is the individual's personal company and is either a trading company or the holding company of a trading group, and

(b)

the individual is an officer or employee of the company or (if the company is a member of a trading group) of one or more companies which are members of the trading group.

(7)

Condition B is that the conditions in paragraphs (a) and (b) of subsection (6) are met throughout the period of 1 year ending with the date on which the company—

(a)

ceases to be a trading company without continuing to be or becoming a member of a trading group, or

(b)

ceases to be a member of a trading group without continuing to be or becoming a trading company,

and that date is within the period of 3 years ending with the date of the disposal.

(8)

For the purposes of this section—

(a)

an individual who disposes of (or of interests in) assets used for the purposes of a business carried on by the individual on entering into a partnership which is to carry on the business is to be treated as disposing of a part of the business,

(b)

the disposal by an individual of the whole or part of the individual's interest in the assets of a partnership is to be treated as a disposal by the individual of the whole or part of the business carried on by the partnership, and

(c)

at any time when a business is carried on by a partnership, the business is to be treated as owned by each individual who is at that time a member of the partnership.

169JDisposal of trust business assets

(1)

There is a disposal of trust business assets where—

(a)

the trustees of a settlement make a disposal of settlement business assets (see subsection (2)),

(b)

there is an individual who is a qualifying beneficiary (see subsection (3)), and

(c)

the relevant condition is met (see subsections (4) and (5)).

(2)

In this Chapter “settlement business assets” means—

(a)

assets consisting of (or of interests in) shares in or securities of a company, or

(b)

assets (or interests in assets) used or previously used for the purposes of a business,

which are part of the settled property.

(3)

An individual is a qualifying beneficiary if the individual has, under the settlement, an interest in possession (otherwise than for a fixed term) in—

(a)

the whole of the settled property, or

(b)

a part of it which consists of or includes the settlement business assets disposed of.

(4)

In relation to a disposal of settlement business assets within paragraph (a) of subsection (2) the relevant condition is that, throughout a period of 1 year ending not earlier than 3 years before the date of the disposal—

(a)

the company is the qualifying beneficiary's personal company and is either a trading company or the holding company of a trading group, and

(b)

the qualifying beneficiary is an officer or employee of the company or (if the company is a member of a group of companies) of one or more companies which are members of the trading group.

(5)

In relation to a disposal of settlement business assets within paragraph (b) of that subsection, the relevant condition is that—

(a)

the settlement business assets are used for the purposes of the business carried on by the qualifying beneficiary throughout the period of 1 year ending not earlier than 3 years before the date of the disposal, and

(b)

the qualifying beneficiary ceases to carry on the business on the date of the disposal or within the period of three years before that date.

(6)

In subsection (5)—

(a)

the reference to a business carried on by the qualifying beneficiary includes a business carried on by a partnership of which the qualifying beneficiary is a member, and

(b)

the reference to the qualifying beneficiary ceasing to carry on the business includes the qualifying beneficiary ceasing to be a member of the partnership or the partnership ceasing to carry on the business.

169KDisposal associated with relevant material disposal

(1)

There is a disposal associated with a relevant material disposal if conditions A, B and C are met.

(2)

Condition A is that an individual makes a material disposal of business assets which consists of—

(a)

the disposal of the whole or part of the individual's interest in the assets of a partnership, or

(b)

the disposal of (or of interests in) shares in or securities of a company.

(3)

Condition B is that the individual makes the disposal as part of the withdrawal of the individual from participation in the business carried on by the partnership or by the company or (if the company is a member of a trading group) a company which is a member of the trading group.

(4)

Condition C is that, throughout the period of 1 year ending with the earlier of—

(a)

the date of the material disposal of business assets, and

(b)

the cessation of the business of the partnership or company,

the assets which (or interests in which) are disposed of are in use for the purposes of the business.

(5)

For the purposes of this Chapter the disposal mentioned in Condition B is the disposal associated with a relevant material disposal.

169LRelevant business assets

(1)

If a qualifying business disposal is one which does not consist of the disposal of (or of interests in) shares in or securities of a company, entrepreneurs' relief is given only in respect of the disposal of relevant business assets comprised in the qualifying business disposal.

(2)

In this Chapter “relevant business assets” means assets (including goodwill) which are, or are interests in, assets to which subsection (3) applies, other than excluded assets (see subsection (4) below).

(3)

This subsection applies to assets which—

(a)

in the case of a material disposal of business assets, are assets used for the purposes of a business carried on by the individual or a partnership of which the individual is a member,

(b)

in the case of a disposal of trust business assets, are assets used for the purposes of a business carried on by the qualifying beneficiary or a partnership of which the qualifying beneficiary is a member, or

(c)

in the case of a disposal associated with a relevant material disposal, are assets used for the purposes of a business carried on by the partnership or company.

(4)

The following are excluded assets—

(a)

shares and securities, and

(b)

assets, other than shares or securities, which are held as investments.

169MRelief to be claimed

(1)

Entrepreneurs' relief is to be given only on the making of a claim.

(2)

A claim for entrepreneurs' relief in respect of a qualifying business disposal must be made—

(a)

in the case of a disposal of trust business assets, jointly by the trustees and the qualifying beneficiary, and

(b)

otherwise, by the individual.

(3)

A claim for entrepreneurs' relief in respect of a qualifying business disposal must be made on or before the first anniversary of the 31 January following the tax year in which the qualifying business disposal is made.

(4)

A claim for entrepreneurs' relief in respect of a qualifying business disposal may only be made if the amount resulting under section 169N(1) is a positive amount.

169NAmount of relief: general

(1)

Where a claim is made in respect of a qualifying business disposal—

(a)

the relevant gains (see subsection (5)) are to be aggregated, and

(b)

any relevant losses (see subsection (6)) are to be aggregated and deducted from the aggregate arrived at under paragraph (a).

(2)

The resulting amount is to be reduced by 4/9ths.

(3)

But if the aggregate of—

(a)

the amount resulting under subsection (1), and

(b)

the total of the amounts resulting under that subsection by virtue of its operation in relation to earlier relevant qualifying business disposals (if any),

exceeds £1 million, the reduction is to be made in respect of only so much (if any) of the amount resulting under subsection (1) as (when added to that total) does not exceed £1 million.

(4)

The amount arrived at under subsections (1) to (3) is to be treated for the purposes of this Act as a chargeable gain accruing at the time of the disposal to the individual or trustees by whom the claim is made.

(5)

In subsection (1)(a) “relevant gains” means—

(a)

if the qualifying business disposal is of (or of interests in) shares in or securities of a company (or both), the gains accruing on the disposal (computed in accordance with the provisions of this Act fixing the amount of chargeable gains), and

(b)

otherwise, the gains accruing on the disposal of any relevant business assets comprised in the qualifying business disposal (so computed).

(6)

In subsection (1)(b) “relevant losses” means—

(a)

if the qualifying business disposal is of (or of interests in) shares in or securities of a company (or both), any losses accruing on the disposal (computed in accordance with the provisions of this Act fixing the amount of allowable losses, on the assumption that notice has been given under section 16(2A) in respect of them), and

(b)

otherwise, any losses accruing on the disposal of any relevant business assets comprised in the qualifying business disposal (so computed, on that assumption).

(7)

In subsection (3) “earlier relevant qualifying business disposals” means—

(a)

where the qualifying business disposal is made by an individual, earlier qualifying business disposals made by the individual and earlier disposals of trust business assets in respect of which the individual is the qualifying beneficiary, and

(b)

where the qualifying business disposal is a disposal of trust business assets in respect of which an individual is the qualifying beneficiary, earlier disposals of trust business assets in respect of which that individual is the qualifying beneficiary and earlier qualifying business disposals made by that individual.

(8)

If, on the same day, there is both a disposal of trust business assets in respect of which an individual is the qualifying beneficiary and a qualifying business disposal by the individual, this section applies as if the disposal of trust business assets were later.

(9)

Any gain or loss taken into account under subsection (1) is not to be taken into account under this Act as a chargeable gain or an allowable loss.

169OAmount of relief: special provisions for certain trust disposals

(1)

This section applies where, on a disposal of trust business assets, there is (in addition to the qualifying beneficiary) at least one other beneficiary who, at the material time, has an interest in possession in—

(a)

the whole of the settled property, or

(b)

a part of it which consists of or includes the shares or securities (or interests in shares or securities) or assets (or interests in assets) disposed of.

(2)

Only the relevant proportion of the amount which would otherwise result under subsection (1) of section 169N is to be treated as so resulting.

(3)

And the balance of that amount, with no reduction under subsection (2) of that section, is accordingly a chargeable gain for the purposes of this Act.

(4)

For the purposes of this section “the relevant proportion” of an amount is the same proportion of the amount as that which, at the material time—

(a)

the qualifying beneficiary's interest in the income of the part of the settled property comprising the shares or securities (or interests in shares or securities) or assets (or interests in assets) disposed of, bears to

(b)

the interests in that income of all the beneficiaries (including the qualifying beneficiary) who then have interests in possession in that part of the settled property.

(5)

In subsection (4) “the qualifying beneficiary's interest” means the interest by virtue of which he is the qualifying beneficiary (and not any other interest the qualifying beneficiary may have).

(6)

In this section “the material time” means the end of the latest period of 1 year which ends not earlier than 3 years before the date of the disposal and—

(a)

in the case of a disposal of settlement business assets within paragraph (a) of subsection (2) of section 169J, throughout which the conditions in paragraphs (a) and (b) of subsection (4) of that section are met, and

(b)

in the case of a disposal of settlement business assets within paragraph (b) of subsection (2) of that section, throughout which the business is carried on by the qualifying beneficiary.

169PAmount of relief: special provision for certain associated disposals

(1)

This section applies where, on a disposal associated with a relevant material disposal, any of the conditions in subsection (4) is met.

(2)

Only such part of the amount which would otherwise result under subsection (1) of section 169N as is just and reasonable is to be treated as so resulting.

(3)

And the balance of that amount, with no reduction under subsection (2) of that section, is accordingly a chargeable gain for the purposes of this Act.

(4)

The conditions referred to in subsection (1) are—

(a)

that the assets which (or interests in which) are disposed of are in use for the purposes of the business for only part of the period in which they are in the ownership of the individual,

(b)

that only part of the assets which (or interests in which) are disposed of are in use for the purposes of the business for that period,

(c)

that the individual is concerned in the carrying on of the business (whether personally, as a member of a partnership or as an officer or employee of a company which is the individual's personal company) for only part of the period in which the assets which (or interests in which) are disposed of are in use for the purposes of the business, and

(d)

that, for the whole or any part of the period for which the assets which (or interests in which) are disposed of are in use for the purposes of the business, their availability is dependent on the payment of rent.

(5)

In determining how much of an amount it is just and reasonable to bring into account under subsection (2) regard is to be had to—

(a)

in a case within paragraph (a) of subsection (4), the length of the period for which the assets are in use as mentioned in that paragraph,

(b)

in a case within paragraph (b) of that subsection, the part of the assets that are in use as mentioned in that paragraph,

(c)

in a case within paragraph (c) of that subsection, the length of the period for which the individual is concerned in the carrying on of the business as mentioned in that paragraph, and

(d)

in a case within paragraph (d) of that subsection, the extent to which any rent paid is less than the amount which would be payable in the open market for the use of the assets.

169QReorganisations: disapplication of section 127

(1)

This section applies where—

(a)

there is a reorganisation (within the meaning of section 126), and

(b)

the original shares and the new holding (within the meaning of that section) would fall to be treated by virtue of section 127 as the same asset.

(2)

If an election is made under this section, a claim for entrepreneurs' relief may be made as if the reorganisation involved a disposal of the original shares; and if such a claim is made section 127 does not apply.

(3)

An election under this section must be made—

(a)

if the reorganisation would (apart from section 127) involve a disposal of trust business assets, jointly by the trustees and the qualifying beneficiary, and

(b)

otherwise, by the individual.

(4)

An election under this section must be made on or before the first anniversary of the 31 January following the tax year in which the reorganisation takes place.

(5)

The references in this section to a reorganisation (within the meaning of section 126) includes an exchange of shares or securities which is treated as such a reorganisation by virtue of section 135 or 136.

169RReorganisations involving acquisition of qualifying corporate bonds

(1)

This section applies where the calculation under section 116(10)(a) has effect to produce a chargeable gain for an individual by reason of a relevant transaction.

(2)

This Chapter has effect as if—

(a)

(despite section 116(10)) the relevant transaction were a disposal, and

(b)

the disposal were a disposal of business assets consisting of the old asset made by the individual at the time of the relevant transaction.

(3)

Where the disposal would be a material disposal of business assets and entrepreneurs' relief is claimed in respect of it—

(a)

the amount resulting under section 169N(1) is to be taken to be the amount of the chargeable gain produced by the calculation under section 116(10)(a), and

(b)

accordingly, the amount arrived at under section 169N(1) to (3) (or a corresponding part of it) is the amount deemed to accrue by virtue of section 116(10)(b) on a disposal of the whole or part of the new asset.

(4)

In this section “new asset”, “old asset” and “relevant transaction” have the meaning given by section 116.

169SInterpretation of Chapter

(1)

For the purposes of this Chapter “a business” means anything which—

(a)

is a trade, profession or vocation, and

(b)

is conducted on a commercial basis and with a view to the realisation of profits.

(2)

References in this Chapter to a disposal of an interest in shares in a company include a disposal of an interest in shares treated as made by virtue of section 122.

(3)

For the purposes of this Chapter “personal company”, in relation to an individual, means a company—

(a)

at least 5% of the ordinary share capital of which is held by the individual, and

(b)

at least 5% of the voting rights in which are exercisable by the individual by virtue of that holding.

(4)

For the purposes of subsection (3) if the individual holds any shares in the company jointly or in common with one or more other persons, the individual is to be treated as sole holder of so many of them as is proportionate to the value of the individual's share (and as able to exercise voting rights by virtue of that holding).

(5)

In this Chapter—

disposal associated with a relevant material disposal” has the meaning given by section 169K,

disposal of business assets” has the meaning given by section 169I(2),

disposal of trust business assets” has the meaning given by section 169J,

employment” has the meaning given by section 4 of ITEPA 2003,

entrepreneurs' relief” has the meaning given by section 169H(1),

holding company” has the same meaning as in section 165 (see section 165A),

material disposal of business assets” has the meaning given by section 169I,

office” has the meaning given by section 5(3) of ITEPA 2003,

ordinary share capital” has the same meaning as in the Income Tax Acts (see section 989 of ITA 2007),

qualifying business disposal” has the meaning given by section 169H(2),

relevant business asset” has the meaning given by section 169L,

rent”, in relation to an asset, includes any form of consideration given for the use of the asset,

securities”, in relation to a company, includes any debentures of the company which are deemed by subsection (6) of section 251 to be securities for the purposes of that section,

settlement business assets” has the meaning given by section 169J(2),

trade” has the same meaning as in the Income Tax Acts (see section 989 of ITA 2007), and

trading company” and “trading group” have the same meaning as in section 165 (see section 165A).”

Other amendments

3

In section 241(3A) (furnished holiday lettings), after the entry relating to section 165 insert— “ section 169S(1) (entrepreneurs' relief), ”.

4

In paragraph 1(1)(b) of Schedule 5B (enterprise investment scheme: re-investment), after “164FA,” insert “ section 169N, ”.

Commencement

5

The amendments made by this Schedule have effect in relation to disposals, reorganisations (within the meaning of section 169Q of TCGA 1992) and relevant transactions (within the meaning of section 116 of TCGA 1992) taking place on or after 6 April 2008.

Transitionals: section 169P(4)(d)

6

Section 169P of TCGA 1992 has effect in a case where the period for which the assets are in use for the purposes of the business began before 6 April 2008 as if the reference in subsection (4)(d) of that section to that period were to so much of it as falls on or after that date.

Transitionals: reorganisations

7

(1)

This paragraph applies where, by virtue of section 116(10)(b), a chargeable gain is deemed to accrue to an individual on a disposal made on or after 6 April 2008 (a “relevant disposal”) by reason of a relevant transaction to which the individual was a party taking place before that date.

(2)

Subject as follows, Chapter 3 of Part 5 (as inserted by this Schedule) has effect as if—

(a)

(despite section 116(10)) the relevant transaction were a disposal of the old asset made by the individual,

(b)

that Chapter applied in relation to that disposal (even though made before 6 April 2008), and

(c)

for the purposes of the time limit for making a claim for entrepreneurs' relief, that disposal were made at the time of the first relevant disposal.

(3)

In sub-paragraph (2) “the first relevant disposal” means the first disposal made on or after 6 April 2008 on which a chargeable gain is deemed to accrue to the individual by reason of the relevant transaction.

(4)

Where entrepreneurs' relief is claimed by virtue of this paragraph—

(a)

the amount of the chargeable gain produced by the calculation under section 116(10)(a), reduced by

(b)

any amount deemed to accrue under section 116(10)(b) and (12) before 6 April 2008 by reason of the relevant transaction,

is to be treated as constituting the amount resulting under section 169N(1).

(5)

Accordingly (but subject as follows), the amount of the chargeable gain which is deemed to accrue by virtue of section 116(10)(b) on the relevant disposal is that arrived at under F9section 169N(1) and (2) (in accordance with sub-paragraph (4)).

(6)

The amount of the chargeable gain which is deemed to accrue by virtue of section 116(10)(b) on the relevant disposal is the amount specified in sub-paragraph (7)—

(a)

except in a case within paragraph (b), where the relevant disposal is not a disposal of the whole of the new asset, and

(b)

in a case in which part of the new asset was disposed of before 6 April 2008, where the relevant disposal is not a disposal of the whole of the part not so disposed of.

(7)

The amount referred to in sub-paragraph (6) is the appropriate proportion of the amount in sub-paragraph (5); and “the appropriate proportion” means the proportion of the new asset, or of so much of the new asset as was not disposed of before 6 April 2008, which is disposed of on the relevant disposal.

F10(7A)

Section 169N(3) to (4B) is to apply to the deemed chargeable gain found in accordance with sub-paragraphs (5) to (7).

(8)

In this paragraph—

  • “new asset”,

  • “old asset”, and

  • “relevant transaction”,

have the meaning given by section 116.

(9)

References in this paragraph to any provision are to be read as they would be if this paragraph formed part of TCGA 1992.

Transitionals: EIS and VCT

8

(1)

This paragraph applies where there is a relevant chargeable event in a case in which the original gain would, apart from Schedule 5B (enterprise investment scheme) or Schedule 5C (venture capital trusts), have accrued before 6 April 2008.

(2)

Relevant chargeable event” means a chargeable event under—

(a)

paragraph 3(1) of Schedule 5B, or

(b)

paragraph 3(1) of Schedule 5C,

which occurs on or after 6 April 2008 in relation to any of the relevant shares held by the investor immediately before the first relevant chargeable event.

(3)

In this paragraph “the first relevant chargeable event” means the first relevant chargeable event in the case.

(4)

The following provisions apply if—

(a)

the relevant disposal would have been a material disposal of business assets had Chapter 3 of Part 5 applied in relation to it (even though made before 6 April 2008), and

(b)

a claim is made on or before the first anniversary of the 31 January following the tax year in which the first relevant chargeable event occurs.

(5)

In this paragraph “the relevant disposal” means—

(a)

where the original gain would have accrued in accordance with section 164F or 164FA, paragraphs 4 and 5 of Schedule 5B or paragraphs 4 and 5 of Schedule 5C (the “original gain event”), the relevant underlying disposal, and

(b)

otherwise, the disposal on which the original gain would have accrued (“the original gain disposal”).

(6)

In sub-paragraph (5)(a) “the relevant underlying disposal” means the disposal (not being a disposal within paragraph 3 of Schedule 5B or 5C) by virtue of which Schedule 5B or 5C has effect.

(7)

Subject as follows, the amount treated as accruing on the relevant chargeable event in respect of the original gain event or original gain disposal is the amount which would be arrived at under section F11section 169N(1) and (2) if—

(a)

the relevant chargeable event were a qualifying business disposal (within the meaning of Chapter 3 of Part 5), and

(b)

the relevant proportion of the postponed gain constituted the amount resulting under section 169N(1);

and “the relevant proportion” means the proportion of the relevant shares which is held by the investor immediately before the first relevant chargeable event.

(8)

The amount treated as accruing on the relevant chargeable event in respect of the original gain event or original gain disposal is that specified in sub-paragraph (9) where the relevant chargeable event is not a chargeable event in relation to all the relevant shares held by the investor immediately before the first relevant chargeable event.

(9)

The amount referred to in sub-paragraph (8) is the appropriate proportion of the amount in sub-paragraph (7); and “the appropriate proportion” means the proportion of the relevant shares held by the investor immediately before the first relevant chargeable event as respects which the relevant chargeable event is a chargeable event.

F12(9A)

Section 169N(3) to (4B) is to apply to the amount treated as accruing in accordance with sub-paragraphs (7) to (9).

(10)

In this paragraph—

chargeable event” is to be construed in accordance with paragraph 3 of Schedule 5B or paragraph 3 of Schedule 5C,

investor” has the same meaning as in paragraph 1 of Schedule 5B or paragraph 1 of Schedule 5C,

the original gain” has the same meaning as in paragraph 1 of Schedule 5B or paragraph 1 of Schedule 5C,

the postponed gain” means so much of the original gain as is treated by paragraph 2(2)(a) of Schedule 5B or paragraph 2(2)(a) of Schedule 5C as not having accrued at the accrual time, and

relevant shares” has the same meaning as in Schedule 5B or Schedule 5C.

(11)

References in this paragraph to any provision are to be read as they would be if this paragraph formed part of TCGA 1992.

SCHEDULE 4Inheritance tax: transfer of nil-rate band etc

Section 10

Amendments of IHTA 1984

1

IHTA 1984 is amended as follows.

2

After section 8 insert—

“8ATransfer of unused nil-rate band between spouses and civil partners

(1)

This section applies where—

(a)

immediately before the death of a person (a “deceased person”), the deceased person had a spouse or civil partner (“the survivor”), and

(b)

the deceased person had unused nil-rate band on death.

(2)

A person has unused nil-rate band on death if—

M>VTmath

where—

M is the maximum amount that could be transferred by a chargeable transfer made (under section 4 above) on the person's death if it were to be wholly chargeable to tax at the rate of nil per cent. (assuming, if necessary, that the value of the person's estate were sufficient but otherwise having regard to the circumstances of the person); and

VT is the value actually transferred by the chargeable transfer so made (or nil if no chargeable transfer is so made).

(3)

Where a claim is made under this section, the nil-rate band maximum at the time of the survivor's death is to be treated for the purposes of the charge to tax on the death of the survivor as increased by the percentage specified in subsection (4) below (but subject to subsection (5) and section 8C below).

(4)

That percentage is—

ENRBMD×100math

where—

E is the amount by which M is greater than VT in the case of the deceased person; and

NRBMD is the nil-rate band maximum at the time of the deceased person's death.

(5)

If (apart from this subsection) the amount of the increase in the nil-rate band maximum at the time of the survivor's death effected by this section would exceed the amount of that nil-rate band maximum, the amount of the increase is limited to the amount of that nil-rate band maximum.

(6)

Subsection (5) above may apply either—

(a)

because the percentage mentioned in subsection (4) above (as reduced under section 8C below where that section applies) is more than 100 because of the amount by which M is greater than VT in the case of one deceased person, or

(b)

because this section applies in relation to the survivor by reference to the death of more than one person who had unused nil-rate band on death.

(7)

In this Act “nil-rate band maximum” means the amount shown in the second column in the first row of the Table in Schedule 1 to this Act (upper limit of portion of value charged at rate of nil per cent.) and in the first column in the second row of that Table (lower limit of portion charged at next rate).

8BClaims under section 8A

(1)

A claim under section 8A above may be made—

(a)

by the personal representatives of the survivor within the permitted period, or

(b)

(if no claim is so made) by any other person liable to the tax chargeable on the survivor's death within such later period as an officer of Revenue and Customs may in the particular case allow.

(2)

If no claim under section 8A above has been made in relation to a person (P) by reference to whose death that section applies in relation to the survivor, the claim under that section in relation to the survivor may include a claim under that section in relation to P if that does not affect the tax chargeable on the value transferred by the chargeable transfer of value made on P's death.

(3)

In subsection (1)(a) above “the permitted period” means—

(a)

the period of two years from the end of the month in which the survivor dies or (if it ends later) the period of three months beginning with the date on which the personal representatives first act as such, or

(b)

such longer period as an officer of Revenue and Customs may in the particular case allow.

(4)

A claim made within either of the periods mentioned in subsection (3)(a) above may be withdrawn no later than one month after the end of the period concerned.

8CSection 8A and subsequent charges

(1)

This section applies where—

(a)

the conditions in subsection (1)(a) and (b) of section 8A above are met, and

(b)

after the death of the deceased person, tax is charged on an amount under any of sections 32, 32A and 126 below by reference to the rate or rates that would have been applicable to the amount if it were included in the value transferred by the chargeable transfer made (under section 4 above) on the deceased person's death.

(2)

If the tax is charged before the death of the survivor, the percentage referred to in subsection (3) of section 8A above is (instead of that specified in subsection (4) of that section)—

(ENRBMD-TANRBME)×100math

where—

E and NRBMD have the same meaning as in subsection (4) of that section;

TA is the amount on which tax is charged; and

NRBME is the nil-rate band maximum at the time of the event occasioning the charge.

(3)

If this section has applied by reason of a previous event or events, the reference in subsection (2) to the fraction

TANRBMEmath

is to the aggregate of that fraction in respect of the current event and the previous event (or each of the previous events).

(4)

If the tax is charged after the death of the survivor, it is charged as if the personal nil-rate band maximum of the deceased person were appropriately reduced.

(5)

In subsection (4) above—

the personal nil-rate band maximum of the deceased person” is the nil rate band maximum which is treated by Schedule 2 to this Act as applying in relation to the deceased person's death, increased in accordance with section 8A above where that section effected an increase in that nil-rate band maximum in the case of the deceased person (as survivor of another deceased person), and

appropriately reduced” means reduced by the amount (if any) by which the amount on which tax was charged at the rate of nil per cent. on the death of the survivor was increased by reason of the operation of section 8A above by virtue of the position of the deceased person.”

3

In section 147 (Scotland: legitim etc), insert at the end—

“(10)

Where the application of subsection (4) in relation to the estate of a person means that too great an increase has been made under subsection (3) of section 8A above in the case of another person, the claim under that section in that case may be amended accordingly by the Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs.”

F134

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

5

In section 239(4) (certificates of discharge: cases where further tax not affected), after paragraph (a) (but before the “or”) insert—

“(aa)

that may afterwards be shown to be payable by reason of too great an increase having been made under section 8A(3) above,”.

6

In section 247(2) (tax-geared penalty), after “liable” insert “ , or for which any other person is liable by virtue of the operation of section 8A above, ”.

7

In section 272 (general interpretation), insert at the appropriate place—

““nil-rate band maximum” has the meaning given by section 8A(7);”.

Amendment of TCGA 1992

8

In section 274 of TCGA 1992 (value determined for inheritance tax), for “that tax” substitute “ the application of that tax to the estate ”.

Commencement

9

(1)

The amendments made by paragraphs 2, 3 and 4(4) have effect in relation to cases where the survivor's death occurs on or after 9 October 2007.

F14(2)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

(3)

The amendments made by paragraphs 5 and 7 are to be treated as having come into force on 9 October 2007.

(4)

The amendment made by paragraph 8 has effect in relation to any ascertainment of value made on or after 6 April 2008.

Modifications for cases where deceased person died before 25 July 1986

10

(1)

Section 8A of IHTA 1984 (as inserted by paragraph 2) has effect in relation to cases where the deceased person died before 25 July 1986 (and the survivor dies on or after 9 October 2007) subject as follows.

(2)

Where the deceased person died on or after 1 January 1985—

(a)

the references in subsection (2) to a chargeable transfer made under section 4 of IHTA 1984 are to a chargeable transfer made under section 4 of CTTA 1984, and

(b)

the reference in subsection (4) to the nil-rate band maximum is to the amount shown in the second column of the first row, and the first column of the second row, of the First Table in Schedule 1 to that Act.

(3)

Where the deceased person died on or after 13 March 1975 and before 1 January 1985—

(a)

the references in subsection (2) to a chargeable transfer made under section 4 of IHTA 1984 are to a chargeable transfer made under section 22 of FA 1975, and

(b)

the reference in subsection (4) to the nil-rate band maximum is to the amount shown in the second column of the first row, and in the first column of the second row, of the First Table in section 37 of that Act.

(4)

Where the deceased person died on or after 16 April 1969 and before 13 March 1975, section 8A applies as if—

(a)

M were the amount specified in paragraph (a) in Part 1 of Schedule 17 to FA 1969 at the time of the deceased person's death,

(b)

VT were the aggregate principal value of all property comprised in the estate of the deceased person for the purposes of estate duty, and

(c)

the reference in subsection (4) to the nil-rate band maximum were to the amount mentioned in paragraph (a).

(5)

Where the deceased person died before 16 April 1969, section 8A applies as if—

(a)

M were the amount specified as the higher figure in the first line, and the lower figure in the second line, in the first column of the scale in section 17 of FA 1894 at the time of the deceased person's death,

(b)

VT were the principal value of the estate of the deceased person for the purposes of estate duty, and

(c)

the reference in subsection (4) to the nil-rate band maximum were to the figure mentioned in paragraph (a).

11

(1)

Section 8C of IHTA 1984 (as inserted by paragraph 2) has effect in relation to cases where the deceased person died before 25 July 1986 but on or after 13 March 1975 (and the survivor dies on or after 9 October 2007) subject as follows.

(2)

Where the deceased person died on or after 1 January 1985—

(a)

the reference in subsection (1) to sections 32, 32A and 126 of IHTA 1984 includes sections 32, 32A and 126 of CTTA 1984,

(b)

the reference in that subsection to section 4 of IHTA 1984 is to section 4 of CTTA 1984,

(c)

the reference in subsection (2) to the nil-rate band maximum includes the amount shown in the second column of the first row, and the first column of the second row, of the First Table in Schedule 1 to that Act,

(d)

the first reference in subsection (5) to the nil-rate band maximum is to that amount, and

(e)

the reference in subsection (5) to Schedule 2 to IHTA 1984 includes Schedule 2 to CTTA 1984.

(3)

Where the deceased person died on or after 7 April 1976 and before 1 January 1985—

(a)

the reference in subsection (1) to sections 32, 32A and 126 of IHTA 1984 includes sections 32, 32A and 126 of CTTA 1984, section 78 of FA 1976 and paragraph 2 of Schedule 9 to FA 1975,

(b)

the reference in that subsection to section 4 of IHTA is to section 22 of FA 1975,

(c)

the reference in subsection (2) to the nil-rate band maximum includes the amount shown in the second column of the first row, and the first column of the second row, of the First Table in Schedule 1 to CTTA 1984 and the amount shown in the second column of the first row, and in the first column of the second row, of the First Table in section 37 of FA 1975,

(d)

the first reference in subsection (5) to the nil-rate band maximum is to that amount, and

(e)

the reference in subsection (5) to Schedule 2 to IHTA 1984 includes Schedule 2 to CTTA 1984, Schedule 15 to FA 1980 and section 62 of FA 1978;

but, if the event occasioning the charge occurred before 27 October 1977, the reference in subsection (4) to the personal nil-rate band maximum is to the amount shown in the second column of the first row, and in the first column of the second row, of the First Table in section 37 of FA 1975 at the time of the deceased person's death.

(4)

Where the deceased person died on or after 13 March 1975 and before 7 April 1976—

(a)

the reference in subsection (1) to sections 32, 32A and 126 of IHTA 1984 includes paragraph 1 of Schedule 5 to that Act, section 126 of CTTA 1984 and paragraph 2 of Schedule 9 to FA 1975,

(b)

the reference in that subsection to section 4 of IHTA is to section 22 of FA 1975,

(c)

the reference in subsection (2) to the nil-rate band maximum includes the amount shown in the second column of the first row, and the first column of the second row, of the First Table in Schedule 1 to CTTA 1984 and the amount shown in the second column of the first row, and in the first column of the second row, of the First Table in section 37 of FA 1975, and

(d)

the reference in subsection (4) to the personal nil-rate band maximum is to the amount shown in the second column of the first row, and in the first column of the second row, of the First Table in section 37 of FA 1975 at the time of the deceased person's death.

SCHEDULE 5Fuel duty: biodiesel and bioblend

Section 14

1

HODA 1979 is amended as follows.

2

(1)

Section 1 (hydrocarbon oil) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for “Subsections (2) to (7) below” substitute “ The following provisions ”.

(3)

After subsection (7) insert—

“(8)

Kerosene” means heavy oil of which more than 50% by volume distils at a temperature of 240oC or less.”

3

(1)

Section 2A (power to amend definitions) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for paragraphs (a) to (e) substitute—

“(a)

biodiesel;

(b)

bioethanol;

(c)

unleaded petrol.”

(3)

Omit subsections (1A) and (1B).

4

In section 6AA (excise duty on biodiesel), after subsection (3) insert—

“(4)

See section 14A (biodiesel used other than as fuel for road vehicles) for rebates on duty charged under this section.”

5

In section 6AB (excise duty on bioblend), for subsections (3) and (4) substitute—

“(3)

The rate per litre of duty under this section on any bioblend is the sum of—

(a)

HO% of the rate per litre of duty under section 6 in the case of heavy oil, and

(b)

BD% of the rate per litre of duty under section 6AA.

(4)

In subsection (3)—

HO%” means the percentage of the bioblend that is heavy oil, and

BD%” means the percentage of the bioblend that is biodiesel,

where the percentages are by volume to the nearest 0.001%.

(4A)

See section 14B (bioblend used other than as fuel for road vehicles) for rebates on duty charged under this section.”

6

In section 8 (excise duty on road fuel gas)—

(a)

in subsection (2), for “in” substitute “ for ”, and

(b)

omit subsection (6).

7

In section 10 (restrictions on use of duty-free oil), omit subsection (8).

8

In section 12 (rebate not allowed on fuel for road vehicles), omit subsection (3).

9

In section 13 (penalties for misuse of rebated heavy oil), omit subsection (7).

10

In section 13AA (restrictions on use of rebated kerosene), omit subsection (5).

11

In section 13AB (penalties for misuse of kerosene), omit subsections (3) and (4).

12

In section 14 (rebate on light oil for use as furnace fuel), omit subsection (9).

13

After that section insert—

“14ARebate on biodiesel used other than as fuel for road vehicles

(1)

This section applies if, at the excise duty point, it is intended that biodiesel on which duty under section 6AA is charged will not be—

(a)

used as fuel for a road vehicle, or

(b)

used as an additive or extender in any substance so used.

(2)

A rebate of duty is to be allowed on the biodiesel at a rate of £0.0969 a litre less than the rate of duty under section 6AA.

(3)

In this section “the excise duty point” has the same meaning as in section 1 of the Finance (No.2) Act 1992.

14BRebate on bioblend used other than as fuel for road vehicles

(1)

This section applies if, on the delivery for home use of bioblend on which duty under section 6AB is charged—

(a)

it is intended that the bioblend will not be—

(i)

used as fuel for a road vehicle, or

(ii)

used as an additive or extender in any substance so used, and

(b)

if the heavy oil used to produce the bioblend was kerosene, it is intended that the bioblend will not be—

(i)

used as fuel for an engine within paragraph (a) or (b) of section 13AA(1), or

(ii)

used as an additive or extender in any substance so used.

(2)

A rebate of duty is to be allowed on the bioblend.

(3)

The rate per litre of the rebate is the sum of—

(a)

HO% of the relevant hydrocarbon rebate rate, and

(b)

BD% of the relevant biodiesel rebate rate.

(4)

“The relevant hydrocarbon rebate rate” is the rate specified in section 11(1) for the kind of heavy oil used to produce the bioblend.

(5)

“The relevant biodiesel rebate rate” is—

(a)

if the heavy oil used to produce the bioblend was kerosene, the rate of duty under section 6AA, and

(b)

otherwise, the rate of the rebate under section 14A.

(6)

Section 6AB(4) (meaning of “HO%” and “BD%”) applies for the purposes of subsection (3).

14CRestrictions on use of rebated biodiesel and bioblend

(1)

Rebated biodiesel or bioblend must not be—

(a)

used as fuel for a road vehicle,

(b)

used as an additive or extender in any substance so used, or

(c)

taken into a road vehicle as fuel or as an additive or extender in any substance used as fuel.

(2)

Rebated bioblend that was produced by mixing kerosene and biodiesel must not be—

(a)

used as fuel for an engine within paragraph (a) or (b) of section 13AA(1),

(b)

used as an additive or extender in any substance so used, or

(c)

taken into the fuel supply of such an engine.

(3)

Subsections (1) and (2) do not apply to a quantity of biodiesel or bioblend if the amount specified in subsection (4) has been paid to the Commissioners, in accordance with regulations, in respect of it.

(4)

The amount is—

Q×Rmath

where—

Q is the quantity (in litres) of the biodiesel or bioblend, and

R is the rate of the rebate under section 14A or 14B at the time of payment.

(5)

In subsection (3) “regulations” means regulations under section 24(1) made for the purposes of this section.

14DPenalties for misuse of rebated biodiesel or bioblend

(1)

If biodiesel or bioblend is used or taken into a road vehicle in contravention of section 14C(1) or (2), the Commissioners may assess the amount specified in section 14C(4) as being excise duty due from any person who—

(a)

used the biodiesel or bioblend, or

(b)

was liable for it being taken into the vehicle,

and may notify the person or the person's representative accordingly.

(2)

Conduct within any of the following paragraphs attracts a penalty under section 9 of the Finance Act 1994 (civil penalties)—

(a)

using biodiesel or bioblend in contravention of section 14C(1) or (2),

(b)

becoming liable for biodiesel or bioblend being taken into a vehicle or the fuel supply of an engine in contravention of section 14C(1) or (2), and

(c)

supplying biodiesel or bioblend, intending that it will be put to a particular use that is a prohibited use.

(3)

A person commits an offence if—

(a)

the person intentionally uses biodiesel or bioblend in contravention of section 14C(1) or (2),

(b)

the person is liable for biodiesel or bioblend being taken into a vehicle or the fuel supply of an engine in contravention of section 14C(1) or (2), and knows that the taking in is in contravention of that provision, or

(c)

the person supplies biodiesel or bioblend, intending that it will be put to a particular use that is a prohibited use.

(4)

Prohibited use” means a use that would contravene section 14C(1) or (2) if no payment under section 14C(3) were made in respect of the biodiesel or bioblend.

(5)

A person guilty of an offence under this section is liable—

(a)

on summary conviction, to—

(i)

a fine not exceeding the statutory maximum or (if it is greater) 3 times the value of the biodiesel or bioblend in question, or

(ii)

imprisonment for a term not exceeding 12 months,

or both, and

(b)

on conviction on indictment, to a fine or imprisonment for a term not exceeding 7 years or both.

(6)

Subsection (5)(a)(ii) has effect as if the reference there to 12 months were to 6 months—

(a)

in this section as it extends to England and Wales, in relation to offences committed before the commencement of section 282 of the Criminal Justice Act 2003 (increase in maximum term that may be imposed on summary conviction of offence triable either way), and

(b)

in this section as it extends to Northern Ireland.”

14

Omit section 17A (repayment of part of duty where biodiesel used otherwise than as road fuel).

15

(1)

Section 20A (mixing: adjustment of duty) is amended as follows.

(2)

For subsections (1) to (4) substitute—

“(1)

Subsections (2) and (3) apply if—

(a)

a relevant substance upon which duty under this Act has been charged is mixed in a pipe-line with another kind of relevant substance upon which such duty has been charged, and

(b)

the mixing is approved mixing (see subsection (5)).

(2)

If the Commissioners are of the opinion that—

(a)

the amount of duty that would be charged on the mixture (if duty were charged at the time of mixing), is greater than

(b)

the total amount of duty charged as mentioned in subsection (1)(a),

they may charge under this section a duty of excise on the mixture of an amount equal to the difference.

(3)

If the Commissioners are of the opinion that the amount mentioned in subsection (2)(a) is less than the amount mentioned in subsection (2)(b), they may make under this section an allowance of an amount equal to the difference.

(4)

Where a charge or allowance is made under this section, any relief or rebate which was permitted or allowed in respect of the charges mentioned in subsection (1)(a) is for the purposes of this Act to be disregarded.

(4A)

In this section “relevant substance” means biodiesel, bioethanol, bioblend, bioethanol blend or hydrocarbon oil.

(4B)

The cases that fall within subsection (1)(a) include cases where one kind of hydrocarbon oil is mixed with another kind of hydrocarbon oil.”

(3)

In subsection (5)(a), for the words from “in a” to “only)” substitute “ relevant substances (or specified kinds of relevant substances) in a pipe-line ”.

16

(1)

Section 20AAA (mixing of rebated oil) is amended as follows.

(2)

Omit subsections (3) and (5).

(3)

In subsection (9), for “, (2)(a) or (3)” substitute “ or (2)(a) ”.

17

In section 20AA(1) (power to allow reliefs), after “12(2)” (in both places) insert “ or 14C(3) ”.

18

Before section 21 (but after the heading “Administration and enforcement”) insert—

“20ACDetermination by Commissioners of composition of substance

(1)

The Commissioners may, for any prescribed purpose, determine in such way as they consider appropriate the proportion of any substance that is biodiesel or bioethanol.

(2)

In subsection (1) “prescribed purpose” means a purpose, prescribed by regulations made by the Commissioners, that relates to any duty under this Act.”

19

In section 23 (prohibition on use etc of road fuel gas on which duty has not been paid), omit subsection (2).

20

(1)

Section 24 (control of duty-free and rebated oil) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for the words from “section 11,” to “section 14(1),” substitute “ any of sections 11 to 14C, ”.

(3)

In subsection (2)—

(a)

for the words from the beginning to “above” substitute “ The regulations ”, and

(b)

for the words from “subsection (2)” to the end substitute “ section 12(2), 13AA(3) or 14C(3) are to be effective for the purposes of those provisions. ”

(4)

In subsection (3)—

(a)

after “hydrocarbon oil” insert “ , biodiesel or bioblend ”, and

(b)

in paragraph (b), for “or rebated light oil” substitute “ , rebated light oil, rebated biodiesel or rebated bioblend ”.

(5)

In subsection (4A)(a), after “oil” insert “ , biodiesel or bioblend ”.

(6)

In subsection (5), after “oil” insert “ , biodiesel or bioblend ”.

21

In section 24A (penalties for misuse of marked oil), omit subsection (4).

22

(1)

Section 27 (interpretation) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1)—

(a)

in the definition of “controlled oil”, after “13AA” insert “ or biodiesel or bioblend in respect of which a rebate has been allowed under section 14A or 14B ”,

(b)

after that definition insert—

““excepted vehicle” means a vehicle that is an excepted vehicle within the meaning of Schedule 1;”,

(c)

after the definition of “hydrocarbon oil” insert—

““kerosene” has the meaning given by section 1(8);”,

(d)

in the definition of “rebate”, after “14” insert “ , 14A, 14B ”, and

(e)

in the definition of “road vehicle”, for the words from “vehicle which” to the end substitute “ excepted vehicle; ”.

(3)

After that subsection insert—

“(1ZA)

For the purposes of this Act, a substance is used as fuel for a vehicle if (and only if) it is used as fuel for—

(a)

the engine provided for propelling the vehicle, or

(b)

an engine which draws fuel from the same supply as that engine.

(1ZB)

For those purposes, a substance is taken into a vehicle as fuel, or as an additive or extender in any fuel, if (and only if) it is taken into the vehicle as part of the supply from which the engine provided for propelling the vehicle draws fuel.

(1ZC)

For those purposes, the following persons are liable for a substance being taken into a vehicle or into the fuel supply of an engine—

(a)

the person who has charge of the vehicle or engine at the time the substance is taken in, and

(b)

the owner of the vehicle or engine at that time (or, if another person is entitled to possession of it at that time, that other person).

(1ZD)

Subsection (1ZC) applies in relation to appliances and storage tanks as it applies in relation to vehicles.”

23

In Schedule 4 (regulations under section 24), omit—

(a)

in paragraph 3, “17A,”, and

(b)

in paragraph 22, the words from “and section 12(3)(a)” to the end.

24

In Schedule 5 (sampling), in paragraph 3(1), omit “of oil”.

25

In consequence of the amendments of HODA 1979, omit—

(a)

section 1(2) of FA 1987,

(b)

section 5(5) of FA 1996,

(c)

in FA 1997—

(i)

section 7(7), and

(ii)

in Schedule 6, paragraph 6(5),

(d)

in FA 2002—

(i)

section 5(3), and

(ii)

in Schedule 2, paragraph 4, and

(e)

in FA 2004—

(i)

section 7(3), and

(ii)

section 10(2).

26

The amendments made by this Schedule are treated as having come into force—

(a)

so far as they confer a power to make regulations, on 19 March 2008, and

(b)

for all other purposes, on 1 April 2008.

SCHEDULE 6Aircraft and boat fuel, heating oil and fuel used for certain engines

Section 16

Part 1Fuel used in aircraft and boats

Aviation gasoline

1

HODA 1979 is amended as follows.

2

In section 1 (hydrocarbon oil), after subsection (3C) insert—

“(3D)

Aviation gasoline” means light oil which—

(a)

is specially produced as fuel for aircraft,

(b)

at 37.8oC, has a Reid Vapour Pressure of not less than 38kPa and not more than 49kPa, and

(c)

is delivered for use solely as fuel for aircraft.”

3

In section 2A(1) (power to amend definitions), before paragraph (a) insert—

“(za)

aviation gasoline;”.

4

(1)

Section 6 (hydrocarbon oil: rates of duty) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for the words from the beginning to “below, there” substitute “ There ”.

(3)

Omit subsections (3) and (4).

5

In section 24(1) (control of use of duty-free and rebated oil), omit “section 6(3),”.

6

In section 27(1) (interpretation), in the definition of “aviation gasoline”, for “section 6(4) above” substitute “ section 1(3D) ”.

7

In Schedule 3 (regulations under section 21), omit paragraph 10A.

8

In consequence of the amendments made by paragraphs 2 to 7, omit—

(a)

in FA 1982, section 4(2), (3) and (7),

(b)

in FA 1990, section 3(5), and

(c)

in FA 1998, section 6(1)(a).

Kerosene used for aviation (avtur)

9

HODA 1979 is amended as follows.

10

In the heading of section 13AB, for “misuse of kerosene” substitute contravention of section 13AA.

11

After that section insert—

“13ACUse of rebated kerosene for private pleasure-flying

(1)

This section applies in respect of kerosene upon which a rebate under section 11(1)(c) has been allowed.

(2)

The kerosene must not be used as fuel for private pleasure-flying.

(3)

If, on the supply of a quantity of the kerosene to a person, the person makes a relevant declaration to the supplier—

(a)

subsection (2) does not apply in relation to that kerosene, and

(b)

the person must pay, in accordance with regulations, the amount specified in subsection (4) to the Commissioners.

(4)

The amount is—

Q×Rmath

where—

Q is the quantity (in litres) of the kerosene, and

R is the rate of the rebate under section 11(1)(c) at the time of the declaration.

(5)

The amount referred to in subsection (3)(b) is to be treated, for the purposes of section 12 of the Finance Act 1994 (assessments to excise duty), as an amount of excise duty.

(6)

Regulations may provide, in cases where kerosene to which subsection (2) applies and other kerosene is taken into an aircraft as fuel, for the order in which the different kinds of kerosene are to be treated (for the purposes of this section and section 13AD) as used.

(7)

In this section—

private pleasure-flying” has the same meaning as in Article 14(1)(b) of Council Directive 2003/96/EC (taxation of energy products etc),

regulations” means regulations under section 24(1) made for the purposes of this section, and

relevant declaration”, in relation to a quantity of kerosene, means a declaration, made in the way and form specified by or under regulations, that the kerosene is to be used for private pleasure-flying.

13ADPenalties for contravention of section 13AC

(1)

This section applies if a person—

(a)

uses a quantity of kerosene in contravention of section 13AC(2), or

(b)

fails to comply with section 13AC(3)(b).

(2)

The Commissioners may assess the amount specified in section 13AC(4) as being excise duty due from the person, and may notify the person or the person's representative accordingly.

(3)

The use or failure attracts a penalty under section 9 of the Finance Act 1994 (civil penalties).

(4)

For the purposes of that section, if this section applies by virtue of subsection (1)(b)—

(a)

the amount referred to in section 13AC(3)(b) is to be treated as an amount of excise duty,

(b)

the penalty for the failure is to be calculated by reference to that amount, and

(c)

the failure also attracts daily penalties.

(5)

If this section applies by virtue of subsection (1)(a), for the purpose of subsection (2) the reference in section 13AC(4) to the time of the declaration is to be read as the time of use.”

Fuel for private pleasure craft

12

HODA 1979 is amended as follows.

13

(1)

Section 14A (rebate on biodiesel used other than as fuel for road vehicles) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1)—

(a)

omit the “or” at the end of paragraph (a),

(b)

after that paragraph insert—

“(aa)

used as fuel for propelling private pleasure craft, or”, and

(c)

in paragraph (b), for “so used” substitute “ used as mentioned in paragraph (a) or (aa) ”.

(3)

After subsection (3) insert—

“(4)

In this section “private pleasure craft” has the same meaning as in section 14E.”

(4)

Accordingly, in the heading, insert at the end etc.

14

(1)

Section 14C (restrictions on use of rebated biodiesel and bioblend) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1)—

(a)

omit the “or” at the end of paragraph (b), and

(b)

after paragraph (c) insert“, or

(d)

(in the case of rebated biodiesel) used as fuel for propelling private pleasure craft or as an additive or extender in any substance so used.”

(3)

After subsection (4) insert—

“(4A)

In subsection (1) “private pleasure craft” has the same meaning as in section 14E.”

15

After section 14D insert—

“14ERebated heavy oil and bioblend: private pleasure craft

(1)

This section applies in respect of rebated heavy oil or bioblend.

(2)

The heavy oil or bioblend must not be used as fuel for propelling private pleasure craft.

(3)

If, on the supply by a person (“the supplier”) of a quantity of the heavy oil or bioblend to another person, the other person makes a relevant declaration to the supplier—

(a)

subsection (2) does not apply in relation to that heavy oil or bioblend, and

(b)

the supplier must pay, in accordance with regulations, the amount specified in subsection (4) to the Commissioners.

(4)

The amount is—

Q×Rmath

where—

Q is the quantity (in litres) of the heavy oil or bioblend, and

R is the rate of the relevant rebate at the time of supply.

(5)

The “relevant rebate” is—

(a)

in the case of heavy oil upon which rebate was allowed under section 13ZA or 13AA(1), the rebate under that provision,

(b)

in the case of heavy oil to which paragraph (a) does not apply, the rebate under section 11 for that kind of heavy oil, and

(c)

in the case of bioblend, the rebate under section 11(1)(b).

(6)

The amount referred to in subsection (3)(b) is to be treated, for the purposes of section 12 of the Finance Act 1994 (assessments to excise duty), as an amount of excise duty.

(7)

Regulations may provide, in cases where heavy oil or bioblend to which subsection (2) applies and other heavy oil or bioblend is taken into a craft as fuel, for the order in which the different substances are to be treated (for the purposes of this section and section 14F) as used.

(8)

In this section—

private pleasure craft” has the same meaning as in Article 14(1)(c) of Council Directive 2003/96/EC (taxation of energy products etc),

regulations” means regulations under section 24(1) made for the purposes of this section, and

relevant declaration”, in relation to a quantity of heavy oil or bioblend, means a declaration, made in the way and form specified by or under regulations, that the heavy oil or bioblend is to be used as fuel for propelling private pleasure craft.

14FPenalties for contravention of section 14E

(1)

This section applies if a person—

(a)

uses a quantity of rebated heavy oil or bioblend in contravention of section 14E(2), or

(b)

fails to comply with section 14E(3)(b).

(2)

The Commissioners may assess the amount specified in section 14E(4) as being excise duty due from the person, and may notify the person or the person's representative accordingly.

(3)

The use or failure attracts a penalty under section 9 of the Finance Act 1994 (civil penalties).

(4)

For the purposes of that section, if this section applies by virtue of subsection (1)(b)—

(a)

the amount referred to in section 14E(3)(b) is to be treated as an amount of excise duty,

(b)

the penalty for the failure is to be calculated by reference to that amount, and

(c)

the failure also attracts daily penalties.

(5)

If this section applies by virtue of subsection (1)(a), for the purpose of subsection (2) the reference in section 14E(4) to the time of supply is to be read as the time of use.”

16

In section 24(1) (control of use of duty-free and rebated oil), for “14C” substitute “ 14E ”.

Consequential amendments

17

FA 1994 is amended as follows.

18

In section 12A(3)(c) (other assessment relating to excise duty matters)—

(a)

after “13AB,” insert “ 13AD, ”, and

(b)

after “14,” insert “ 14F, ”.

19

In section 12B(2)(f) (section 12A: supplementary provisions)—

(a)

after “13AB,” insert “ 13AD, ”, and

(b)

after “14” insert “ , 14F ”.

20

In section 14(1)(ba) (requirement for review of a decision)—

(a)

after “13AB,” insert “ 13AD, ”, and

(b)

after “14,” insert “ 14F, ”.

Commencement etc

21

The amendments made by this Part of this Schedule come into force on 1 November 2008.

22

But section 13AC(2) of HODA 1979 does not apply to kerosene upon which a rebate under section 11(1)(c) of that Act was allowed before that date if it was supplied for use as fuel for an aircraft before that date.

23

And section 14E(2) of that Act does not apply to heavy oil or bioblend upon which a rebate was allowed before that date if it was supplied for use as fuel for a craft before that date.

Part 2Heavy oil used for heating or as fuel for certain engines

Amendments of HODA 1979

24

HODA 1979 is amended as follows.

25

In section 11(1) (rebate on heavy oil), for “13, 13AA and 13AB below” substitute “ 12(1), 13ZA and 13AA(1) ”.

26

In section 12(2) (rebated heavy oil not to be used as fuel for road vehicles), after “above or” insert “ section 13ZA or ”.

27

In the heading of section 13 (penalties for misuse of rebated heavy oil), for “misuse of rebated heavy oil” substitute contravention of section 12.

28

After that section insert—

“13ZARebate on certain heavy oil used for heating etc

(1)

This section applies if, on the delivery of heavy oil (other than kerosene) upon which rebate at the rate mentioned in section 11(1)(c) would otherwise be allowed, it is intended to use the heavy oil—

(a)

for heating, or

(b)

as fuel for an engine.

(2)

Rebate is to be allowed on the heavy oil at the rate mentioned in section 11(1)(a) (rather than at the rate mentioned in section 11(1)(c)).

(3)

Nothing in this section applies in relation to heavy oil to which section 12(1) applies.

13ZBRestrictions on supply of certain heavy oil for heating etc

(1)

If a person supplies relevant heavy oil, having reason to believe that it will be put to a particular use that is a prohibited use—

(a)

the Commissioners may assess the amount specified in subsection (3) as being excise duty due from the person (and may notify the person or the person's representative accordingly), and

(b)

the supply of the heavy oil is conduct that attracts a penalty under section 9 of the Finance Act 1994 (civil penalties).

(2)

Subsection (1) does not apply in relation to a quantity of relevant heavy oil if (before the time of supply) the amount specified in subsection (3) has been paid to the Commissioners, in accordance with regulations, in respect of it.

(3)

The amount is—

Q×RRFOmath

where—

Q is the quantity (in litres) of the relevant heavy oil, and

RRFO is the rate for rebated fuel oil at the time of payment.

(4)

For the purposes of subsection (3) the rate for rebated fuel oil at any time is—

(a)

the rate of duty under section 6(1A)(c) at that time, minus

(b)

the rate of rebate allowable under section 11(1)(a) at that time.

(5)

In this section—

prohibited use” means—

(a)

use for heating, or

(b)

use as fuel for an engine (except where such use would amount to use as fuel for a road vehicle),

regulations” means regulations under section 24(1) made for the purposes of this section, and

relevant heavy oil” means heavy oil, other than kerosene, upon which rebate at the rate mentioned in section 11(1)(c) has been allowed.

(6)

Nothing in this section applies to a person who supplies relevant heavy oil for re-processing.”

29

In section 20AAA(6)(b) (mixing of rebated oil), before “13AA” insert “ 13ZA or ”.

30

In section 20AA(1) (power to allow reliefs), after “12(2)” (in both places) insert “ , 13ZB(2) ”.

31

In section 24(2) (control of use of duty-free and rebated oil), after “12(2),” insert “ 13ZB(2), ”.

32

In section 27(1) (interpretation), in the definition of “rebate”, after “11,” insert “ 13ZA, ”.

Amendments of FA 1994

33

FA 1994 is amended as follows.

34

In section 12A(3)(c) (other assessment relating to excise duty matters), after “13,” insert “ 13ZB, ”.

35

In section 12B(2)(f) (section 12A: supplementary provisions), after “13,” insert “ 13ZB, ”.

36

In section 14(1)(ba) (requirement for review of a decision), after “13,” insert “ 13ZB, ”.

Commencement

37

The amendments made by this Part of this Schedule come into force on 1 November 2008.

SCHEDULE 7Remittance basis

Section 25

Part 1Main provisions

Remittance basis_general

1

In Part 14 of ITA 2007 (income tax liability: miscellaneous rules), before Chapter 1 insert—

“Chapter A1Remittance basis

Introduction

809AOverview of Chapter

This Chapter provides for an alternative basis of charge in the case of individuals who are not domiciled in the United Kingdom or are not ordinarily UK resident.

Application of remittance basis

809BClaim for remittance basis to apply

(1)

This section applies to an individual for a tax year if the individual—

(a)

is UK resident in that year,

(b)

is not domiciled in the United Kingdom in that year or is not ordinarily UK resident in that year, and

(c)

makes a claim under this section for that year.

(2)

The claim must contain one or both of the following statements—

(a)

that the individual is not domiciled in the United Kingdom in that year;

(b)

that the individual is not ordinarily UK resident in that year.

(3)

Sections 42 and 43 of TMA 1970 (procedure and time limit for making claims), except section 42(1A) of that Act, apply in relation to a claim under this section as they apply in relation to a claim for relief.

809CClaim for remittance basis by long-term UK resident: nomination of foreign income and gains to which section 809H(2) is to apply

(1)

This section applies to an individual for a tax year if the individual—

(a)

is aged 18 or over in that year, and

(b)

has been UK resident in at least 7 of the 9 tax years immediately preceding that year.

(2)

A claim under section 809B by the individual for that year must contain a nomination of the income or chargeable gains of the individual for that year to which section 809H(2) is to apply.

(3)

The income or chargeable gains nominated must be part (or all) of the individual's foreign income and gains for that year.

(4)

The income and chargeable gains nominated must be such that the relevant tax increase does not exceed £30,000.

(5)

The relevant tax increase” is—

(a)

the total amount of income tax and capital gains tax payable by the individual for that year, minus

(b)

the total amount of income tax and capital gains tax that would be payable by the individual for that year apart from section 809H(2).

(6)

See section 809Z7 for the meaning of an individual's foreign income and gains for a tax year.

809DApplication of remittance basis without claim where unremitted foreign income and gains under £2,000

(1)

This section applies to an individual for a tax year if—

(a)

the individual is UK resident in that year,

(b)

the individual is not domiciled in the United Kingdom in that year or is not ordinarily UK resident in that year, and

(c)

the amount of the individual's unremitted foreign income and gains for that year is less than £2,000.

(2)

The amount of an individual's “unremitted” foreign income and gains for a tax year is—

(a)

the total amount of what would (if this section applied) be the individual's foreign income and gains for that year, minus

(b)

the total amount of those income and gains that are remitted to the United Kingdom in that year.

809EApplication of remittance basis without claim: other cases

(1)

This section applies to an individual for a tax year if—

(a)

the individual is UK resident in that year,

(b)

the individual is not domiciled in the United Kingdom in that year or is not ordinarily UK resident in that year,

(c)

the individual has no UK income or gains for that year,

(d)

no relevant income or gains are remitted to the United Kingdom in that year, and

(e)

either—

(i)

the individual has been UK resident in not more than 6 of the 9 tax years immediately preceding that year, or

(ii)

the individual is under 18 throughout that year.

(2)

For the purposes of subsection (1)(c) the individual's UK income and gains for the tax year are the individual's income and chargeable gains for that year other than what would (if this section applied) be the individual's foreign income and gains for that year.

(3)

For the purposes of subsection (1)(d) relevant income and gains are—

(a)

what would (if this section applied) be the individual's foreign income and gains for the tax year mentioned in subsection (1), and

(b)

the individual's foreign income and gains for every other tax year for which section 809B or 809D or this section applies to the individual.

Effect of section 809B, 809D or 809E applying

809FEffect on what is chargeable

(1)

This section applies if section 809B, 809D or 809E applies to an individual for a tax year.

(2)

The individual's relevant foreign earnings for that year are charged in accordance with section 22 or 26 of ITEPA 2003.

(3)

The individual's relevant foreign income for that year is charged in accordance with section 832 of ITTOIA 2005.

(4)

If the individual is not domiciled in the United Kingdom in that year, the individual's foreign chargeable gains for that year are charged in accordance with section 12 of TCGA 1992.

(5)

For the effect on amounts which count as employment income of the individual under certain provisions of Part 7 of ITEPA 2003 (employment-related securities), see Chapter 5A of Part 2 of that Act.

(6)

Nothing in this section applies in relation to nominated income or chargeable gains (see section 809H).

809GClaim for remittance basis: effect on allowances etc

(1)

This section applies if section 809B (claim for remittance basis to apply) applies to an individual for a tax year.

(2)

For that year, the individual is not entitled to—

(a)

any allowance under Chapter 2 of Part 3 (personal allowance and blind person's allowance),

(b)

any tax reduction under Chapter 3 of that Part (tax reductions for married couples and civil partners), or

(c)

any relief under section 457, 458 or 459 (payments for life insurance etc).

(3)

See also section 3(1A) of TCGA 1992 (no annual exempt amount for chargeable gains).

809HClaim for remittance basis by long-term UK resident: charge

(1)

This section applies if—

(a)

section 809B (claim for remittance basis to apply) applies to an individual for a tax year (“the relevant tax year”),

(b)

the individual is aged 18 or over in the relevant tax year, and

(c)

the individual has been UK resident in at least 7 of the 9 tax years immediately preceding the relevant tax year.

(2)

Income tax is charged on nominated income, and capital gains tax is charged on nominated chargeable gains, as if section 809B did not apply to the individual for the relevant tax year (and neither did section 809D).

(3)

Nominated” income or chargeable gains means income or chargeable gains nominated under section 809C in the individual's claim under section 809B for the relevant tax year.

(4)

If the relevant tax increase would otherwise be less than £30,000, subsection (2) has effect as if—

(a)

in addition to the income and gains actually nominated under section 809C in the individual's claim under section 809B for the relevant tax year, an amount of income had been nominated so as to make the relevant tax increase equal to £30,000, and

(b)

the individual's income for that year were such that such a nomination could have been made (if that is not the case).

(5)

The relevant tax increase” is—

(a)

the total amount of income tax and capital gains tax payable by the individual for the relevant tax year, minus

(b)

the total amount of income tax and capital gains tax that would be payable by the individual for the relevant tax year apart from subsection (2).

(6)

Nothing in subsection (4) affects what is regarded, for the purposes of section 809I or 809J, as nominated under section 809C.

809IRemittance basis charge: income and gains treated as remitted

(1)

This section applies if—

(a)

any of an individual's nominated income and gains is remitted to the United Kingdom in a tax year, and

(b)

any of the individual's remittance basis income and gains has not been remitted to the United Kingdom in or before that year.

(2)

Income tax and capital gains tax are charged, for that year and subsequent tax years, as if the income and chargeable gains treated under section 809J as remitted to the United Kingdom by the individual in that tax year had been so remitted (and income and chargeable gains of the individual that were actually remitted in that year had not been).

(3)

An individual's “nominated income and gains” are the total income and chargeable gains nominated by the individual under section 809C for the tax year mentioned in subsection (1)(a) or any earlier tax year.

(4)

An individual's “remittance basis income and gains” are the foreign income and gains of the individual for all the tax years (up to and including the tax year mentioned in subsection (1)(a)) for which section 809B, 809D or 809E applies to the individual, apart from the individual's nominated income and gains.

809JSection 809I: order of remittances

(1)

If section 809I applies, the following steps are to be taken for the purpose of determining the income or gains treated in a tax year (“the relevant tax year”) as remitted to the United Kingdom by the individual.

Step 1

Find the total amount of—

(a)

the individual's nominated income and gains, and

(b)

the individual's remittance basis income and gains,

that have been remitted to the United Kingdom in the relevant tax year.

This amount is “the relevant amount”.

Step 2

Find the amount of foreign income and gains of the individual for the relevant tax year (other than income or chargeable gains nominated under section 809C) that is within each of the categories of income and gains in paragraphs (a) to (h) of subsection (2).

If none of sections 809B, 809D and 809E apply to the individual for that year, treat those amounts as nil (and accordingly go to step 6).

Step 3

Find the earliest paragraph for which the amount determined under step 2 is not nil.

If that amount does not exceed the relevant amount, treat the individual as having remitted the income or gains within that paragraph (and for that tax year).

Otherwise, treat the individual as having remitted the relevant proportion of each kind of income or gains within that paragraph (and for that tax year).

“The relevant proportion” is the relevant amount divided by the amount determined under step 2 for that paragraph.

Step 4

Reduce the relevant amount by the amount taken into account under step 3.

Step 5

If the relevant amount (as reduced under step 4) is not nil, start again at step 3.

In step 3, read the reference to the earliest paragraph of the kind mentioned there as a reference to the earliest such paragraph which has not previously been taken into account under that step.

Step 6

If the relevant amount (as reduced) is not nil once steps 3 to 5 have been undertaken in relation to all paragraphs of subsection (2) for which the amount determined under step 2 is not nil, start again at step 2.

In step 2, read the reference to the foreign income and gains of the individual for the relevant tax year as a reference to such of the foreign income and gains of the individual for the appropriate tax year as had not been remitted by the beginning of the relevant tax year.

The appropriate tax year” is the latest tax year which is—

(a)

before the last tax year for which step 2 has been undertaken, and

(b)

a tax year for which section 809B, 809D or 809E applies to the individual.

(2)

The kinds of income and gains are—

(a)

relevant foreign earnings (other than those subject to a foreign tax),

(b)

foreign specific employment income (other than income subject to a foreign tax),

(c)

relevant foreign income (other than income subject to a foreign tax),

(d)

foreign chargeable gains (other than gains subject to a foreign tax),

(e)

relevant foreign earnings subject to a foreign tax,

(f)

foreign specific employment income subject to a foreign tax,

(g)

relevant foreign income subject to a foreign tax, and

(h)

foreign chargeable gains subject to a foreign tax.

(3)

In this section the individual's “nominated income and gains” are the total income and chargeable gains nominated by the individual under section 809C for the relevant tax year or any earlier tax year.

(4)

In step 1 of subsection (1) the individual's “remittance basis income and gains” are the foreign income and gains of the individual for all the tax years (up to and including the relevant tax year) for which section 809B, 809D or 809E applies to the individual, apart from the individual's nominated income and gains.

(5)

In step 6 of subsection (1) the reference to income or gains being remitted is—

(a)

as respects any tax year before section 809I applies, to income or gains being remitted to the United Kingdom, and

(b)

as respects any tax year in relation to which that section applies, to income or gains treated under this section as so remitted.

(6)

In subsection (2) “foreign tax” means any tax chargeable under the law of a territory outside the United Kingdom.

Remittance of income and gains: introduction

809KSections 809L to 809Z6: introduction

(1)

Sections 809L to 809Z6 apply for the purposes of—

(a)

this Chapter,

(b)

sections 22 and 26 of ITEPA 2003 (relevant foreign earnings charged on remittance basis),

(c)

section 41A of that Act (specific employment income from securities etc charged on remittance basis),

(d)

section 832 of ITTOIA 2005 (relevant foreign income charged on remittance basis), and

(e)

section 12 of TCGA 1992 (foreign chargeable gains charged on remittance basis).

(2)

Those sections—

(a)

explain what is meant by income or chargeable gains being “remitted to the United Kingdom” (sections 809L to 809O),

(b)

provide for the calculation of the amount remitted (section 809P),

(c)

contain rules for attributing transfers from mixed funds to particular kinds of income and capital (sections 809Q to 809S),

(d)

contain supplementary provision for certain cases (sections 809T and 809U), and

(e)

treat income or chargeable gains as not remitted to the United Kingdom in certain cases (sections 809V to 809Z6).

Remittance of income and gains: meaning of “remitted to the United Kingdom”

809LMeaning of “remitted to the United Kingdom”

(1)

An individual's income is, or chargeable gains are, “remitted to the United Kingdom” if—

(a)

conditions A and B are met,

(b)

condition C is met, or

(c)

condition D is met.

(2)

Condition A is that—

(a)

money or other property is brought to, or received or used in, the United Kingdom by or for the benefit of a relevant person, or

(b)

a service is provided in the United Kingdom to or for the benefit of a relevant person.

(3)

Condition B is that—

(a)

the property, service or consideration for the service is (wholly or in part) the income or chargeable gains,

(b)

the property, service or consideration—

(i)

derives (wholly or in part, and directly or indirectly) from the income or chargeable gains, and

(ii)

in the case of property or consideration, is property of or consideration given by a relevant person,

(c)

the income or chargeable gains are used outside the United Kingdom (directly or indirectly) in respect of a relevant debt, or

(d)

anything deriving (wholly or in part, and directly or indirectly) from the income or chargeable gains is used as mentioned in paragraph (c).

(4)

Condition C is that qualifying property of a gift recipient—

(a)

is brought to, or received or used in, the United Kingdom, and is enjoyed by a relevant person,

(b)

is consideration for a service that is enjoyed in the United Kingdom by a relevant person, or

(c)

is used outside the United Kingdom (directly or indirectly) in respect of a relevant debt.

(5)

Condition D is that property of a person other than a relevant person (apart from qualifying property of a gift recipient)—

(a)

is brought to, or received or used in, the United Kingdom, and is enjoyed by a relevant person,

(b)

is consideration for a service that is enjoyed in the United Kingdom by a relevant person, or

(c)

is used outside the United Kingdom (directly or indirectly) in respect of a relevant debt,

in circumstances where there is a connected operation.

(6)

In a case where subsection (4)(a) or (b) or (5)(a) or (b) applies to the importation or use of property, the income or chargeable gains are taken to be remitted at the time the property or service is first enjoyed by a relevant person by virtue of that importation or use.

(7)

In this section “relevant debt” means a debt that relates (wholly or in part, and directly or indirectly) to—

(a)

property falling within subsection (2)(a),

(b)

a service falling within subsection (2)(b),

(c)

qualifying property dealt with as mentioned in subsection (4)(a),

(d)

a service falling within subsection (4)(b),

(e)

qualifying property dealt with as mentioned in subsection (5)(a), or

(f)

a service falling within subsection (5)(b).

(8)

For the purposes of this section, the reference to a debt that relates to property or a service includes a debt for interest on money lent, where the lending relates to the property or service.

(9)

The cases in which income or chargeable gains are used in respect of a debt include cases where income or chargeable gains are used to pay interest on the debt.

(10)

This section is subject to sections 809V to 809Z6 (property treated as not remitted to the United Kingdom).

809MMeaning of “relevant person”

(1)

This section applies for the purposes of sections 809L, 809N and 809O.

(2)

A “relevant person” is—

(a)

the individual,

(b)

the individual's husband or wife,

(c)

the individual's civil partner,

(d)

a child or grandchild of a person falling within any of paragraphs (a) to (c), if the child or grandchild has not reached the age of 18,

(e)

a close company in which a person falling within any other paragraph of this subsection is a participator,

(f)

a company in which a person falling within any other paragraph of this subsection is a participator, and which would be a close company if it were resident in the United Kingdom,

(g)

the trustees of a settlement of which a person falling within any other paragraph of this subsection is a beneficiary, or

(h)

a body connected with such a settlement.

(3)

For that purpose—

(a)

a man and woman living together as husband and wife are treated as if they were husband and wife,

(b)

two people of the same sex living together as if they were civil partners of each other are treated as if they were civil partners of each other,

(c)

close company” has the same meaning as in the Corporation Tax Acts (see sections 414 and 415 of ICTA),

(d)

settlement” and “settlor” have the same meaning as in Chapter 2 of Part 9,

(e)

beneficiary”, in relation to a settlement, means any person who receives, or may receive, any benefit under or by virtue of the settlement,

(f)

trustee” has the same meaning as in section 993 (see, in particular, section 994(3)), and

(g)

a body is “connected with” a settlement if the body falls within section 993(3)(c), (d), (e) or (f) as regards the settlement.

809NSection 809L: gift recipients, qualifying property and enjoyment

(1)

This section applies for the purposes of determining whether or not income or chargeable gains of an individual are remitted to the United Kingdom by virtue of condition C in section 809L.

(2)

A “gift recipient” means a person, other than a relevant person, to whom the individual makes a gift of money or other property that—

(a)

is income or chargeable gains of the individual, or

(b)

derives (wholly or in part, and directly or indirectly) from income or chargeable gains of the individual.

(3)

The question of whether or not a person is a relevant person is to be determined by reference to the time when a gift is made.

(4)

But, if a person to whom a gift is made subsequently becomes a relevant person, the person ceases to be a gift recipient.

(5)

The individual “makes a gift of” property if the individual disposes of the property—

(a)

for no consideration, or

(b)

for consideration less than the full consideration in money or money's worth that would be given if the disposal were by way of a bargain made at arm's length;

but, in a case falling in paragraph (b), the individual is to be taken to make a gift of only so much of the property as exceeds the consideration actually given.

(6)

A reference to the individual making a gift of property includes a case where—

(a)

the individual retains an interest in the property, or

(b)

an interest, right or arrangement enables or entitles the individual to benefit from the property.

(7)

Qualifying property”, in relation to a gift recipient, is—

(a)

the property that the individual gave to the gift recipient,

(b)

anything that derives (wholly or in part, and directly or indirectly) from that property, or

(c)

any other property, but only if it is dealt with as mentioned in section 809L(4)(a), (b) or (c) by virtue of an operation which is effected—

(i)

with reference to the gift of the property to the gift recipient, or

(ii)

with a view to enabling or facilitating the gift of the property to the gift recipient to be made.

(8)

In subsection (7)—

(a)

the reference in paragraph (b) to anything deriving from property, and

(b)

the reference in paragraph (c) to other property,

includes a thing, or property, that does not belong to the individual but which the individual is enabled or entitled to benefit from by virtue of any interest, right or arrangement.

(9)

Enjoyment by a relevant person of property or a service is to be disregarded in any of these cases—

(a)

if the property or service is enjoyed virtually to the entire exclusion of all relevant persons,

(b)

if full consideration in money or money's worth is given by a relevant person for the enjoyment, or

(c)

if the property or service is enjoyed by relevant persons in the same way, and on the same terms, as it may be enjoyed by the general public or by a section of the general public.

809OSection 809L: dealings where there is a connected operation

(1)

This section applies for the purposes of determining whether or not income or chargeable gains of an individual are remitted to the United Kingdom by virtue of condition D in section 809L.

(2)

For the purposes of section 809L(5), the question of whether or not the person whose property is dealt with as mentioned in paragraph (a), (b) or (c) of section 809L(5) is a relevant person is to be determined by reference to the time when the property is so dealt with.

(3)

A “connected operation”, in relation to property dealt with as mentioned in section 809L(5)(a), (b) or (c), means an operation which is effected—

(a)

with reference to a qualifying disposition, or

(b)

with a view to enabling or facilitating a qualifying disposition.

(4)

A “qualifying disposition”is a disposition that—

(a)

is made by a relevant person,

(b)

is made to, or for the benefit of, the person whose property is dealt with as mentioned in section 809L(5)(a), (b) or (c), and

(c)

is a disposition of money or other property that is, or derives (wholly or in part, and directly or indirectly) from, income or chargeable gains of the individual.

(5)

But a disposition of property is not a qualifying disposition if the disposition is, or is part of, the giving of full consideration in money or money's worth for the dealing that falls within section 809L(5)(a), (b) or (c).

(6)

Enjoyment by a relevant person of property or a service is to be disregarded in any of these cases—

(a)

if the property or service is enjoyed virtually to the entire exclusion of all relevant persons,

(b)

if full consideration in money or money's worth is given by a relevant person for the enjoyment, or

(c)

if the property or service is enjoyed by relevant persons in the same way, and on the same terms, as it may be enjoyed by the general public or by a section of the general public.

Remittance of income and gains: amount remitted

809PSection 809L: amount remitted

(1)

The amount of income or chargeable gains remitted to the United Kingdom is to be determined as follows.

(2)

If the property, service or consideration is the income or chargeable gains, the amount remitted is equal to the amount of the income or chargeable gains.

(3)

If the property, service or consideration derives from the income or chargeable gains, the amount remitted is equal to the amount of income or chargeable gains from which the property, service or consideration derives.

(4)

If the income or chargeable gains are used as mentioned in section 809L(3)(c), the amount remitted is equal to the amount of income or chargeable gains used; but this is subject to subsection (10).

(5)

If anything deriving from the income or chargeable gains is used as mentioned in section 809L(3)(c), the amount remitted is equal to the amount of income or chargeable gains from which what is used derives; but this is subject to subsection (10).

(6)

In a case falling within section 809L(4)(a) or (b), the amount remitted is equal to the amount of the relevant income or chargeable gains.

(7)

In a case falling within section 809L(4)(c), the amount remitted is equal to the amount of the relevant income or chargeable gains; but this is subject to subsection (10).

(8)

In a case falling within section 809L(5)(a) or (b), the amount remitted is equal to the amount of the income or chargeable gains referred to in section 809O(4)(c).

(9)

In a case falling within section 809L(5)(c), the amount remitted is equal to the amount of the income or chargeable gains referred to in section 809O(4)(c); but this is subject to subsection (10).

(10)

If the debt is only partly in respect of the property or service, the amount remitted is (if it would otherwise be greater) limited to the amount the debt would be if it were wholly in respect of the property or service.

(11)

In subsections (6) and (7) “relevant income or chargeable gains” means—

(a)

if the qualifying property falls within section 809N(7)(a), the income or gains—

(i)

of which the qualifying property consists, or

(ii)

from which the qualifying property derives;

(b)

if the qualifying property falls within section 809N(7)(b), the income or gains—

(i)

of which the property given to the gift recipient consisted, or

(ii)

from which that property derived;

(c)

if the qualifying property falls within section 809N(7)(c), the income or gains—

(i)

of which the property given to the gift recipient consists, or

(ii)

from which that property derives.

(12)

If the amount remitted (taken together with any amount previously remitted) would otherwise exceed the amount of the income or chargeable gains, the amount remitted is limited to the amount which (when taken together with any amount previously remitted) is equal to the amount of the income or chargeable gains.

Remittance of income and gains: transfers from mixed funds

809QSections 809L and 809P: transfers from mixed funds

(1)

This section applies for the purposes mentioned in subsection (2) where condition A in section 809L is met and—

(a)

the property or consideration for the service is (wholly or in part), or derives (wholly or in part, and directly or indirectly) from, a transfer from a mixed fund, or

(b)

a transfer from a mixed fund, or anything deriving (wholly or in part, and directly or indirectly) from such a transfer, is used as mentioned in section 809L(3)(c).

(2)

The purposes referred to in subsection (1) are—

(a)

determining whether condition B in section 809L is met, and

(b)

if it is met, determining (under section 809P) the amount of income or chargeable gains remitted.

(3)

The extent to which the transfer is of the individual's income or chargeable gains is to be determined as follows.

Step 1

For each of the categories of income and capital in paragraphs (a) to (i) of subsection (4), find (applying section 809R) the amount of income or capital of the individual for the relevant tax year in the mixed fund immediately before the transfer.

The relevant tax year” is the tax year in which the transfer occurs.

Step 2

Find the earliest paragraph for which the amount determined under step 1 is not nil.

If that amount does not exceed the amount of the transfer, treat the transfer as containing the income or capital within that paragraph (and for that tax year).

Otherwise, treat the transfer as containing the relevant proportion of each kind of income or capital within that paragraph (and for that tax year).

The relevant proportion” is the amount of the transfer divided by the amount determined under step 1 for that paragraph.

Step 3

Treat the amount of the transfer as reduced by the amount taken into account under step 2.

Step 4

If the amount of the transfer (as reduced under step 3) is not nil, start again at step 2.

In step 2, read the reference to the earliest paragraph of the kind mentioned there as a reference to the earliest such paragraph which has not previously been taken into account under that step in relation to the transfer.

Step 5

If the amount of the transfer (as reduced under step 3) is not nil once steps 2 and 3 have been undertaken in relation to all paragraphs of subsection (4) for which the amount determined under step 1 is not nil, start again at step 1.

In step 1, read the reference to the relevant tax year as a reference to the tax year immediately before the last tax year for which step 1 has been undertaken in relation to the transfer.

(4)

The kinds of income and capital are—

(a)

employment income (other than income within paragraph (b), (c) or (f)),

(b)

relevant foreign earnings (other than income within paragraph (f)),

(c)

foreign specific employment income (other than income within paragraph (f)),

(d)

relevant foreign income (other than income within paragraph (g)),

(e)

foreign chargeable gains (other than chargeable gains within paragraph (h)),

(f)

employment income subject to a foreign tax,

(g)

relevant foreign income subject to a foreign tax,

(h)

foreign chargeable gains subject to a foreign tax, and

(i)

income or capital not within another paragraph of this subsection.

(5)

In subsection (4) “foreign tax” means any tax chargeable under the law of a territory outside the United Kingdom.

(6)

In this section “mixed fund” means money or other property which, immediately before the transfer, contains or derives from—

(a)

more than one of the kinds of income and capital mentioned in subsection (4), or

(b)

income or capital for more than one tax year.

(7)

References in this section to the amount of the transfer include the market value of it.

(8)

References in this section and section 809R to anything deriving from income or capital within paragraph (i) of subsection (4) do not include—

(a)

income or gains within any of paragraphs (a) to (h) of that subsection, or

(b)

anything deriving from such income or gains.

809RSection 809Q: composition of mixed fund

(1)

This section applies for the purposes of step 1 of section 809Q(3) (composition of mixed fund).

(2)

Treat property which derives wholly or in part (and directly or indirectly) from an individual's income or capital for a tax year as consisting of or containing that income or capital.

(3)

If a debt relating (wholly or in part, and directly or indirectly) to property is at any time satisfied (wholly or in part) by—

(a)

an individual's income or capital for a tax year, or

(b)

anything deriving (directly or indirectly) from such income or capital,

from that time treat the property as consisting of or containing the income or capital if and to the extent that it is just and reasonable to do so.

(4)

Treat an offshore transfer from a mixed fund as containing the appropriate proportion of each kind of income or capital in the fund immediately before the transfer.

The appropriate proportion” means the amount (or market value) of the transfer divided by the market value of the mixed fund immediately before the transfer.

(5)

A transfer from a mixed fund is an “offshore transfer” for the purposes of subsection (4) if and to the extent that section 809Q does not apply in relation to it.

(6)

Treat a transfer from a mixed fund as an “offshore transfer” (and section 809Q as not applying in relation to it, if it otherwise would do) if and to the extent that, at the end of a tax year in which it is made—

(a)

section 809Q does not apply in relation to it, and

(b)

on the basis of the best estimate that can reasonably be made at that time, section 809Q will not apply in relation to it.

(7)

In this section ‘mixed fund’ means money or other property containing or deriving from—

(a)

more than one of the kinds of income and capital mentioned in section 809Q(4), or

(b)

income or capital for more than one tax year.

(8)

If section 809Q applies in relation to part of a transfer, apply that section in relation to that part before applying subsection (4) in relation to the rest of the transfer.

(9)

If section 809Q applies in relation to more than one transfer from a mixed fund, when undertaking step 1 in relation to the second or any subsequent transfer take into account the effect of step 2 of section 809Q(3) (composition of transfer) as it applied in relation to each earlier transfer.

809SSection 809Q: anti-avoidance

(1)

This section applies if, by reason of an arrangement the main purpose (or one of the main purposes) of which is to secure an income tax advantage or capital gains tax advantage, a mixed fund would otherwise be regarded as containing income or capital within any of paragraphs (f) to (i) of section 809Q(4).

(2)

Treat the mixed fund as containing so much (if any) of the income or capital as is just and reasonable.

(3)

Arrangement” includes any scheme, understanding, transaction or series or transactions (whether or not enforceable).

(4)

Income tax advantage” has the meaning given by section 683.

(5)

Capital gains tax advantage” means—

(a)

a relief from capital gains tax or increased relief from capital gains tax,

(b)

a repayment of capital gains tax or increased repayment of capital gains tax,

(c)

the avoidance or reduction of a charge to capital gains tax or an assessment to capital gains tax, or

(d)

the avoidance of a possible assessment to capital gains tax.

Remittance of income and gains: supplementary

809TForeign chargeable gains accruing on disposal made other than for full consideration

(1)

This section applies if—

(a)

foreign chargeable gains accrue to an individual on the disposal of an asset, and

(b)

the individual does not receive consideration for the disposal of an amount equal to the market value of the asset.

(2)

For the purposes of this Chapter treat the asset as deriving from the chargeable gains.

809UDeemed income or gains not to be regarded as remitted before time when they are treated as arising or accruing

Where—

(a)

income or foreign chargeable gains are treated as arising or accruing, and

(b)

by virtue of anything done in relation to anything regarded as deriving from the income or chargeable gains, the income or chargeable gains would otherwise be regarded as remitted to the United Kingdom before the time when they are treated as arising or accruing,

treat the income or chargeable gains as remitted to the United Kingdom at that time.

Remittance of income and gains: property treated as not remitted

809VMoney paid to the Commissioners

(1)

Money that is brought to the United Kingdom by way of one or more direct payments to the Commissioners is to be treated as not remitted to the United Kingdom—

(a)

if the payments are made in relation to a tax year to which section 809H applies, and

(b)

if, or to the extent that, the payments do not exceed £30,000.

(2)

Subsection (1) does not apply to a payment if, or to the extent that, it is repaid by the Commissioners.

809WConsideration for certain services

(1)

This section applies to income or chargeable gains if—

(a)

the income or gains would (but for subsection (2)) be regarded as remitted to the United Kingdom because conditions A and B in section 809L are met,

(b)

condition A in section 809L is met because a service is provided in the United Kingdom (“the relevant UK service”), and

(c)

condition B in section 809L is met because section 809L(3)(a) or (b) applies to the consideration for the relevant UK service (“the relevant consideration”).

(2)

The income or chargeable gains are to be treated as not remitted to the United Kingdom if the following conditions are met; but this is subject to subsection (5).

(3)

Condition A is that the relevant UK service relates wholly or mainly to property situated outside the United Kingdom.

(4)

Condition B is that the whole of the relevant consideration is given by way of one or more payments to one or more bank accounts held outside the United Kingdom by or on behalf of the person who provides the relevant UK service.

(5)

Subsection (2) does not apply if the relevant UK service relates (to any extent) to the provision in the United Kingdom of—

(a)

a benefit that is treated as deriving from the income by virtue of section 735, or

(b)

a relevant benefit within the meaning of section 87B of TCGA 1992 that is treated as deriving from the chargeable gains by virtue of that section.

(6)

Sections 275 to 275C of TCGA 1992 (location of assets) apply for the purposes of subsection (3) as they apply for the purposes of TCGA 1992.

809XExempt property

(1)

Exempt property which is brought to, or received or used in, the United Kingdom in circumstances in which section 809L(2)(a) applies is to be treated as not remitted to the United Kingdom.

(2)

Subsections (3) to (5) set out the cases in which property is exempt property.

(3)

Property is exempt property if it meets the public access rule (see sections 809Z and 809Z1).

(4)

Clothing, footwear, jewellery and watches that derive from relevant foreign income are exempt property if they meet the personal use rule (see section 809Z2).

(5)

Property of any description that derives from relevant foreign income is exempt property if—

(a)

the property meets the repair rule (see section 809Z3),

(b)

the property meets the temporary importation rule (see section 809Z4), or

(c)

the notional remitted amount (see section 809Z5) is less than £1,000.

809YProperty that ceases to be exempt property treated as remitted

(1)

Property that ceases to be exempt property is to be treated as having been remitted to the United Kingdom at the time it ceases to be exempt property.

(2)

Property ceases to be exempt property in either of the following cases.

(3)

The first case is where the whole or part of the exempt property is sold, or otherwise converted into money, whilst it is in the United Kingdom.

(4)

The second case is where the property—

(a)

is exempt property only because it meets one or more of the relevant rules,

(b)

ceases to meet that rule, or all of those rules, whilst it is in the United Kingdom, and

(c)

does not meet any other relevant rule.

(5)

In this section—

money” includes—

(a)

a traveller's cheque,

(b)

a promissory note,

(c)

a bill of exchange, and

(d)

any other—

  1. (i)

    instrument that is evidence of a debt, or

  2. (ii)

    voucher, stamp or similar token or document which is capable of being exchanged for money, goods or services, and

relevant rule” means—

(a)

the public access rule,

(b)

the personal use rule,

(c)

the repair rule, and

(d)

the temporary importation rule.

809ZPublic access rule: general

(1)

Property meets the public access rule if conditions A to D are met.

(2)

Condition A is that the property is—

(a)

a work of art,

(b)

a collectors' item, or

(c)

an antique,

within the meaning of Council Directive 2006/112/EC (see, in particular, Annex IX to that Directive).

(3)

Condition B is that—

(a)

the property is available for public access at an approved establishment,

(b)

the property is to be available for public access at an approved establishment and, in connection with its being so available, is in transit to, or in storage at, public access rule premises, or

(c)

the property has been available for public access at an approved establishment and, in connection with its having been so available, is in transit from, or in storage at, public access rule premises.

(4)

Property is “available for public access” at an approved establishment if the property is—

(a)

on public display at the establishment,

(b)

held by the establishment and made available to the public on request for viewing or for educational use, or

(c)

held by the establishment for public exhibition in connection with the sale of the property.

(5)

An “approved establishment” is—

(a)

an approved museum, gallery or other institution within the meaning of Group 9 of Schedule 2 to the Value Added Tax (Imported Goods) Relief Order 1984, or

(b)

any other person, premises or institution designated (or of a description designated) by the Commissioners.

(6)

Public access rule premises” are—

(a)

premises in the United Kingdom at which the property is to be, or has been, available for public access, or

(b)

other commercial premises in the United Kingdom used by the approved establishment for the storage of property in advance of its being, or after its having been, available for public access at the approved establishment.

(7)

Condition C is that, during the relevant period, the property meets condition B for no more than—

(a)

two years, or

(b)

such longer period as the Commissioners may specify.

(8)

The relevant period” means the period—

(a)

beginning with the importation of the property, and

(b)

ending when it ceases to be in the United Kingdom after that importation.

(9)

Importation” means the property being brought to, or received or used in, the United Kingdom in circumstances in which section 809L(2)(a) applies.

(10)

Condition D is that the property attracts a relevant VAT relief (see section 809Z1).

809Z1Public access rule: relevant VAT relief

(1)

Property “attracts a relevant VAT relief” if any of conditions 1 to 4 is met.

(2)

Condition 1 is that article 5(1) of the Value Added Tax (Imported Goods) Relief Order 1984 applies in relation to the importation of the property by virtue of Group 9 of Schedule 2 to that Order (importation of works of art or collectors' pieces by museums etc).

(3)

Condition 2 is that article 5(1) would so apply if the following requirements were disregarded—

(a)

the requirement that the importation be from a third country, and

(b)

the requirement that the purpose of the importation be a purpose other than sale.

(4)

Condition 3 is that article 576(3)(a) of Commission Regulation (EEC) No 2454/93 (relief from import duties for works of art etc imported for the purposes of exhibition, with a view to possible sale) applies in relation to the importation of the property.

(5)

Condition 4 is that article 576(3)(a) would so apply if the requirement that the importation be from a third country were disregarded.

(6)

Where the property does not meet condition B in section 809Z at the time of its importation it is to be assumed for the purposes of this section that the property was imported on the day during the relevant period when the property first meets that condition.

(7)

The relevant period” and “importation” have the same meaning as in section 809Z and “imported” is to be read accordingly.

809Z2Personal use rule

(1)

Clothing, footwear, jewellery or watches meet the personal use rule if they—

(a)

are property of a relevant person, and

(b)

are for the personal use of a relevant individual.

(2)

In this section—

(a)

relevant person” has the meaning given by section 809M, and

(b)

relevant individual” means an individual who is a relevant person by virtue of section 809M(2)(a), (b), (c) or (d) (the individual with income or gains, or a husband, wife, civil partner, child or grandchild).

809Z3Repair rule

(1)

Property meets the repair rule for the whole of the relevant period if, during the whole of that period, the property meets the repair conditions.

(2)

Property meets the repair rule for a part of the relevant period if—

(a)

during the whole of that part of that period, the property meets the repair conditions, and

(b)

during the whole of the other part of that period, or the whole of each other part of that period, the property meets the repair conditions or the public access rule.

(3)

Property meets the repair conditions if the property—

(a)

is under repair or restoration,

(b)

is in transit from a place outside the United Kingdom to repair rule premises, in transit between such premises, or in storage at such premises, in advance of repair or restoration, or

(c)

is in storage at such premises, in transit between such premises, or in transit from such premises to a place outside the United Kingdom, following repair or restoration.

(4)

Repair rule premises” means—

(a)

premises in the United Kingdom that are to be used, or have been used, for the repair or restoration referred to in subsection (3)(b) or (c), or

(b)

other commercial premises in the United Kingdom used by the restorer for the storage of property in advance of, or following, repair or restoration of property by the restorer.

(5)

Restorer” means the person who is to carry out, or has carried out, the repair or restoration referred to in subsection (3)(b) or (c).

(6)

Property meets the repair conditions, or the public access rule, during the whole of a period, or the whole of part of a period, if the property meets those conditions or that rule—

(a)

on the whole of, or on part of, the first day of that period or part period,

(b)

on the whole of, or on part of, the last day of that period or part period, and

(c)

on the whole of each other day of that period or part period.

(7)

The relevant period” has the same meaning as in section 809Z.

809Z4Temporary importation rule

(1)

Property meets the temporary importation rule if the total number of countable days is 275 or fewer.

(2)

A “countable day” is a day on which, or on part of which, the property is in the United Kingdom by virtue of being brought to, or received or used in, the United Kingdom in circumstances in which section 809L(2)(a) applies (whether the current case, or a past case, when the property was so brought, received or used).

(3)

A day is not a countable day if, on that day or any part of that day—

(a)

the property meets the personal use rule,

(b)

the property meets the repair rule, or

(c)

the notional remitted amount in relation to the property is less than £1,000.

(4)

A day on which, or on part of which, the property meets the public access rule (the “relevant day”) is not a countable day if any of conditions A to C is met.

(5)

Condition A is that the property meets the public access rule during the whole of the period of importation in which the relevant day falls.

(6)

Condition B is that—

(a)

the property does not meet the public access rule during the whole of the period of importation in which the relevant day falls, and

(b)

that period of importation—

(i)

begins with a period of no public access, and

(ii)

ends with a period of public access which immediately follows that period of no public access.

(7)

Condition C is that—

(a)

the property does not meet the public access rule during the whole of the period of importation in which the relevant day falls, and

(b)

during the parts, or each of the parts of the period of importation during which the property does not meet the public access rule it meets the repair conditions.

(8)

Section 809Z3(6) applies for the purposes of this section.

(9)

Period of importation” means a period that—

(a)

begins when property is brought to, or received or used in, the United Kingdom in circumstances in which section 809L(2)(a) applies, and

(b)

ends when the property ceases to be in the United Kingdom after having been so brought, received or used.

(10)

Period of no public access” means a period which is not a period of public access and “period of public access” means a period during the whole of which property meets the public access rule.

809Z5Notional remitted amount

(1)

The “notional remitted amount”, in relation to property, is the amount of income that would be taken to be remitted to the United Kingdom in relation to the property (if section 809X did not apply in relation to the property).

(2)

If—

(a)

property forms part of a set, and

(b)

only part of the set is in the United Kingdom,

the notional remitted amount is such part of the amount specified in subsection (3) as is just and reasonable having regard to the part of the set that actually is in the United Kingdom.

(3)

That amount is the amount that would be taken to be remitted to the United Kingdom if the complete set had been brought to, or received or used in, the United Kingdom, at the same time as the part in question.

809Z6Exempt property: other interpretation

(1)

This section applies for the purposes of sections 809X to 809Z5.

(2)

Property” does not include money.

(3)

In subsection (2) “money” includes—

(a)

a traveller's cheque,

(b)

a promissory note,

(c)

a bill of exchange, and

(d)

any other—

(i)

instrument that is evidence of a debt, or

(ii)

voucher, stamp or similar token or document which is capable of being exchanged for money, goods or services.

(4)

References to property being in the United Kingdom are references to the property—

(a)

being in the United Kingdom after being brought to, or received in, the United Kingdom in circumstances in which section 809L(2)(a) applies, or

(b)

being used in the United Kingdom in circumstances in which section 809L(2)(a) applies.

Interpretation of Chapter

809Z7Interpretation of Chapter

(1)

This section applies for the purposes of this Chapter.

(2)

An individual's “foreign income and gains” for a tax year are—

(a)

the individual's relevant foreign earnings for that year,

(b)

the individual's foreign specific employment income for that year,

(c)

the individual's relevant foreign income for that year, and

(d)

if the individual is not domiciled in the United Kingdom in that year, the individual's foreign chargeable gains for that year.

(3)

An individual's “relevant foreign earnings” for a tax year are—

(a)

if the individual is ordinarily UK resident in that year, the individual's chargeable overseas earnings for that year, and

(b)

otherwise, the individual's general earnings within section 26(1) of ITEPA 2003 for that year (non-UK earnings).

(4)

An individual's “foreign specific employment income” for a tax year is such of the individual's specific employment income for that year as is foreign securities income for the purposes of section 41A of ITEPA 2003.

(5)

An individual's “foreign chargeable gains” for a tax year are the foreign chargeable gains (within the meaning of section 12(4) of TCGA 1992) accruing to the individual in that year.

(6)

In subsection (3)(a) “chargeable overseas earnings” has the same meaning as in section 22 of ITEPA 2003 (see section 23 of that Act).

(7)

The Commissioners” means the Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs.”

Employment income

2

ITEPA 2003 is amended as follows.

3

(1)

Section 6 (nature of charge to tax on employment income) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (3), omit the “and” at the end of paragraph (a), and after that paragraph insert—

“(aa)

whether section 809B, 809D or 809E of ITA 2007 (remittance basis) applies to an employee for a tax year, and”.

(3)

After that subsection insert—

“(3A)

The rules in Chapter 5A, which are concerned with the matters mentioned in subsection (3)(a) to (b), apply for the purposes of the charge to tax on certain specific employment income arising under Part 7 (securities etc).”

4

(1)

Section 10 (meaning of “taxable earnings” etc) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (2), for the words after “with” substitute “ Chapters 4 and 5 of this Part ”.

(3)

After subsection (3) insert—

“(4)

Subsection (3) is subject to Chapter 5A of this Part (certain specific employment income under Part 7: individuals to whom to remittance basis applies).”

5

(1)

Section 13 (person liable to tax) is amended as follows.

(2)

After subsection (4) insert—

“(4A)

If the tax is on specific employment income received, or remitted to the United Kingdom, after the death of the person in relation to whom the income is, by virtue of Part 7, to count as employment income, the person's personal representatives are liable for the tax.”

(3)

In subsection (5), for “In that event” substitute “ If subsection (4) or (4A) applies, ”.

6

For the heading of Chapter 4 of Part 2 substitute Taxable earnings: UK resident employees.

7

In section 14(1) (taxable earnings under Chapter 4: introduction), for “resident, ordinarily resident and domiciled in UK” substitute UK resident ”.

8

For the heading before section 15 substitute UK resident employees ”.

9

(1)

Section 15 (earnings for year when employee resident, ordinarily resident and domiciled in UK) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for the words from “resident”, in the first place, to the end substitute UK resident. ”

(3)

For subsection (3) substitute—

“(3)

Subsection (2) applies whether or not the employment is held when the earnings are received.”

(4)

Accordingly, in the heading, for “resident, ordinarily resident and domiciled in UK” substitute UK resident.

10

For the title to Chapter 5 of Part 2 substitute “ Taxable earnings: remittance basis rules and rules for non-uk resident employees ”.

11

(1)

Section 20 (taxable earnings under Chapter 5: introduction) is amended as follows.

(2)

For subsection (1) substitute—

“(1)

This Chapter—

(a)

contains provision for calculating what are taxable earnings from certain kinds of employment in a tax year for which section 809B, 809D or 809E of ITA 2007 (remittance basis) applies to the employee, and

(b)

sets out what are taxable earnings from an employment in a tax year in which the employee is non-UK resident.”

(3)

In subsection (2), omit paragraphs (b) and (c).

(4)

In subsection (3), for “the sections listed in subsection (1)” substitute “ sections 22, 26 and 27 ”.

12

For the heading before section 21 substitute Remittance basis rules for UK ordinarily resident employees.

13

Omit section 21 (earnings for year when employee resident and ordinarily resident, but not domiciled, in UK, except chargeable overseas earnings).

14

(1)

Section 22 (chargeable overseas earnings for year when employee resident and ordinarily resident, but not domiciled, in UK) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for the words from “in which” to the end substitute“, to the extent that they are chargeable overseas earnings for that year, if—

(a)

section 809B, 809D or 809E of ITA 2007 (remittance basis) applies to the employee for that year, and

(b)

the employee is ordinarily UK resident in that year.”

(3)

For subsection (3) substitute—

“(3)

Subsection (2) applies whether or not the employment is held when the earnings are remitted.”

(4)

In subsection (4), omit the words after “year”.

(5)

In subsection (5)(b), for “section 21” substitute “ section 15 ”.

(6)

After subsection (5) insert—

“(6)

See Chapter A1 of Part 14 of ITA 2007 for the meaning of “remitted to the United Kingdom” etc.

(7)

General earnings for the employee for the tax year fall within section 15(1) to the extent that they do not fall within subsection (1).”

(7)

Accordingly, in the heading, for the words from “employee” to the end substitute remittance basis applies and employee ordinarily UK resident.

15

(1)

Section 23 (calculation of chargeable overseas earnings) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for “sections 21 and” substitute “ section ”.

(3)

In subsection (2), for paragraph (a) substitute—

“(a)

section 809B, 809D or 809E of ITA 2007 (remittance basis) applies to the employee for that year,

(aa)

the employee is ordinarily UK resident in that year,”.

16

In section 24(7) (limit on chargeable overseas earnings where duties of associated employment performed in UK), for “section 21(1)” substitute “ section 15(1) ”.

17

For the heading before section 25 substitute Remittance basis rules: employees not UK ordinarily resident.

18

Omit section 25 (UK-based earnings for year when employee resident, but not ordinarily resident, in UK).

19

(1)

Section 26 (foreign earnings for year when employee resident, but not ordinarily resident, in UK) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for the words from “in which” to “they” substitute “ where section 809B, 809D or 809E of ITA 2007 (remittance basis) applies to the employee for that year and the employee is not ordinarily UK resident in that year, if the general earnings ”.

(3)

For subsection (3) substitute—

“(3)

Subsection (2) applies whether or not the employment is held when the earnings are remitted.”

(4)

After subsection (4) insert—

“(5)

See Chapter A1 of Part 14 of ITA 2007 for the meaning of “remitted to the United Kingdom” etc.

(6)

General earnings for the employee for the tax year fall within section 15(1) if they do not fall within subsection (1).”

(5)

Accordingly, in the heading, for the words from “employee” to the end substitute remittance basis applies and employee not ordinarily UK resident.

20

(1)

Section 27 (UK-based earnings for year when employee non-UK resident) is amended as follows.

(2)

For subsection (3) substitute—

“(3)

Subsection (2) applies whether or not the employment is held when the earnings are received.”

(3)

After subsection (4) insert—

“(5)

Sections 18 and 19 (time when earnings are received) apply for the purposes of this section.”

21

Omit sections 31 to 37 (and the heading before section 31).

22

After section 41 insert—

“Chapter 5ATaxable specific income: effect of remittance basis

41ATaxable specific income from employment-related securities: effect of remittance basis

(1)

This section applies if—

(a)

an amount within subsection (2) counts as employment income of an individual for a tax year in respect of an employment (“the securities income”), and

(b)

any part of the relevant period (see section 41B) is within a tax year for which section 809B, 809D or 809E of ITA 2007 (remittance basis) applies to the individual.

(2)

An amount is within this subsection if it counts as employment income under any provision of any of Chapters 2, 3 and 3C to 5 of Part 7 (employment-related securities etc) except section 446UA.

(3)

The reference in subsection (2) to an amount that counts as employment income under any of the provisions mentioned there does not include an amount which counts as employment income by virtue of any provision of Chapter 3A or 3B of Part 7.

(4)

An amount equal to—

SI-FSImath

is an amount of “taxable specific income” from the employment for the tax year mentioned in subsection (1)(a).

(5)

In subsection (4)—

(a)

SI is the amount of the securities income, and

(b)

FSI is the amount of the securities income that is “foreign” (see sections 41C to 41E).

(6)

The full amount of any of the foreign securities income which is remitted to the United Kingdom in a tax year is an amount of “taxable specific income” from the employment for that year.

(7)

Subsection (6) applies whether or not the employment is held when the foreign securities income is remitted.

(8)

For the purposes of Chapter A1 of Part 14 of ITA 2007 (remittance basis), treat the relevant securities or securities option as deriving from the foreign securities income.

(9)

But where—

(a)

the chargeable event is the disposal of the relevant securities or the assignment or release of the relevant securities option, and

(b)

the individual receives consideration for the disposal, assignment or release of an amount equal to or exceeding the market value of the relevant securities or securities option,

for the purposes of that Chapter treat the consideration (and not the relevant securities or securities option) as deriving from the foreign securities income.

(10)

In this section and section 41B—

the chargeable event” means the event giving rise to the securities income, and

the relevant securities” or “the relevant securities option” means the employment-related securities or employment-related securities option by virtue of which the amount mentioned in subsection (1)(a) counts as employment income.

(11)

See Chapter A1 of Part 14 of ITA 2007 for the meaning of “remitted to the United Kingdom” etc.

41BSection 41A: the relevant period

(1)

“The relevant period” is to be determined as follows.

(2)

In the case of an amount that counts as employment income by virtue of Chapter 2 (restricted securities) or Chapter 3 (convertible securities), the relevant period—

(a)

begins with the day of the acquisition, and

(b)

ends with the day of the chargeable event.

(3)

In the case of an amount that counts as employment income by virtue of section 446U (securities acquired for less than market value: discharge of notional loan)—

(a)

if the relevant securities were acquired by virtue of the exercise of a securities option (“the option”), the relevant period—

(i)

begins with the day of the acquisition of the option, and

(ii)

ends with the day the option vests, and

(b)

otherwise, the relevant period is—

(i)

the tax year in which the notional loan (within the meaning of Chapter 3C) is treated as made, or

(ii)

if the chargeable event occurs in that year, the period beginning at the beginning of that year and ending with the day of that event.

(4)

In the case of an amount that counts as employment income by virtue of—

(a)

Chapter 3D (securities disposed of for more than market value), or

(b)

Chapter 4 (post-acquisition benefits from securities),

the relevant period is the tax year in which the chargeable event occurs.

(5)

In the case of an amount that counts as employment income by virtue of Chapter 5 (employment-related securities options), the relevant period—

(a)

begins with the day of the acquisition, and

(b)

ends with the day of the chargeable event or, if earlier, the day the relevant securities option vests.

(6)

In this section “the acquisition” has the same meaning as in Chapters 2 to 4 or Chapter 5 (see section 421B or 471).

(7)

For the purposes of this section an option “vests” when it is first capable of being exercised.

(8)

References in this section to a Chapter are to a Chapter of Part 7.

41CSection 41A: foreign securities income

(1)

The extent to which the securities income is “foreign” is to be determined as follows.

(2)

Treat an equal amount of the securities income as accruing on each day of the relevant period.

(3)

If any part of the relevant period is within a tax year to which subsection (4) applies, the securities income treated as accruing in that part of the relevant period is “foreign”.

This is subject to section 41D (limit where duties of associated employment performed in UK).

(4)

This subsection applies to a tax year if—

(a)

section 809B, 809D or 809E of ITA 2007 applies to the individual for the year,

(b)

the individual is ordinarily UK resident in the year,

(c)

the employment is with a foreign employer, and

(d)

the duties of the employment are performed wholly outside the United Kingdom.

(5)

If any part of the relevant period is within a tax year to which subsection (6) applies—

(a)

if the duties of the employment are performed wholly outside the United Kingdom, the securities income treated as accruing in that part of the relevant period is “foreign”, and

(b)

if some but not all of those duties are performed outside the United Kingdom—

(i)

the securities income mentioned in paragraph (a) is to be apportioned (on a just and reasonable basis) between duties performed in the United Kingdom and duties performed outside the United Kingdom, and

(ii)

the income apportioned in respect of duties performed outside the United Kingdom is “foreign”.

(6)

This subsection applies to a tax year if—

(a)

section 809B, 809D or 809E of ITA 2007 applies to the individual for the year,

(b)

the individual is not ordinarily UK resident in the year, and

(c)

some or all of the duties of the employment are performed outside the United Kingdom.

(7)

If the individual is not resident in the United Kingdom in a tax year, for the purposes of this section treat section 809B of ITA 2007 as applying to the individual for that year.

(8)

This section is subject to section 41E (foreign securities income: just and reasonable apportionment).

41DLimit on foreign securities income where duties of associated employment performed in UK

(1)

This section imposes a limit on the extent to which section 41C(3) applies in relation to a period when—

(a)

the individual holds associated employments as well as the employment in relation to which section 41C(4) applies, and

(b)

the duties of the associated employments are not performed wholly outside the United Kingdom.

(2)

The amount of the securities income for the period that is to be regarded as “foreign” is limited to such amount as is just and reasonable, having regard to—

(a)

the employment income for the period from all the employments mentioned in subsection (1)(a),

(b)

the proportion of that income that is general earnings to which section 22 applies (chargeable overseas earnings),

(c)

the nature of and time devoted to the duties performed outside the United Kingdom, and those performed in the United Kingdom, in the period, and

(d)

all other relevant circumstances.

(3)

In this section “associated employments” means employments with the same employer or with associated employers.

(4)

Section 24(5) and (6) (meaning of “associated employer”) apply for the purposes of this section.

41EForeign securities income: just and reasonable apportionment

(1)

This section applies if the proportion of the securities income that would otherwise be regarded as “foreign” is not, having regard to all the circumstances, one that is just and reasonable.

(2)

The amount of the securities income that is “foreign” is such amount as is just and reasonable (rather than the amount calculated in accordance with section 41C).”

23

Omit Chapter 6 of Part 2 (disputes as to domicile or ordinary residence).

24

In section 225 (payments for restrictive undertakings), for subsections (6) and (7) substitute—

“(6)

This section applies only if—

(a)

section 15 applies to any general earnings from the employment, and would apply even if the individual made a claim under section 809B of ITA 2007 (claim for remittance basis) for the tax year mentioned in subsection (3), or

(b)

section 27 (UK-based earnings of non-UK resident employee) applies to any general earnings from the employment.”

25

In section 271(2) (limited exemption of removal benefits and expenses: general)—

(a)

in paragraph (a), for the words from “employee” to “UK” substitute “ remittance basis applies and employee ordinarily UK resident ”, and

(b)

in paragraph (b), for the words from “employee” to “UK” substitute “ remittance basis applies and employee not ordinarily UK resident ”.

26

In section 335(4) (application of deductions provisions), omit “, 21, 25”.

27

(1)

Section 370 (travel costs and expenses where duties performed abroad) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for the words from “taxable” to “UK)” substitute “ relevant taxable earnings ”.

(3)

After subsection (5) insert—

“(6)

In this section “relevant taxable earnings” means general earnings for a tax year in which the employee is ordinarily UK resident that—

(a)

are taxable earnings under section 15, and

(b)

would be taxable earnings under section 15 even if the employee made a claim under section 809B of ITA 2007 (claim for remittance basis) for that year.”

28

(1)

Section 371 (travel costs and expenses where duties performed abroad: spouse's travel etc) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for the words from “taxable” to “UK)” substitute “ relevant taxable earnings ”.

(3)

After subsection (7) insert—

“(8)

In this section “relevant taxable earnings” has the meaning given by section 370(6).”

29

(1)

Section 378 (deduction from seafarer's earnings: eligibility) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1)(a), for the words from “taxable” to the end substitute “ relevant taxable earnings, ”.

(3)

After subsection (4) insert—

“(5)

In this section “relevant taxable earnings” means general earnings for a tax year in which the employee is ordinarily UK resident that—

(a)

are taxable earnings under section 15, and

(b)

would be taxable earnings under section 15 even if the employee made a claim under section 809B of ITA 2007 (claim for remittance basis) for that year.”

30

(1)

Section 413 (exception in certain cases of foreign service) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (3), for paragraph (a) substitute—

“(a)

any earnings from the employment would not be relevant earnings, or”

(3)

After that subsection insert—

“(3A)

In subsection (3)(a) “relevant earnings” means—

(a)

for service in or after the tax year 2008-09, earnings—

(i)

which are for a tax year in which the employee is ordinarily UK resident,

(ii)

to which section 15 applies, and

(iii)

to which that section would apply, even if the employee made a claim under section 809B of ITA 2007 (claim for remittance basis) for that year, and

(b)

for service before the tax year 2008-09, general earnings to which section 15 or 21 as originally enacted applies.”

31

In section 421E(1) (income relating to securities: exclusions), for the words from “or 21” to the end substitute “ , 22 or 26 applies (earnings for year when employee UK resident). ”.

32

In section 446N (securities subject to restriction during relevant period), after subsection (6) insert—

“(7)

If any of the employment income arising under section 426 by virtue of the chargeable event is foreign securities income within the meaning of section 41C, reduce the taxable amount mentioned in subsection (5) by the amount of the foreign securities income.

(8)

If any of the employment income that would have arisen (if the non-commercial interests mentioned in subsection (6) had been disregarded) under section 426 by virtue of the chargeable event would have been foreign securities income (within that meaning), reduce the taxable amount mentioned in subsection (6) by the amount of the foreign securities income.”

33

In section 474(1) (securities options: exclusions), for the words from “or 21” to the end substitute “ , 22 or 26 applies (earnings for year when employee UK resident). ”

34

In section 540(2) (EMI: taxable benefits), for the words from “or 21” to the end substitute “ applies (earnings for year when employee UK resident).& ”

35

In section 690 (PAYE: employee non-UK resident etc), after subsection (2) insert—

“(2A)

For the purposes of subsection (2) as it applies in relation to an employee who is UK resident but not ordinarily UK resident in a tax year, the officer may treat section 809B of ITA 2007 (remittance basis) as applying to the employee for that year, even if no claim under that section has been made.”

36

In section 698 (PAYE: special charges on employment-related securities), after subsection (7) insert—

“(8)

This section is subject to section 700A (employment-related securities etc: remittance basis).”

37

In section 700 (PAYE: gains from securities options), after subsection (6) insert—

“(7)

This section is subject to section 700A (employment-related securities etc: remittance basis).”

38

After that section insert—

“700AEmployment-related securities etc: remittance basis

(1)

This section applies if—

(a)

section 698 or 700 applies, and

(b)

part or all of the amount that counts as employment income is foreign securities income or is likely to be foreign securities income.

(2)

The amount of the payment treated under section 696 as made is limited to—

(a)

the amount that, on the basis of the best estimate that can reasonably be made, is likely to count as employment income, minus

(b)

the amount that, on the basis of such an estimate, is likely to be foreign securities income.

(3)

References in this section to “foreign securities income” are to income that is foreign securities income for the purposes of section 41A.”

39

In section 721(1) (other definitions), for the definition of “foreign employer” substitute—

““foreign employer” means an individual, partnership or body of persons resident outside, and not resident in, the United Kingdom,”.

40

In Schedule 1 (index of defined expressions), omit the entries relating to—

(a)

receipt of money earnings (in Chapter 5 of Part 2), and

(b)

receipt of non-money earnings (in Chapter 5 of Part 2).

41

In paragraph 8 of Schedule 2 (approved share incentive plans: all-employee nature of plan), for sub-paragraph (2) substitute—

“(2)

An employee is a UK resident taxpayer if—

(a)

the employee's earnings from the employment by reference to which the employee meets the employment requirement are (or would be if there were any) general earnings to which section 15 applies (earnings for year when employee UK resident), and

(b)

those general earnings are (or would be if there were any) earnings for a tax year in which the employee is ordinarily resident in the United Kingdom.”

42

In paragraph 6(2) of Schedule 3 (approved SAYE option schemes: all-employee nature of scheme), for paragraph (c) substitute—

“(c)

E's earnings from the office or employment within paragraph (a) are (or would be if there were any) general earnings to which section 15 applies (earnings for year when employee UK resident),

(ca)

those general earnings are (or would be if there were any) earnings for a tax year in which E is ordinarily resident in the United Kingdom, and”.

43

In paragraph 27(2) of Schedule 5 (enterprise management incentives: meaning of “working time”)—

(a)

in paragraph (a), for the words from “or 21” to “Kingdom)” substitute “ applies (earnings for year when employee UK resident) ”, and

(b)

in paragraph (b), for the words from “resident and” to the end substitute UK resident (and none of sections 809B, 809D and 809E of ITA 2007 (remittance basis) applied to the employee). ”

44

In Schedule 7 (transitionals and savings), omit paragraphs 9 to 12.

Relevant foreign income

45

In section 575 of ITEPA 2003 (foreign pensions: taxable pension income), omit subsection (4).

46

ITTOIA 2005 is amended as follows.

47

In section 260(1) (overview of Part 3)—

(a)

at the end of paragraph (d) insert “ and ”, and

(b)

omit paragraph (f) (and the “and” before it).

48

In section 269 (territorial scope of charge to tax), omit subsections (3) and (4).

49

Omit Chapter 11 of Part 3 (overseas property income).

50

In section 829 (overview of Part 8), for paragraph (a) substitute—

“(a)

the charging of relevant foreign income of a person to whom section 809B, 809D or 809E of ITA 2007 applies (remittance basis),”.

51

(1)

Section 830 (meaning of “relevant foreign income”) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for the words from “which” to the end substitute“which—

(a)

arises from a source outside the United Kingdom, and

(b)

is chargeable under any of the provisions specified in subsection (2) (or would be so chargeable if section 832 did not apply to it).”

(3)

In subsection (2), omit paragraph (d).

52

Omit section 831 (claims for relevant foreign income to be charged on remittance basis).

53

For section 832 substitute—

“832Relevant foreign income charged on remittance basis

(1)

This section applies to an individual's relevant foreign income for a tax year (“the relevant foreign income”) if section 809B, 809D or 809E of ITA 2007 (remittance basis) applies to the individual for that year.

(2)

For any tax year in which—

(a)

the individual is UK resident, and

(b)

any of the relevant foreign income is remitted to the United Kingdom,

income tax is charged on the full amount of the relevant foreign income so remitted in that year.

(3)

Subsection (2) applies whether or not the source of the income exists when the income is remitted.

(4)

See Chapter A1 of Part 14 of ITA 2007 for the meaning of “remitted to the United Kingdom” etc.

832ASection 832: temporary non-residents

(1)

This section applies if—

(a)

an individual satisfies the residence requirements for any tax year (“the year of return”),

(b)

the individual did not satisfy those requirements for one or more tax years immediately before the year of return but did satisfy those requirements for an earlier tax year,

(c)

there are fewer than 5 tax years between—

(i)

the last tax year before the year of return for which the individual satisfied those requirements (“the year of departure”), and

(ii)

the year of return, and

(d)

the individual satisfied those requirements for at least 4 out of the 7 tax years immediately before the year of departure.

(2)

Treat any of the individual's relevant foreign income within subsection (3) which is remitted to the United Kingdom after the year of departure and before the year of return as remitted to the United Kingdom in the year of return.

(3)

Relevant foreign income is within this subsection if—

(a)

it is for the year of departure or any earlier tax year, and

(b)

section 832 applies to it.

(4)

For the purposes of subsection (1) an individual “satisfies the residence requirements” for a tax year if—

(a)

at any time in that year, the individual is UK resident and not Treaty non-resident, or

(b)

the individual is ordinarily UK resident, and is not Treaty non-resident, for that year.

(5)

For the purposes of subsection (4) an individual is “Treaty non-resident” at any time if, at that time, he is regarded as resident in a territory outside the United Kingdom for the purposes of double taxation relief arrangements having effect at that time.

(6)

In subsection (5) “double taxation relief arrangements” means arrangements specified in an Order in Council making any such provisions as are referred to in section 788 of ICTA.

832BSection 832: deductions from remitted income

(1)

The only case in which deductions are allowed from the income mentioned in section 832(2) is where the income is from a trade, profession or vocation carried on outside the United Kingdom.

(2)

In that case the same deductions are allowed as are allowed under the Income Tax Acts where the trade, profession or vocation is carried on in the United Kingdom.”

54

Omit sections 833 to 837.

Chargeable gains

55

TCGA 1992 is amended as follows.

56

(1)

Section 3 (annual exempt amount) is amended as follows.

(2)

After subsection (1) insert—

“(1A)

Subsection (1) does not apply to an individual for a tax year if section 809B of ITA 2007 (claim for remittance basis to apply) applies to the individual for that year.”

(3)

In subsection (5C)—

(a)

after paragraph (a) insert—

“(aa)

if section 16ZB (certain chargeable gains charged on remittance basis) applies for that year, deducting the amount of the relevant gains (within the meaning of that section),” and

(b)

in paragraph (b), after “deducting” insert “ (from the amount mentioned in paragraph (a), as reduced under paragraph (aa)) ” .

57

In section 3A (reporting limits), after subsection (5) insert—

“(5A)

Subsection (1) does not apply to an individual for a tax year if—

(a)

section 809B of ITA 2007 (claim for remittance basis to apply), or

(b)

section 16ZB below (certain chargeable gains charged on remittance basis),

applies to the individual for that year.”

58

In section 9 (residence etc), omit subsection (2).

59

In section 10A (temporary non-residents), after subsection (9) insert—

“(9ZA)

If—

(a)

section 809B, 809D or 809E of ITA 2007 (remittance basis) applies to the taxpayer for the year of return, and

(b)

the taxpayer is not domiciled in the United Kingdom in that year,

any foreign chargeable gains falling within subsection (2)(a) which were remitted in an intervening year are treated as remitted in the year of return.

For this purpose “foreign chargeable gains” has the meaning given by section 12(4).”

60

For section 12 substitute—

“12Non-UK domiciled individuals to whom remittance basis applies

(1)

This section applies to foreign chargeable gains accruing to an individual in a tax year (“the foreign chargeable gains”) if—

(a)

section 809B, 809D or 809E of ITA 2007 (remittance basis) applies to the individual for that year, and

(b)

the individual is not domiciled in the United Kingdom in that year.

(2)

Chargeable gains are treated as accruing to the individual in any tax year in which any of the foreign chargeable gains are remitted to the United Kingdom.

(3)

The amount of chargeable gains treated as accruing is equal to the full amount of the foreign chargeable gains so remitted in that year.

(4)

In this section “foreign chargeable gains” means chargeable gains accruing from the disposal of an asset which is situated outside the United Kingdom.

(5)

See Chapter A1 of Part 14 of ITA 2007 for the meaning of “remitted to the United Kingdom” etc.”

61

In section 16 (computation of losses), omit subsection (4).

62

After that section insert—

“16ZALosses: non-UK domiciled individuals

(1)

In this section “the relevant tax year”, in relation to an individual, means the first tax year for which—

(a)

section 809B of ITA 2007 (claim for remittance basis) applies to the individual, and

(b)

the individual is not domiciled in the United Kingdom.

(2)

An individual may make an election under this section for the relevant tax year (in which case sections 16ZB and 16ZC have effect in relation to the individual for the relevant tax year and all subsequent tax years).

(3)

If an individual does not make such an election, foreign losses accruing to the individual in—

(a)

the relevant tax year, or

(b)

any subsequent tax year except one in which the individual is domiciled in the United Kingdom,

are not allowable losses.

(4)

Sections 42 and 43 of the Management Act (procedure and time limit for making claims), except section 42(1A) of that Act, apply in relation to an election under this section as they apply in relation to a claim for relief.

(5)

An election under this section is irrevocable.

(6)

In this section “foreign loss” means a loss accruing from the disposal of an asset situated outside the United Kingdom.

16ZBIndividual who has made election under section 16ZA: foreign chargeable gains remitted in tax year after tax year in which accrue

(1)

This section applies to an individual for a tax year (“the applicable tax year”) if—

(a)

the individual has made an election under section 16ZA,

(b)

foreign chargeable gains accrued to the individual in or after the relevant tax year (within the meaning of section 16ZA) but before the applicable tax year, and

(c)

by reason of the remission of any of the foreign chargeable gains to the United Kingdom, chargeable gains are treated under section 12 as accruing to the individual in the applicable tax year (“the relevant gains”).

(2)

Section 2(2) or (4) has effect for the applicable tax year as if the relevant gains had not accrued.

(3)

The amount on which the individual is charged to capital gains tax for the applicable tax year is (instead of the amount given by section 2(2) or (4)(b), as reduced under section 3) the sum of—

(a)

the adjusted taxable amount, and

(b)

the amount of the relevant gains.

(4)

The adjusted taxable amount” is—

(a)

if section 3(1) (annual exempt amount) does not apply to the individual for the applicable tax year, the amount given by section 2(2) or (4)(b) as it has effect by virtue of subsection (2), and

(b)

otherwise, so much of that amount as exceeds the exempt amount for the applicable tax year (within the meaning of section 3).

(5)

In subsection (1) “foreign chargeable gains” has the meaning given by section 12(4).

(6)

For the purposes of subsection (1)(c) foreign chargeable gains are remitted to the United Kingdom if they are regarded as so remitted for the purposes of section 12.

16ZCIndividual who has made election under section 16ZA and to whom remittance basis applies

(1)

This section applies to an individual for a tax year if—

(a)

the individual has made an election under section 16ZA for the tax year or any earlier tax year,

(b)

section 809B, 809D or 809E of ITA 2007 (remittance basis) applies to the individual for the tax year, and

(c)

the individual is not domiciled in the United Kingdom in the tax year.

(2)

The following steps apply for the purpose of calculating the amount on which the individual is to be charged to capital gains tax for the tax year.

Step 1

Deduct any relevant allowable losses from the chargeable gains referred to in subsection (3) in the order in which they appear there (starting with paragraph (a) of that subsection).

If allowable losses are deductible from the chargeable gains referred to in subsection (3)(b) but are not enough to exhaust them all—

(a)

those chargeable gains are to be ordered according to the day on which they accrued,

(b)

the losses are to be deducted from those gains in reverse chronological order (starting with the last chargeable gain to accrue), and

(c)

if allowable losses are deductible from chargeable gains that accrued on a particular day but are not enough to exhaust all of the chargeable gains that accrued on that day, the amount deducted from each of those chargeable gains is the appropriate proportion of the losses.

In paragraph (c) “the appropriate proportion”, in relation to a chargeable gain, is the amount of that gain divided by the total amount of the chargeable gains that accrued on the day in question.

Step 2

Treat the amount referred to in section 2(2) or (4)(a) or 16ZB(3)(a) as being equal to—

(a)

the amount it would be if there were no relevant allowable losses, minus

(b)

the total amount deducted under Step 1 from chargeable gains within subsection (3)(a) or (c).

(3)

The chargeable gains are—

(a)

foreign chargeable gains accruing to the individual in the tax year, to the extent that they are remitted to the United Kingdom in that year,

(b)

foreign chargeable gains accruing to the individual in that year, to the extent that they are not so remitted in that year, and

(c)

chargeable gains accruing to the individual in that year (other than foreign chargeable gains).

(4)

Chargeable gains treated as accruing under section 87 or 89(2) (read, where appropriate, with section 10A) are not within any paragraph of subsection (3).

(5)

Chargeable gains treated as accruing under section 12 are not within subsection (3)(c).

(6)

For the purposes of subsection (3) foreign chargeable gains are remitted to the United Kingdom if they are regarded as so remitted for the purposes of section 12.

(7)

In this section—

relevant allowable losses” means the allowable losses that section 2(2) provides may be deducted from chargeable gains accruing to the individual in the tax year, and

foreign chargeable gains” has the meaning given by section 12(4).

16ZDSection 16ZC: supplementary

(1)

This section applies if section 16ZC applies to an individual for a tax year.

(2)

Any allowable loss deducted under step 1 of section 16ZC(2) is to be regarded (for the purposes of section 2(2)(b)) as allowed as a deduction from chargeable gains accruing to the individual in the tax year.

(3)

If a deduction is made under step 1 of section 16ZC(2) from a foreign chargeable gain within section 16ZC(3)(b), the amount of the foreign chargeable gain is reduced by the amount deducted.”

63

In section 119A (increase in expenditure by reference to tax charged in relation to employment-related securities), after subsection (5) insert—

“(5A)

See also section 119B (unremitted foreign securities income).”

64

After that section insert—

“119BSection 119A: unremitted foreign securities income

(1)

For the purposes of section 119A reduce the amount that counts as employment income by so much of that amount (if any) as is unremitted foreign securities income.

(2)

In this section “unremitted foreign securities income” means income that—

(a)

is foreign securities income for the purposes of section 41A of ITEPA 2003 (employment income from ERS charged on remittance basis), and

(b)

has not been remitted to the United Kingdom by the end of the tax year in which the disposal mentioned in section 119A(1) occurs.

(3)

The following provisions apply if any of the unremitted foreign securities income is remitted to the United Kingdom after the end of the tax year referred to in subsection (2)(b).

(4)

The person liable for the capital gains tax on any chargeable gains arising on the disposal may make a claim for section 119A(2) to have effect as if the remitted income had been remitted before the end of that tax year.

(5)

All adjustments (by way of repayment of tax, assessment or otherwise) are to be made which are necessary to give effect to a claim under subsection (4).

(6)

Those adjustments may be made at any time, despite anything to the contrary in any enactment relating to capital gains tax.”

Minor and consequential amendments

65

In section 33(2A) of TMA 1970 (error or mistake)—

(a)

omit the “or” at the end of paragraph (a), and

(b)

at the end of paragraph (b) insert“, or

(c)

an error or mistake consisting of the making of a claim under section 809B of ITA 2007 (claim for remittance basis).”

66

ITTOIA 2005 is amended as follows.

67

In section 839 (annual payments payable out of relevant foreign income), omit subsection (6).

68

In section 840 (relief for backdated pensions charged on arising basis), omit subsection (4) (application of section 837).

69

After that section insert—

“840AClaims under section 840

(1)

A claim under section 840 must be made on or before the fifth anniversary of the normal self-assessment filing date for the tax year for which the relief is claimed.

(2)

All adjustments (by way of repayment of tax, assessment or otherwise) are to be made which are necessary to give effect to section 840.

(3)

Those adjustments may be made at any time, despite anything to the contrary in the Income Tax Acts.

(4)

A person's personal representatives may make any claim under section 840 which the person might have made.

(5)

If a person dies—

(a)

any tax paid by the person and repayable because of a claim under section 840 is to be repaid to the personal representatives, and

(b)

the person's personal representatives are liable for any additional tax which arises because of a claim under that section.

(6)

If subsection (5)(b) applies, the additional tax—

(a)

is to be assessed on the personal representatives, and

(b)

is a debt due and payable out of the estate.”

70

(1)

Section 857 (partners to whom the remittance basis may apply) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for paragraph (c) substitute—

“(c)

section 809B, 809D or 809E of ITA 2007 (remittance basis) applies to a partner for a tax year.”

(3)

In subsection (3), omit “for the purposes of this Act (see Part 8)”.

(4)

Accordingly, in the heading, for “may apply” substitute applies.

71

In section 878 (definitions), omit subsection (2).

72

In Schedule 2 (transitional provision etc), omit paragraphs 150 and 151.

73

In Part 2 of Schedule 4 (index of defined expressions), omit the entry for “person to whom the remittance basis applies”.

74

ITA 2007 is amended as follows.

75

In section 2(14) (overview of Act), before paragraph (a) insert—

“(za)

an alternative basis for charge (the remittance basis) for certain income and gains of certain individuals (Chapter A1),”.

76

In section 34 (personal allowances etc: introduction), after subsection (2) insert—

“(3)

For the effect of section 809B (claim for remittance basis to apply) applying to an individual for a tax year, see section 809G (no entitlement to personal allowance or blind person's allowance).”

77

In section 42 (tax reductions for married couples etc: introduction), after subsection (4) insert—

“(5)

For the effect of section 809B (claim for remittance basis to apply) applying to an individual for a tax year, see section 809G (no entitlement to tax reduction).”

78

In section 460 (residence etc of claimants for relief for life insurance payments etc), after subsection (3) insert—

“(4)

For the effect of section 809B (claim for remittance basis to apply) applying to an individual for a tax year, see section 809G (no entitlement under section 457, 458 or 459).”

79

In consequence of the amendments made by this Part of this Schedule, omit—

(a)

in ITEPA 2003, paragraph 208 of Schedule 6,

(b)

in ITTOIA 2005, paragraph 429 of Schedule 1, and

(c)

in CRCA 2005, paragraphs 102(3)(b) to (d) and 104 of Schedule 4.

Commencement

80

The amendments made by paragraphs 3(3), 4(3), 5(2), 22, 31 to 33, 38 and 64 have effect in relation to employment-related securities and employment-related securities options where the date of the acquisition is on or after 6 April 2008 (except employment-related securities acquired pursuant to a securities option acquired before 6 April 2008).

81

The other amendments made by this Part of this Schedule have effect for the tax year 2008-09 and subsequent tax years.

Transitional provision

82

(1)

This paragraph applies in relation to an individual's general earnings for the tax year 2007-08 or any earlier tax year (“the relevant tax year”) if the individual—

(a)

was UK resident in that year, but

(b)

was not domiciled in the United Kingdom, or was not ordinarily UK resident, in that year.

(2)

Section 22 or 26 of ITEPA 2003 (as amended by this Part of this Schedule) applies in relation to the general earnings as if—

(a)

section 809B of ITA 2007 (claim for remittance basis to apply) applied to the individual for the relevant tax year, and

(b)

section 22(7) or 26(6) of ITEPA 2003 were omitted.

(3)

In relation to the general earnings, the definition of “foreign employer” in section 721(1) of ITEPA 2003 has effect as if at the end there were inserted “ and not resident in the Republic of Ireland ”.

83

(1)

This paragraph applies to an individual's relevant foreign income for the tax year 2007-08 or any earlier tax year (“the relevant tax year”) if—

(a)

the individual made a claim under section 831 of ITTOIA 2005 for the relevant tax year, or

(b)

section 65(5) of ICTA (or any earlier superseded enactment corresponding to that provision) applied in relation to the individual for the relevant tax year.

(2)

Section 832 of ITTOIA 2005 (as amended by this Part of this Schedule) applies in relation to the relevant foreign income as if section 809B of ITA 2007 (claim for remittance basis to apply) applied to the individual for the relevant tax year.

(3)

But nothing in section 832 of ITTOIA 2005 applies in relation to any of the relevant foreign income that arose in the Republic of Ireland.

(4)

Nothing in section 832A of that Act applies in relation to anything remitted to the United Kingdom in the tax year 2007-08 or any earlier tax year.

84

(1)

This paragraph applies if section 12 of TCGA 1992 (or any corresponding superseded enactment) applied in relation to a gain accruing to an individual in the tax year 2007-08 or any earlier tax year (“the relevant tax year”).

(2)

Section 12 of TCGA 1992 (as amended by this Part of this Schedule) applies in relation to that gain as if section 809B of ITA 2007 (claim for remittance basis to apply) applied to the individual for the relevant tax year.

(3)

Nothing in section 10A of TCGA 1992 applies in relation to any part of the gain remitted to the United Kingdom in the tax year 2007-08 or any earlier tax year.

85

(1)

In section 809E(3)(b) of ITA 2007, the reference to a tax year for which section 809B, 809D or 809E of that Act applies to an individual includes a tax year (not later than the tax year 2007-08) in which the individual—

(a)

was UK resident, but

(b)

was not domiciled in the United Kingdom or was not ordinarily UK resident.

(2)

In relation to such a tax year, the reference there to the individual's foreign income and gains includes the individual's relevant foreign income if (and only if)—

(a)

the individual made a claim under section 831 of ITTOIA 2005 for the year, or

(b)

section 65(5) of ICTA (or any earlier superseded enactment corresponding to that provision) applied in relation to the individual for the year.

86

(1)

Section 809L of ITA 2007 (meaning of “remitted to the United Kingdom”) has effect subject to this paragraph.

(2)

If, before 6 April 2008, property (including money) consisting of or deriving from an individual's relevant foreign income was brought to or received or used in the United Kingdom by or for the benefit of a relevant person, treat the relevant foreign income as not remitted to the United Kingdom on or after that date (if it otherwise would be regarded as so remitted).

(3)

If, before 12 March 2008, property (other than money) consisting of or deriving from an individual's relevant foreign income was acquired by a relevant person, treat the relevant foreign income as not remitted to the United Kingdom on or after 6 April 2008 (if it otherwise would be regarded as so remitted).

(4)

Subject to sub-paragraphs (2) and (3), in relation to an individual's income and chargeable gains for the tax year 2007-08 or any earlier tax year, section 809L has effect as if the references to a relevant person were to the individual.

F15(4A)

For the purposes of sub-paragraph (4), section 648(2) to (5) of ITTOIA 2005 (and corresponding earlier enactments) do not apply (so that relevant foreign income which arose under a settlement in the tax year 2007-08 or any earlier tax year is to be treated as income for the tax year in which it arose).

(5)

Money” has the same meaning as in section 809Y of ITA 2007.

87

Section 809N of ITA 2007 (section 809L: gift recipients, qualifying property and enjoyment) has effect in relation to an individual's income and chargeable gains for the tax year 2007-08 or any earlier tax year as if—

(a)

the reference in subsection (2) to a relevant person were to the individual,

(b)

subsections (3) and (4) were omitted, and

(c)

the references in subsection (9) to a relevant person, all relevant persons, or relevant persons were to the individual.

88

Section 809O of ITA 2007 (section 809L: dealings where there is a connected operation) has effect in relation to an individual's income and chargeable gains for the tax year 2007-08 or any earlier tax year as if—

(a)

subsection (2) were omitted, and

(b)

the references in subsections (4) and (6) to a relevant person, all relevant persons, or relevant persons were to the individual.

89

Sections 809Q to 809S of ITA 2007 (transfers from mixed funds) do not apply for the purposes of determining whether income or chargeable gains for the tax year 2007-08 or any earlier tax year are remitted to the United Kingdom (or the amount of any such income or chargeable gains so remitted).

90

(1)

This paragraph applies if—

(a)

before 12 March 2008, money was lent to an individual outside the United Kingdom,

(b)

the loan was made for the purpose of enabling the individual to acquire an interest in residential property in the United Kingdom (and for no other purpose), and

(c)

before 6 April 2008—

(i)

the money was received in the United Kingdom,

(ii)

the individual used the money to acquire an interest in residential property in the United Kingdom (“the interest”), and

(iii)

repayment of the debt for the money (“the debt”), or of payments made under a guarantee of that repayment (“the guarantee”), was secured on the interest.

(2)

Relevant foreign income of the individual used outside the United Kingdom before 6 April 2028 to pay interest on the debt is treated as not remitted to the United Kingdom.

(3)

If, at any time on or after 12 March 2008—

(a)

any term upon which the loan was made, or any term of the guarantee, is varied or waived,

(b)

repayment of the debt, or of payments made under the guarantee, ceases to be secured on the interest,

(c)

repayment of any other debt is secured on the interest or is guaranteed by the guarantee, or

(d)

the interest ceases to be owned by the individual,

sub-paragraph (2) does not apply in relation to relevant foreign income used as mentioned there after that time.

(4)

If—

(a)

before 12 March 2008, money was lent to the individual outside the United Kingdom (“the subsequent loan”),

(b)

the subsequent loan was made for the purpose of enabling the individual to repay—

(i)

the loan mentioned in sub-paragraph (1), or

(ii)

another loan in relation to which sub-paragraphs (2) and (3) apply (by virtue of this sub-paragraph),

and for no other purpose, and

(c)

before 6 April 2008—

(i)

the individual used the money to repay the loan referred to in paragraph (b)(i) or (ii), and

(ii)

repayment of the subsequent loan, or of payments made under a guarantee of that repayment, was secured on the interest,

sub-paragraphs (2) and (3) apply in relation to the subsequent loan (and for this purpose references there to the debt or the loan are to be read as references to the subsequent loan).

(5)

In this paragraph “residential property” has the same meaning as in Part 4 of FA 2003 (see section 116 of that Act).

(6)

In this paragraph “guarantee” includes an indemnity, and “guaranteed” is to be read accordingly.

91

(1)

This paragraph applies in relation to employment-related securities if—

(a)

the date of the acquisition is on or after 6 April 2008 and on or before 31 July 2008, and

(b)

Chapter 2 of Part 7 of ITEPA 2003 (restricted securities) applies in relation to the securities by virtue only of amendments made by this Schedule.

(2)

Section 431 of ITEPA 2003 (election for full or partial disapplication of Chapter) has effect in relation to the employment-related securities as if in subsection (5)(b) for “more than 14 days after the acquisition” there were substituted “ after 14 August 2008 ”.

Part 2Non-resident companies and trusts etc

Offshore income gains

F1692

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F1693

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F1694

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F1695

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F1696

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

97

In section 734 of ITA 2007 (reduction in amount charged: previous capital gains tax charge), after subsection (4) insert—

“(5)

References in this section to chargeable gains treated as accruing to an individual include offshore income gains treated as arising to the individual (see section 762 of ICTA).”

Offshore income gains: commencement etc

98

The amendments made by paragraphs 92 to 97 have effect for the tax year 2008-09 and subsequent tax years.

99

Paragraphs 120 and 121 apply in relation to offshore income gains as if—

(a)

references to section 2(2) amounts were to OIG amounts,

(b)

references to chargeable gains were to offshore income gains, and

(c)

Step 1 of paragraph 120(2) provided that OIG amounts are to be calculated in accordance with—

(i)

section 762(2) of ICTA (the reference in the second sentence of that Step to section 87(4) of TCGA 1992 being read as a reference to section 762(2) of ICTA), or

(ii)

section 87(5) of TCGA 1992 as applied by section 762(3) of ICTA.

100

(1)

This paragraph applies if—

(a)

by virtue of section 87 or 89(2) of, or Schedule 4C to, TCGA 1992 as applied by F17regulation 20 of the Offshore Funds (Tax) Regulations 2009 (S.I. 2009/3001), income is treated under F18such regulations (regulation 17 of those Regulations as arising to an individual in the tax year 2008-09 or any subsequent tax year, and

(b)

the individual is not domiciled in the United Kingdom in that year.

(2)

The individual is not charged to income tax on the income if and to the extent that it is treated as arising by reason of—

(a)

a capital payment received (or treated as received) by the individual before 6 April 2008, or

(b)

the matching of any capital payment with the OIG amount for the tax year 2007-08 or any earlier tax year.

101

(1)

This paragraph applies if—

(a)

the trustees of a settlement have made an election under paragraph 126(1) (re-basing election),

(b)

income is treated under F19regulation 17 of the Offshore Funds (Tax) Regulations 2009 (S.I. 2009/3001) as arising to an individual in the tax year 2008-09 or any subsequent tax year (“the relevant tax year”) by reason of the matching, under section 87A of TCGA 1992 as applied by F20regulation 20 of those Regulations, of an OIG amount with a capital payment received by the individual from the trustees, and

(c)

the individual is resident or ordinarily resident, but not domiciled, in the United Kingdom in the relevant tax year.

(2)

The individual is not charged to income tax on so much of the income as exceeds the relevant proportion of that income.

(3)

Sub-paragraphs (9) to (18) of paragraph 126 (meaning of “the relevant proportion”) apply for the purposes of sub-paragraph (2) above as if—

(a)

references to section 2(2) amounts were to OIG amounts,

(b)

references to chargeable gains were to offshore income gains,

(c)

references to allowable losses were omitted, and

(d)

references to anything accruing were to it arising (and similar references were read accordingly).

102

(1)

This paragraph applies if—

(a)

in the tax year 2008-09 or any subsequent tax year, the trustees of a settlement (“the transferor settlement”) transfer all or part of the settled property to the trustees of another settlement (“the transferee settlement”),

(b)

section 90 of TCGA 1992 applies in relation to the transfer,

(c)

the trustees of the transferor settlement have made an election under paragraph 126(1),

(d)

by virtue of the matching (under section 87A of TCGA 1992 as applied by F21regulation 20 of the Offshore Funds (Tax) Regulations 2009 (S.I. 2009/3001)) of a capital payment with an OIG amount of the transferee settlement, income is treated under F22such regulations (regulation 17 of those Regulations as arising to an individual in a tax year (“the relevant tax year”), and

(e)

the individual is resident or ordinarily resident, but not domiciled, in the United Kingdom in the relevant tax year.

(2)

If paragraph 101 applies in relation to the transferee settlement, paragraph 126(9) as applied by paragraph 101(3) has effect as if the reference there to relevant assets included relevant assets within the meaning of paragraph 127(4) (as modified by sub-paragraph (4)(b) below).

(3)

If paragraph 101 does not apply in relation to the transferee settlement, the individual is not charged to income tax on so much of the income mentioned in sub-paragraph (1)(d) above as exceeds the relevant proportion of that income.

(4)

Sub-paragraphs (4) to (7) of paragraph 127 (meaning of “the relevant proportion”) apply for the purposes of sub-paragraph (3) above as if—

(a)

references section 2(2) amounts were to OIG amounts,

(b)

references to chargeable gains were to offshore income gains, and

(c)

references to anything accruing were to it arising.

Attribution of gains to members of non-resident companies

103

In section 13(2) of TCGA 1992 (attribution of gains to members of non-resident companies), for the words from “, who, if” to “and who” substitute “ and ”.

104

After section 14 of that Act insert—

“14ASection 13: non-UK domiciled individuals

(1)

This section applies if—

(a)

by virtue of section 13, part of a chargeable gain that accrues to a company on the disposal of an asset is treated as accruing to an individual in a tax year, and

(b)

the individual is not domiciled in the United Kingdom in that year.

(2)

The part of the chargeable gain treated as accruing to the individual (“the deemed chargeable gain”) is a foreign chargeable gain within the meaning of section 12 if (and only if) the asset is situated outside the United Kingdom.

(3)

For the purposes of Chapter A1 of Part 14 of ITA 2007 (remittance basis)—

(a)

treat any consideration obtained by the company on the disposal of the asset as deriving from the deemed chargeable gain, and

(b)

unless the consideration so obtained is of an amount equal to the market value of the asset, treat the asset as deriving from the deemed chargeable gain.

(4)

If—

(a)

the deemed chargeable gain is a foreign chargeable gain (within the meaning of section 12),

(b)

section 809B, 809D or 809E of ITA 2007 (remittance basis) applies to the individual for the year mentioned in subsection (1), and

(c)

any of the deemed chargeable gain is remitted to the United Kingdom in a tax year after that year,

the chargeable gain treated under section 12(2) as accruing may not be reduced or extinguished under section 13(8).”

105

The amendments made by paragraphs 103 and 104 have effect in relation to chargeable gains accruing on or after 6 April 2008.

Attribution of gains to beneficiaries

106

TCGA 1992 is amended as follows.

107

In section 85(11) (disposal of interests in non-resident settlements), for the words from “there would” to the end substitute “ chargeable gains would be treated under section 89(2) or paragraph 8 of Schedule 4C as accruing in the following year of assessment to a beneficiary who received a capital payment from the trustees of the settlement in that year. ”

108

For section 87 substitute—

“87Non-UK resident settlements: attribution of gains to beneficiaries

(1)

This section applies to a settlement for a tax year (“the relevant tax year”) if the trustees are neither resident nor ordinarily resident in the United Kingdom in that year.

(2)

Chargeable gains are treated as accruing in the relevant tax year to a beneficiary of the settlement who has received a capital payment from the trustees in the relevant tax year or any earlier tax year if all or part of the capital payment is matched (under section 87A as it applies for the relevant tax year) with the section 2(2) amount for the relevant tax year or any earlier tax year.

(3)

The amount of chargeable gains treated as accruing is equal to—

(a)

the amount of the capital payment, or

(b)

if only part of the capital payment is matched, the amount of that part.

(4)

The section 2(2) amount for a settlement for a tax year for which this section applies to the settlement is—

(a)

the amount upon which the trustees of the settlement would be chargeable to tax under section 2(2) for that year if they were resident and ordinarily resident in the United Kingdom in that year, or

(b)

if section 86 applies to the settlement for that year, the amount mentioned in paragraph (a) minus the total amount of chargeable gains treated under that section as accruing in that year.

(5)

The section 2(2) amount for a settlement for a tax year for which this section does not apply to the settlement is nil.

(6)

For the purposes of this section a settlement arising under a will or intestacy is treated as made by the testator or intestate at the time of death.

87ASection 87: matching

(1)

This section supplements section 87.

(2)

The following steps are to be taken for the purposes of matching capital payments with section 2(2) amounts.

Step 1

Find the section 2(2) amount for the relevant tax year.

Step 2

Find the total amount of capital payments received by the beneficiaries from the trustees in the relevant tax year.

Step 3

The section 2(2) amount for the relevant tax year is matched with—

(a)

if the total amount of capital payments received in the relevant tax year does not exceed the section 2(2) amount for the relevant tax year, each capital payment so received, and

(b)

otherwise, the relevant proportion of each of those capital payments.

The relevant proportion” is the section 2(2) amount for the relevant tax year divided by the total amount of capital payments received in the relevant tax year.

Step 4

If paragraph (a) of Step 3 applies—

(a)

reduce the section 2(2) amount for the relevant tax year by the total amount of capital payments referred to there, and

(b)

reduce the amount of those capital payments to nil.

If paragraph (b) of that Step applies—

(a)

reduce the section 2(2) amount for the relevant tax year to nil, and

(b)

reduce the amount of each of the capital payments referred to there by the relevant proportion of that capital payment.

Step 5

Start again at Step 1 (unless subsection (3) applies).

If the section 2(2) amount for the relevant tax year (as reduced under Step 4) is not nil, read references to capital payments received in the relevant tax year as references to capital payments received in the latest tax year which—

(a)

is before the last tax year for which Steps 1 to 4 have been undertaken, and

(b)

is a tax year in which capital payments (the amounts of which have not been reduced to nil) were received by beneficiaries.

If the section 2(2) amount for the relevant tax year (as so reduced) is nil, read references to the section 2(2) amount for the relevant tax year as the section 2(2) amount for the latest tax year—

(a)

which is before the last tax year for which Steps 1 to 4 have been undertaken, and

(b)

for which the section 2(2) amount is not nil.

(3)

This subsection applies if—

(a)

all of the capital payments received by beneficiaries from the trustees in the relevant tax year or any earlier tax year have been reduced to nil, or

(b)

the section 2(2) amounts for the relevant tax year and all earlier tax years have been reduced to nil.

(4)

The effect of any reduction under Step 4 of subsection (2) is to be taken into account in any subsequent application of this section.

87BSection 87: remittance basis

(1)

This section applies if—

(a)

chargeable gains are treated under section 87 as accruing to an individual in a tax year,

(b)

section 809B, 809D or 809E (remittance basis) applies to the individual for that year, and

(c)

the individual is not domiciled in the United Kingdom in that year.

(2)

The chargeable gains are foreign chargeable gains within the meaning of section 12 (non-UK domiciled beneficiaries to whom remittance basis applies).

(3)

For the purposes of Chapter A1 of Part 14 of ITA 2007 (remittance basis) treat relevant property or benefits as deriving from the chargeable gains.

(4)

For the purposes of subsection (3) property or a benefit is “relevant” if the capital payment by reason of which the chargeable gains are treated as accruing consists of—

(a)

the payment or transfer of the property or its becoming property to which section 60 applies, or

(b)

the conferring of the benefit.

87CSections 87 and 87A: disregard of certain capital payments

(1)

For the purposes of sections 87 and 87A as they apply in relation to a settlement, no account is to be taken of a capital payment (or a part of a capital payment) within subsection (2).

(2)

A capital payment is within this subsection if (and to the extent that) it is received (or treated as received) in a tax year from the trustees of the settlement by a company that—

(a)

is not resident in the United Kingdom in that year, and

(b)

would be a close company if it were resident in the United Kingdom,

(and is not treated under any of subsections (3) to (5) of section 96 as received by another person).”

109

(1)

Section 88 (gains of dual resident settlements) is amended as follows.

(2)

For subsection (2) substitute—

“(2)

The section 2(2) amount for a tax year for which section 87 applies by virtue of this section is what it would be if the amount mentioned in section 87(4)(a) were the assumed chargeable amount.”

(3)

Omit subsection (7).

110

(1)

Section 89 (migrant settlements) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for “section 87 if” substitute “ sections 87 and 87A if ”.

(3)

For subsections (2) and (3) substitute—

“(1A)

Subsection (2) applies to a settlement if—

(a)

a non-resident period is succeeded by a resident period, and

(b)

in relation to the last tax year in the non-resident period (“the last non-resident tax year”), section 87A(3) applied by virtue of paragraph (a) of that provision (exhaustion of capital payments).

(2)

Chargeable gains are treated as accruing in a tax year (in the resident period) to a beneficiary of the settlement who receives a capital payment from the trustees in that year if all or part of the capital payment is matched (under section 87A as it applies for that year) with the section 2(2) amount for the last non-resident tax year or any earlier tax year.

(3)

Section 87(3) and (4) and sections 87A to 87C apply for the purposes of subsection (2) as if the relevant tax year were the tax year mentioned in subsection (2).

(4)

Section 87B (remittance basis) applies in relation to chargeable gains treated under subsection (2) as accruing as it applies in relation to chargeable gains treated under section 87 as accruing.”

111

For section 90 substitute—

“90Sections 87 and 89(2): transfers between settlements

(1)

This section applies if the trustees of a settlement (“the transferor settlement”) transfer all or part of the settled property to the trustees of another settlement (“the transferee settlement”).

(2)

In this section “the year of transfer” means the tax year in which the transfer occurs.

(3)

Treat the section 2(2) amount for the transferee settlement for any tax year (not later than the year of transfer) as increased by—

(a)

the section 2(2) amount for the transferor settlement for that year (as reduced under section 87A as it applies in relation to that settlement for the year of transfer and all earlier tax years), or

(b)

if part only of the settled property is transferred, the relevant proportion of the amount mentioned in paragraph (a).

(4)

The relevant proportion”is—

(a)

the market value of the property transferred, divided by

(b)

the market value of the property comprised in the transferor settlement immediately before the transfer.

(5)

Treat the section 2(2) amount for the transferor settlement for any tax year as reduced by the amount by which the section 2(2) amount for the transferee settlement for that year is increased under subsection (3).

(6)

If neither section 87 nor section 89(2) would otherwise apply to the transferee settlement for the year of transfer—

(a)

section 89(2) to (4) apply to the settlement for that year (and subsequent tax years), and

(b)

for this purpose, references there to the last non-resident tax year are to be read as the year of transfer.

(7)

The increase under subsection (3) has effect for the year of transfer and subsequent tax years.

(8)

The reduction under subsection (5) has effect for tax years after the year of transfer.

(9)

When calculating the market value of property for the purposes of this section or section 90A in a case where the property is subject to a debt, reduce the market value by the amount of the debt.

(10)

This section does not apply to—

(a)

a transfer to which Schedule 4B applies, or

(b)

any section 2(2) amount that is in a Schedule 4C pool (see paragraph 1 of Schedule 4C).

90ASection 90: transfers made for consideration in money or money's worth

(1)

Section 90 does not apply to a transfer of settled property made for consideration in money or money's worth if the amount (or value) of that consideration is equal to or exceeds the market value of the property transferred.

(2)

The following provisions apply if—

(a)

section 90 applies to a transfer of settled property made for consideration in money or money's worth, and

(b)

the amount (or value) of that consideration is less than the market value of the property transferred.

(3)

If the transfer is of all of the settled property, for the purposes of section 90 treat the transfer as being of part only of the settled property.

(4)

Deduct the amount (or value) of the consideration from the amount of the market value referred to in section 90(4)(a).”

112

(1)

Section 91 (increase in tax payable under section 87 or 89(2)) is amended as follows.

(2)

For subsection (1) substitute—

“(1)

This section applies if—

(a)

chargeable gains are treated under section 87 or 89(2) as accruing to a beneficiary by virtue of the matching (under section 87A) of all or part of a capital payment with the section 2(2) amount for a tax year (“the relevant tax year”),

(b)

the beneficiary is charged to tax by virtue of that matching, and

(c)

the capital payment was made more than one year after the end of the relevant tax year.

(1A)

Where part of a capital payment is matched, references in subsections (2) and (3) to the capital payment are to the part matched.”

(3)

In subsection (5)(a), for the words from “year” to the end (excluding the “and”) substitute “ tax year immediately after the relevant tax year, ”.

(4)

Omit subsection (8).

113

Omit sections 92 to 95 (matching).

114

Omit—

(a)

in FA 1998, section 130(1) and (4), and paragraph 6(3) and (4) of Schedule 21,

(b)

in FA 2002, paragraph 6 of Schedule 11,

(c)

in FA 2003, section 163(3), and

(d)

in FA 2006, paragraphs 34(2)(d) and 36(2)(a) of Schedule 12.

Attribution of gains to beneficiaries: commencement etc

115

The amendments made by paragraphs 106 to 114 have effect for the tax year 2008-09 and subsequent tax years.

116

For the purposes of sections 87 and 87A of TCGA 1992, no account is to be taken of—

(a)

any capital payment received before 10 March 1981, or

(b)

any capital payment received on or after that date but before 6 April 1984, so far as it represents a chargeable gain which accrued to the trustees before 6 April 1981.

117

In the application of section 87 of TCGA 1992 for a tax year by virtue of section 88, no account is to be taken of any capital payment received before 6 April 1991.

118

(1)

This paragraph applies if—

(a)

section 87 of TCGA 1992 applies to a settlement for the tax year 2008-09 or any subsequent tax year (“the tax year”),

(b)

the settlement was made before 17 March 1998,

(c)

none of the settlors fulfilled the residence requirements when the settlement was made, and

(d)

none of the settlors fulfils the residence requirements in the tax year.

(2)

For the purposes of that section as it applies to the settlement for the tax year, no account is to be taken of—

(a)

any gains or losses accruing to the trustees of the settlement before 17 March 1998, or

(b)

any capital payments received before that date.

(3)

A settlor “fulfils the residence requirements” when the settlor is—

(a)

resident or ordinarily resident in the United Kingdom, and

(b)

domiciled in any part of the United Kingdom.

119

Section 87C of TCGA 1992 does not apply in relation to any capital payment received before 6 April 2008.

120

(1)

This paragraph applies to a settlement if section 87 or 89(2) of TCGA 1992 applied to it for the tax year 2007-08 or any earlier tax year.

(2)

The following steps are to be taken for the purposes of calculating the section 2(2) amount for the settlement for the tax year 2007-08 and earlier tax years.

Step 1

Calculate (in accordance with section 87 and, where appropriate, section 88) the section 2(2) amount for the settlement for the tax year 2007-08 and earlier tax years.

For this purpose, references in section 87(4) and (5) of TCGA 1992 (as substituted) to section 87 of that Act applying to a settlement for a tax year are to be read as references to section 87 of that Act (as it had effect before that substitution) applying to a settlement for a tax year.

Step 2

Find the total amount of chargeable gains treated under section 87 or 89(2) as accruing to beneficiaries of the settlement in the tax year 2007-08 or any earlier tax year (“the total deemed gains”).

Step 3

Find the earliest tax year for which the section 2(2) amount is not nil.

If the section 2(2) amount for that year is less than or equal to the total deemed gains, reduce that section 2(2) amount to nil.

Otherwise, reduce that section 2(2) amount by the amount of the total deemed gains.

Step 4

Reduce the total deemed gains by the amount by which the section 2(2) amount was reduced under Step 3.

Step 5

If the total deemed gains is not nil, start again at Step 3.

For this purpose, read references to the earliest tax year for which the section 2(2) amount is not nil as references to the earliest tax year—

(a)

which is after the last tax year for which Steps 3 and 4 have been undertaken, and

(b)

for which the section 2(2) amount is not nil.

(3)

If, before 6 April 2008, the trustees of the settlement made a transfer of value to which Schedule 4B to TCGA 1992 applied, sub-paragraph (2) has effect subject to such modifications as are just and reasonable on account of Schedule 4C to that Act having applied in relation to the settlement.

(4)

This paragraph does not apply if section 90 of TCGA 1992 applied to a transfer of settled property by or to the trustees of the settlement that was made before 6 April 2008 (see paragraph 121).

121

(1)

If section 90 of TCGA 1992 (as originally enacted) applied to a transfer of settled property made before 6 April 2008, this paragraph applies in relation to the transferor settlement and the transferee settlement.

(2)

In this paragraph “the year of transfer” means the tax year in which the transfer occurred.

(3)

The following steps are to be taken for the purpose of calculating the section 2(2) amount for the transferor and transferee settlements for the tax year 2007-08 and earlier tax years.

Step 1

Take the steps in paragraph 120(2) for the purpose of calculating the section 2(2) amount (at the end of the year of transfer) for the transferor settlement for the year of transfer and earlier tax years.

For this purpose, read references there to the tax year 2007-08 as references to the year of transfer.

Step 2

Take the steps in paragraph 120(2) for the purpose of calculating the section 2(2) amount (before the year of transfer) for the transferee settlement for the tax year before the year of transfer and earlier tax years.

For this purpose, read references there to the tax year 2007-08 as references to the tax year before the year of transfer.

Step 3

Calculate the section 2(2) amount for the transferee settlement for the year of transfer.

Step 4

Treat the section 2(2) amount for the transferee settlement for the year of transfer or any earlier tax year (as calculated under Step 2 or 3) as increased by—

(a)

the section 2(2) amount for the transferor settlement for that year (as calculated under Step 1), or

(b)

if part only of the settled property was transferred, the relevant proportion of the amount mentioned in paragraph (a).

“The relevant proportion” here has the same meaning as in section 90(4) of TCGA 1992 (as substituted by this Schedule).

Step 5

Treat the section 2(2) amount for the transferor settlement for any tax year as reduced by the amount by which the section 2(2) amount for the transferee settlement for that year is increased under Step 4.

Step 6

Take the steps in paragraph 120(2) for the purpose of calculating the section 2(2) amount for the transferor settlement for the tax year 2007-08 and earlier tax years.

For this purpose—

(a)

treat the section 2(2) amount for the year of transfer or any earlier tax year as the amount calculated by taking Steps 1 and 5 above, and

(b)

reduce the total deemed gains by the amount of the total deemed gains calculated by taking Step 1 above.

Step 7

Take the steps in paragraph 120(2) for the purpose of calculating the section 2(2) amount for the transferee settlement for the tax year 2007-08 and earlier tax years.

For this purpose—

(a)

treat the section 2(2) amount for the year of transfer or any earlier tax year as the amount calculated by taking Steps 2 to 4 above, and

(b)

reduce the total deemed gains by the amount of the total deemed gains calculated by taking Step 2 above.

(4)

This paragraph applies with any necessary modifications in relation to a settlement as respects which more than one relevant transfer was made.

(5)

In sub-paragraph (4) “relevant transfer” means a transfer—

(a)

made before 6 April 2008, and

(b)

to which section 90 of TCGA 1992 applied.

(6)

If, before 6 April 2008, the trustees of the transferor or transferee settlement made a transfer of value to which Schedule 4B to TCGA 1992 applied, this paragraph has effect subject to such modifications as are just and reasonable on account of Schedule 4C to that Act having applied in relation to the settlement.

122

(1)

If all of a capital payment would (in the tax year 2008-09) have been left out of account by virtue of section 87(6) of TCGA 1992 as originally enacted, the amount of that capital payment is reduced to nil.

(2)

If part of a capital payment would (in the tax year 2008-09) have been left out of account by virtue of section 87(6) of TCGA 1992 as originally enacted, the amount of that capital payment is reduced by the amount of that part.

(3)

If—

(a)

chargeable gains were treated under section 87 or 89(2) of, or paragraph 8 of Schedule 4C to, TCGA 1992 as accruing in the tax year 2007-08 or any earlier tax year to a beneficiary,

(b)

more than one capital payment that the beneficiary had received was taken into account for the purposes of determining the amount of chargeable gains treated as accruing to the beneficiary, and

(c)

the amount of those chargeable gains was less than the total amount of capital payments taken into account,

for the purposes of this paragraph treat section 87(6) of TCGA 1992 as originally enacted as having effect in relation to earlier capital payments before later ones.

(4)

References in this paragraph to section 87(6) of TCGA 1992 include that provision as it would (but for the amendments made by this Schedule) have applied by virtue of section 762(3) of ICTA (offshore income gains).

(5)

References in this paragraph to chargeable gains include offshore income gains.

123

Section 89(2) of TCGA 1992 as substituted applies to a settlement for the tax year 2008-09 (and subsequent tax years) if section 89(2) of that Act as originally enacted would (but for the amendments made by this Schedule) have applied to the settlement for the tax year 2008-09.

124

(1)

This paragraph applies if—

(a)

chargeable gains are treated under section 87 or 89(2) of TCGA 1992 as accruing to an individual in the tax year 2008-09 or any subsequent tax year, and

(b)

the individual is not domiciled in the United Kingdom in that year.

(2)

The individual is not charged to capital gains tax on the chargeable gains if and to the extent that they are treated as accruing by reason of—

(a)

a capital payment received (or treated as received) by the individual before 6 April 2008, or

(b)

the matching of any capital payment with the section 2(2) amount for the tax year 2007-08 or any earlier tax year.

125

(1)

This paragraph applies in relation to a settlement for the tax year 2008-09 or any subsequent tax year (“the relevant tax year”) if—

(a)

an individual who was resident or ordinarily resident, but not domiciled, in the United Kingdom in the tax year 2007-08 received a capital payment from the trustees of the settlement on or after 12 March 2008 but before 6 April 2008, and

(b)

the individual is resident or ordinarily resident, but not domiciled, in the United Kingdom in the relevant tax year.

(2)

For the purposes of sections 87 to 89 of TCGA 1992 as they apply in relation to the settlement for the relevant tax year, no account is to be taken of the capital payment.

126

(1)

The following provisions apply to a settlement if—

(a)

section 87 applies to the settlement for the tax year 2008-09, and

(b)

the trustees of the settlement have made an election under this sub-paragraph.

(2)

An election under sub-paragraph (1) may only be made on or before the first 31 January to occur after the end of the first tax year (beginning with the tax year 2008-09) in which an event within either of the following paragraphs occurs—

(a)

a capital payment is received (or treated as received) by a beneficiary of the settlement, and the beneficiary is resident in the United Kingdom in the tax year in which it is received, and

(b)

the trustees transfer all or part of the settled property to the trustees of another settlement, and section 90 of TCGA 1992 applies in relation to the transfer.

(3)

For a tax year as respects which the settlement has a Schedule 4C pool, the reference in sub-paragraph (2)(a) above to a capital payment received (or treated as received) by a beneficiary of the settlement is to be read as a capital payment received (or treated as received) by a beneficiary of a relevant settlement from the trustees of a relevant settlement.

(4)

Paragraph 8A of that Schedule (relevant settlements) applies for the purposes of sub-paragraph (3) above.

(5)

An election under sub-paragraph (1) is irrevocable.

(6)

An election under that sub-paragraph must be made in the way and form specified by the Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs.

(7)

Sub-paragraph (8) applies if—

(a)

by virtue of the matching of a capital payment with the section 2(2) amount for the settlement for the tax year 2008-09 or any subsequent tax year (“the relevant tax year”), chargeable gains are treated under section 87 or 89(2) of, or paragraph 8 of Schedule 4C to, TCGA 1992 as accruing to an individual in a tax year, and

(b)

the individual is resident, but not domiciled, in the United Kingdom in that year.

(8)

The individual is not charged to capital gains tax on so much of the chargeable gains as exceeds the relevant proportion of those gains.

(9)

The relevant proportion is—

ABmath

where—

A is what would be the section 2(2) amount for the settlement for the relevant tax year, if immediately before 6 April 2008 every relevant asset had been sold by the trustees (or the company concerned) and immediately re-acquired by them (or it) at the market value at that time, and

B is the section 2(2) amount for the settlement for the relevant tax year.

(10)

For the purposes of sub-paragraph (9) an asset is a “relevant asset” if—

(a)

by reason of the asset, a chargeable gain or allowable loss accrues to the trustees in the relevant tax year, and

(b)

the asset has been comprised in the settlement from the beginning of 6 April 2008 until the time of the event giving rise to the chargeable gain or allowable loss.

(11)

For those purposes, an asset is also a “relevant asset” if—

(a)

by reason of the asset, chargeable gains are treated under section 13 of TCGA 1992 as accruing to the trustees in the relevant tax year,

(b)

the company to which the chargeable gains actually accrue has owned the asset from the beginning of 6 April 2008 until the time of the event giving rise to those chargeable gains, and

(c)

had the company disposed of the asset at any time in the relevant period, part of the chargeable gains (if any) accruing on the disposal would have been treated under section 13 of TCGA 1992 as accruing to the trustees.

(12)

In sub-paragraph (11)(c) “the relevant period” means the period beginning at the beginning of 6 April 2008 and ending immediately before the event giving rise to the chargeable gains.

(13)

If—

(a)

by reason of an asset which would not otherwise be a relevant asset (“the new asset”), chargeable gains or allowable losses accrue, or are treated under section 13 as accruing, to the trustees in the relevant tax year,

(b)

the value of the new asset derives wholly or in part from another asset (“the original asset”), and

(c)

section 43 of TCGA 1992 applies in relation to the calculation of the chargeable gains or allowable losses,

the new asset (or part of that asset) is a “relevant asset” if the condition in sub-paragraph (10)(b) or the conditions in sub-paragraph (11)(b) and (c) would be met were the references there to the asset to be read as references to the new asset or the original asset.

(14)

If—

(a)

on or after 6 April 2008, a company (“company A”) disposes of an asset to another company (“company B”), and

(b)

section 171 of TCGA (transfers within groups) (as applied by section 14(2) of that Act) applies in relation to the disposal,

for the purposes of sub-paragraph (11) (and this sub-paragraph) treat company B as having owned the asset throughout the period when company A owned it.

(15)

If an asset is a relevant asset by virtue of sub-paragraph (14), for the purposes of sub-paragraph (9)—

(a)

treat the chargeable gains as having accrued to the company which owned the asset at the beginning of 6 April 2008, and

(b)

treat the proportion of those chargeable gains attributable under section 13 of TCGA 1992 to the trustees as being the proportion of the chargeable gains actually accruing that are so attributable.

(16)

If—

(a)

an asset would otherwise be a “relevant asset” within sub-paragraph (11), and

(b)

the proportion of chargeable gains treated under section 13 of TCGA 1992 as accruing to the trustees by reason of the asset (“the relevant proportion”) is greater than the minimum proportion,

for the purposes of sub-paragraph (9) treat the appropriate proportion of the asset as a relevant asset and the rest of the asset as if it were not a relevant asset.

(17)

The minimum proportion” is the smallest proportion of chargeable gains (if any) that would have been attributable to the trustees on a disposal of the asset at any time in the relevant period (as defined by sub-paragraph (12)).

(18)

The appropriate proportion” is the minimum proportion divided by the relevant proportion.

127

(1)

This paragraph applies if—

(a)

in the tax year 2008-09 or any subsequent tax year, the trustees of a settlement (“the transferor settlement”) transfer all or part of the settled property to the trustees of another settlement (“the transferee settlement”),

(b)

section 90 of TCGA 1992 applies in relation to the transfer,

(c)

the trustees of the transferor settlement have made an election under paragraph 126(1),

(d)

by virtue of the matching of a capital payment with the section 2(2) amount for the transferee settlement for the tax year 2008-09 or any subsequent tax year (“the relevant tax year”), chargeable gains are treated under section 87 or 89(2) of, or paragraph 8 of Schedule 4C to, TCGA 1992 as accruing to an individual in a tax year, and

(e)

the individual is resident, but not domiciled, in the United Kingdom in that year.

(2)

If the trustees of the transferee settlement have made an election under paragraph 126(1), paragraph 126(7) to (9) have effect in relation to the transferee settlement for that year as if the reference in paragraph 126(9) to relevant assets included relevant assets within the meaning of this paragraph.

(3)

If the trustees of the transferee settlement have not made an election under paragraph 126(1), the individual is not charged to capital gains tax on so much of the chargeable gains mentioned in sub-paragraph (1)(d) above as exceeds the relevant proportion of those gains.

(4)

The relevant proportion is—

ABmath

where—

A is what would be the section 2(2) amount for the transferee settlement for the relevant tax year, if immediately before 6 April 2008 every relevant asset had been sold by the company concerned and immediately re-acquired by it at the market value at that time, and

B is the section 2(2) amount for the transferee settlement for the relevant tax year.

(5)

For the purposes of this paragraph an asset is a “relevant asset” if—

(a)

by reason of the asset, chargeable gains are treated under section 13 of TCGA 1992 as accruing to the trustees of the transferee settlement in the relevant tax year,

(b)

the company to which the chargeable gains actually accrue has owned the asset from the beginning of 6 April 2008 until the time of the event giving rise to those chargeable gains,

(c)

had the company disposed of the asset at any time in the relevant period, part of the chargeable gains (if any) accruing on the disposal would have been treated under section 13 of TCGA 1992 as accruing to—

(i)

the trustees of the transferor settlement (if the disposal had been made before the transfer), or

(ii)

the trustees of the transferee settlement (if it had not).

(6)

In sub-paragraph (5)(c) “the relevant period” means the period beginning at the beginning of 6 April 2008 and ending immediately before the event giving rise to the chargeable gains.

(7)

Sub-paragraphs (13) to (18) of paragraph 126 apply for the purposes of this paragraph (with such modifications as are necessary) as they apply for the purposes of that paragraph.

Attribution of gains to beneficiaries: cases involving transfers of value

128

TCGA 1992 is amended as follows.

129

(1)

Section 85A (transfers of value: attribution of gains to beneficiaries and treatment of losses) is amended as follows.

(2)

After subsection (2) insert—

“(2A)

For the purposes of sections 87 to 89, no account is to be taken of any section 2(2) amount in a Schedule 4C pool (see paragraph 1 of Schedule 4C).”

(3)

For subsection (3) substitute—

“(3)

When calculating the section 2(2) amount for a settlement for a tax year (within the meaning of section 87), no account is to be taken of any chargeable gains or allowable losses accruing by virtue of Schedule 4B.

Nothing in this subsection affects any increase in a section 2(2) amount by virtue of paragraph 1(3A) or 7B(2)(b) of Schedule 4C.”

130

In paragraph 3 of Schedule 4B (transfers of value by trustees linked with trustee borrowing: settlements), for sub-paragraph (4) substitute—

“(4)

A settlement is “within section 87” for a tax year if—

(a)

section 87 applies to the settlement for that year, or

(b)

chargeable gains would be treated under section 89(2) as accruing in that year to a beneficiary who received a capital payment from the trustees of the settlement in that year.

(5)

The reference in subsection (4)(b) to chargeable gains treated as accruing includes offshore income gains treated as arising.”

131

Schedule 4C (transfers of value: attribution of gains to beneficiaries) is amended as follows.

132

In paragraph 1, for sub-paragraphs (2) and (3) substitute—

“(2)

The transferor settlement is regarded for the purposes of this Schedule as having a “Schedule 4C pool”.

(3)

The Schedule 4C pool contains the section 2(2) amounts for the settlement that are outstanding at the end of the tax year in which the original transfer is made (see paragraph 1A).

(3A)

The section 2(2) amount for that tax year is increased by—

(a)

the amount of Schedule 4B trust gains accruing by virtue of the original transfer (see paragraphs 3 to 7), and

(b)

the total amount of any further Schedule 4B trust gains accruing by virtue of any further transfers of value to which that Schedule applies that are made by the trustees in that tax year.”

133

After that paragraph insert—

“Outstanding section 2(2) amounts

1A

(1)

The following steps are to be taken for the purpose of calculating the section 2(2) amounts for a settlement that are outstanding at the end of a tax year (“the relevant tax year”).

Step 1

Find the section 2(2) amount for the settlement for the relevant tax year and earlier tax years, as reduced under section 87A as it applies for the relevant tax year and earlier tax years.

Step 2

This Step applies if, by virtue of the matching of the section 2(2) amount for the settlement for a tax year (“the applicable year”) with a capital payment, chargeable gains are treated under section 87 or 89(2) as accruing in the relevant tax year to a beneficiary who is not chargeable to tax for that year.

Increase the section 2(2) amount for the applicable year (found under Step 1) by the amount of the chargeable gains.

(2)

For the purposes of Step 1 of sub-paragraph (1) take into account the effect of section 90 in relation to any transfer of settled property from or to the trustees of the settlement made in or before the relevant tax year.

(3)

For the purposes of this Schedule a beneficiary is “chargeable to tax” for a tax year if the beneficiary is resident or ordinarily resident in the United Kingdom in that year.”

134

In paragraph 4(2) (chargeable amount: non-resident settlement), at the end insert “ (and had made the disposals which Schedule 4B treats them as having made) ”.

135

In paragraph 5(2)(a) (chargeable amount: dual resident settlement), after “apply” insert “ (and the disposals which Schedule 4B treats them as having made were made) ”.

136

Omit paragraph 7A (and the heading before it).

137

For paragraph 7B substitute—

“7B

(1)

This paragraph applies if the trustees of the transferor settlement make a further transfer of value to which Schedule 4B applies in a tax year (“the year of the transfer”) after the tax year mentioned in paragraph 1(3).

(2)

If the settlement has a Schedule 4C pool at the beginning of the year of the transfer—

(a)

the section 2(2) amounts in the Schedule 4C pool are increased by the section 2(2) amounts for the settlement that are outstanding at the end of the year of the transfer, and

(b)

the section 2(2) amount in the pool for the year of transfer is increased (or further increased) by the amount of Schedule 4B trust gains accruing by virtue of the further transfer.

(3)

If the settlement does not have a Schedule 4C pool at the beginning of the year of the transfer, this Schedule applies in relation to the further transfer as it applied in relation to the original transfer.

(4)

For the purposes of this paragraph a settlement has a Schedule 4C pool until the end of the tax year in which all section 2(2) amounts in the pool have been reduced to nil.”

138

For paragraph 8 substitute—

“8

(1)

Chargeable gains are treated as accruing in a tax year (“the relevant tax year”) to a beneficiary who has received a capital payment from the trustees of a relevant settlement in the relevant tax year or any earlier tax year if all or part of the capital payment is matched (under section 87A as it applies for the relevant tax year) with the section 2(2) amount in the Schedule 4C pool for the relevant tax year or any earlier tax year.

(2)

The amount of chargeable gains treated as accruing is equal to—

(a)

the amount of the capital payment, or

(b)

if only part of the capital payment is matched, the amount of that part.

(3)

Section 87A applies for a tax year for the purposes of matching capital payments received from the trustees of a relevant settlement with section 2(2) amounts in the Schedule 4C pool as if—

(a)

references to section 2(2) amounts were to section 2(2) amounts in the Schedule 4C pool,

(b)

references to a capital payment received from the trustees by a beneficiary were to a capital payment received from the trustees of a relevant settlement by a beneficiary who is chargeable to tax for that year, and

(c)

for section 87A(3)(b) there were substituted—

“(b)

all section 2(2) amounts in the Schedule 4C pool have been reduced to nil.”

(4)

Section 87A applies for a tax year by virtue of this paragraph before it applies for that year otherwise than by virtue of this paragraph; but this is subject to sub-paragraph (5).

(5)

If section 87A applies for a tax year by virtue of section 762(3) of the Taxes Act (offshore income gains), it applies for that year by virtue of that provision before it applies for that year by virtue of this paragraph.”

139

After paragraph 8A insert—

“Attribution of gains: remittance basis

8AA

Section 87B (remittance basis) applies in relation to chargeable gains treated under paragraph 8 as accruing as it applies in relation to chargeable gains treated under section 87 as accruing.”

140

Omit paragraphs 8B and 8C (including the heading before paragraph 8B).

141

For paragraph 9 (and the heading before it) substitute—

“Attribution of gains: disregard of certain capital payments

9

(1)

For the purposes of paragraph 8 (and section 87A as it applies for the purposes of that paragraph), no account is to be taken of a capital payment to which any of sub-paragraphs (2) to (4) applies (or a part of a capital payment to which sub-paragraph (4) applies).

(2)

This sub-paragraph applies to a capital payment received before the tax year preceding the tax year in which the original transfer is made.

(3)

This sub-paragraph applies to a capital payment that—

(a)

is received by a beneficiary of a settlement from the trustees in a tax year during the whole of which the trustees—

(i)

are resident and ordinarily resident in the United Kingdom, and

(ii)

are not Treaty non-resident,

(b)

was made before any transfer of value to which Schedule 4B applies was made, and

(c)

was not made in anticipation of the making of any such transfer of value or of chargeable gains accruing under that Schedule.

(4)

This sub-paragraph applies to a capital payment if (and to the extent that) it is received (or treated as received) in a tax year from the trustees by a company that—

(a)

is not resident in the United Kingdom in that year, and

(b)

would be a close company if it were resident in the United Kingdom,

(and is not treated under any of subsections (3) to (5) of section 96 as received by another person).”

142

In paragraph 10 (residence of trustees from whom capital payment received)—

(a)

in sub-paragraph (1), for “sub-paragraph (2) below” substitute “ paragraph 9(3) ”, and

(b)

omit sub-paragraphs (2) and (3).

143

(1)

Paragraph 12 (attribution of gains to settlor in section 10A cases) is amended as follows.

(2)

For sub-paragraphs (1) to (3) substitute—

“(1)

This paragraph applies if—

(a)

by virtue of section 10A, an amount of chargeable gains within section 86(1)(e) that accrued in an intervening year to the trustees of a settlement would be treated as accruing to a person (“the settlor”) in the year of return, and

(b)

after paragraph 8 has applied for the year of return, the section 2(2) amount for the intervening year that is in the Schedule 4C pool for the settlement is less than the amount mentioned in paragraph (a).

(2)

The amount of chargeable gains treated as mentioned in sub-paragraph (1)(a) as accruing to the settlor in the year of return is limited to the section 2(2) amount referred to in sub-paragraph (1)(b).”

144

In paragraph 12A(3), for “87(4)” substitute “ 87(2) ”.

145

(1)

Paragraph 13 (increase in tax payable under this Schedule) is amended as follows.

(2)

For sub-paragraph (1) substitute—

“(1)

This paragraph applies if—

(a)

chargeable gains are treated under paragraph 8 as accruing to a beneficiary by virtue of the matching (under section 87A) of all or part of a capital payment with the section 2(2) amount for a tax year (“the relevant tax year”), and

(b)

the beneficiary is charged to tax by virtue of the matching.

(1A)

Where part of a capital payment is matched, references in sub-paragraphs (2) and (3) to the capital payment are to the part matched.”

(3)

In sub-paragraph (5)(a), for the words from “year of assessment” to the end (excluding the “and”) substitute “ tax year immediately after the relevant tax year, ”.

146

Omit paragraph 3 and 6(2) and (3) of Schedule 29 to FA 2003.

Attribution of gains to beneficiaries in cases involving transfers of value: commencement etc

147

The amendments made by paragraphs 128 to 146 have effect in relation to transfers of value to which Schedule 4B to TCGA 1992 applies that are made on or after 6 April 2008.

148

For the purposes of paragraph 8 of Schedule 4C to TCGA 1992 (and section 87A of that Act as it applies for the purposes of that paragraph), no account is to be taken of any capital payment received before 21 March 2000.

149

A capital payment received before 6 April 2008 is not within paragraph 9(4) of Schedule 4C to TCGA 1992 (if it otherwise would be).

150

Paragraph 124 applies in relation to chargeable gains treated under paragraph 8 of Schedule 4C to TCGA 1992 as accruing as it applies in relation to chargeable gains treated under section 87 as accruing.

151

(1)

This paragraph applies for the tax year 2008-09 or any subsequent tax year (“the relevant tax year”) if—

(a)

an individual who was resident or ordinarily resident, but not domiciled, in the United Kingdom in the tax year 2007-08 received a capital payment from the trustees of a settlement on or after 12 March 2008 but before 6 April 2008, and

(b)

the individual is resident or ordinarily resident, but not domiciled, in the United Kingdom in the relevant tax year.

(2)

For the purposes of paragraph 8 of Schedule 4C to TCGA 1992 as it applies for the relevant tax year (and section 87A of that Act as it applies for those purposes), no account is to be taken of the capital payment.

Attribution of gains to beneficiaries: existing Schedule 4C pools

152

Schedule 4C to TCGA 1992 (as it has effect without the amendments made by paragraphs 128 to 146) applies for the tax year 2008-09 and subsequent tax years in relation to Schedule 4C pools created before 6 April 2008 (“existing Schedule 4C pools”) as if paragraphs 7B and 9(2) were omitted.

153

Any reduction in the amount of a capital payment has effect for the purposes of Schedule 4C to TCGA 1992 as it applies in relation to existing Schedule 4C pools (as well as for other purposes).

154

(1)

If all of a capital payment ceases (in the tax year 2008-09 or any subsequent tax year) to be available, the amount of the capital payment is reduced to nil.

(2)

If part of a capital payment ceases (in the tax year 2008-09 or any subsequent tax year) to be available, the amount of the capital payment is reduced by the amount of that part.

(3)

A capital payment “ceases to be available” in a tax year if and to the extent that, by reason of the capital payment, chargeable gains are treated under paragraph 8 of Schedule 4C to TCGA 1992 (as it has effect in relation to existing Schedule 4C pools) as accruing in that year to the recipient.

(4)

If—

(a)

chargeable gains are treated under paragraph 8 of Schedule 4C to TCGA 1992 (as it has effect in relation to existing Schedule 4C pools) as accruing in a tax year,

(b)

more than one capital payment that the beneficiary has received is taken into account for the purposes of determining the amount of chargeable gains treated as accruing to the beneficiary, and

(c)

the amount of the chargeable gains is less than the total amount of capital payments taken into account,

sub-paragraph (3) applies in relation to earlier capital payments before later ones.

155

In any tax year—

(a)

Schedule 4C to TCGA 1992 (as amended by paragraphs 128 to 146) applies in relation to a settlement before that Schedule (as it has effect without those amendments) applies in relation to the settlement, and

(b)

that Schedule (as it has effect without those amendments) applies in relation to the settlement before section 87 or 89(2) of that Act applies in relation to the settlement.

Transfers of securities: accrued income profits

156

In section 830(4) of ITTOIA 2005 (meaning of “relevant foreign income”)—

(a)

omit the “and” at the end of paragraph (f), and

(b)

at the end of paragraph (g) insert—

“(h)

section 670A of ITA 2007 (accrued income profits),”.

157

In section 617 of ITA 2007 (accrued income profits: income charged), after subsection (6) insert—

“(7)

Subsection (1) is subject to section 832 of ITTOIA 2005 (relevant foreign income charged on remittance basis).”

158

Omit section 644 of that Act (accrued income profits: individuals to whom remittance basis applies).

159

After section 670 of that Act insert—

“Individuals to whom remittance basis applies

670AIndividuals to whom remittance basis applies

(1)

This section applies if—

(a)

accrued income profits are made by an individual as a result of a transfer of foreign securities, and

(b)

section 809B, 809D or 809E (remittance basis) applies to the individual for the tax year in which the profits are made.

(2)

Treat the accrued income profits as relevant foreign income of the individual.

(3)

For the purposes of Chapter A1 of Part 14 (remittance basis)—

(a)

if the individual is the transferor—

(i)

treat any consideration for the transfer as deriving from the accrued income profits, and

(ii)

if on the transfer the individual does not receive consideration of an amount equal to (or exceeding) the market value of the securities, treat the securities as deriving from the accrued income profits, and

(b)

if the individual is the transferee, treat the securities as deriving from the accrued income profits.

(4)

For the purposes of this section securities are “foreign” if income from them would be relevant foreign income.”

160

The amendments made by paragraphs 156 to 159 have effect in relation to transfers of securities where the settlement day is on or after 6 April 2008.

Transfers of assets abroad

F23161

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

162

In section 830(4) of ITTOIA 2005 (meaning of “relevant foreign income”), after paragraph (h) insert“and

(i)

sections 726, 730 and 735 of that Act (transfer of assets abroad: foreign deemed income).”

163

ITA 2007 is amended as follows.

164

In section 720(4) (transfer of assets abroad: charge where power to enjoy income), after “abroad)” insert “ and section 726 (non-UK domiciled individuals to whom remittance basis applies) ”.

165

For section 726 substitute—

“726Non-UK domiciled individuals to whom remittance basis applies

(1)

This section applies in relation to income treated under section 721 as arising to an individual in a tax year (“the deemed income”) if—

(a)

section 809B, 809D or 809E (remittance basis) applies to the individual for the year, and

(b)

the individual is not domiciled in the United Kingdom in the year.

(2)

For the purposes of this section the deemed income is “foreign” if (and to the extent that) the income mentioned in section 721(2) would be relevant foreign income if it were the individual's.

(3)

Treat the foreign deemed income as relevant foreign income of the individual.

(4)

For the purposes of Chapter A1 of Part 14 (remittance basis) treat so much of the income within section 721(2) as would be relevant foreign income if it were the individual's as deriving from the foreign deemed income.”

166

In section 727 (transfer of assets abroad: charge where capital sums received), after subsection (3) insert—

“(3A)

But see section 730 (non-UK domiciled individuals to whom remittance basis applies).”

167

For section 730 substitute—

“730Non-UK domiciled individuals to whom remittance basis applies

(1)

This section applies in relation to income treated under section 728 as arising to an individual in a tax year (“the deemed income”) if—

(a)

section 809B, 809D or 809E (remittance basis) applies to the individual for the year, and

(b)

the individual is not domiciled in the United Kingdom in the year.

(2)

For the purposes of this section the deemed income is “foreign” if (and to the extent that) the income mentioned in section 728(1)(a) would be relevant foreign income if it were the individual's.

(3)

Treat the foreign deemed income as relevant foreign income of the individual.

(4)

For the purposes of Chapter A1 of Part 14 (remittance basis) treat so much of the income within section 728(1)(a) as would be relevant foreign income if it were the individual's as deriving from the foreign deemed income.”

168

In section 731 (transfer of assets abroad: charge where benefit received), after subsection (2) insert—

“(2A)

But see section 735 (non-UK domiciled individuals to whom remittance basis applies).”

169

For section 735 substitute—

“735Non-UK domiciled individuals to whom remittance basis applies

(1)

This section applies if—

(a)

income is treated under section 732 as arising to an individual in a tax year (“the deemed income”),

(b)

section 809B, 809D or 809E (remittance basis) applies to the individual for the year, and

(c)

the individual is not domiciled in the United Kingdom in the year.

(2)

For the purposes of this section the deemed income is “foreign” if (and to the extent that) the relevant income to which it relates would be relevant foreign income if it were the individual's.

(3)

Treat the foreign deemed income as relevant foreign income of the individual.

(4)

For the purposes of Chapter A1 of Part 14 (remittance basis) treat relevant income, or a benefit, that relates to any part of the foreign deemed income as deriving from that part of the foreign deemed income.

735ASection 735: relevant income and benefits relating to foreign deemed income

(1)

For the purposes of section 735—

(a)

place the benefits mentioned in Step 1 in the order in which they were received by the individual (starting with the earliest benefit received),

(b)

deduct from those benefits so much of any benefit within section 734(1)(b) as gives rise as mentioned in section 734(1)(d) to chargeable gains or offshore income gains,

(c)

place the income mentioned in Step 3 for the tax years mentioned in Step 4 (“the relevant income”) in the order determined under subsection (3),

(d)

deduct from that income any income that may not be taken into account because of section 743(1) or (2) (no duplication of charges),

(e)

place the income treated under section 732(2) as arising to the individual in respect of the benefits in the order in which it is treated as arising (starting with the earliest income treated as having arisen), and

(f)

treat the income mentioned in paragraph (e) as related to—

(i)

the benefits, and

(ii)

the relevant income,

by matching that income with the benefits and the relevant income (in the orders mentioned in paragraphs (a), (c) and (e)).

(2)

In subsection (1) references to a step are to a step in section 733(1).

(3)

The order referred to in subsection (1)(c) is arrived at by taking the following steps.

Step 1

Find the relevant income for the earliest tax year (of the tax years referred to in subsection (1)(c)).

Step 2

Place so much of that income as is not foreign in the order in which it arose (starting with the earliest income to arise).

Step 3

After that, place so much of that income as is foreign in the order in which it arose (starting with the earliest income to arise).

Step 4

Repeat Steps 1 to 3.

For this purpose, read references to the relevant income for the earliest tax year as references to the relevant income for the first tax year after the last tax year in relation to which those Steps have been undertaken.

(4)

For the purposes of subsection (3) relevant income is “foreign” where it would be relevant foreign income if it were the individual's.

(5)

For those purposes treat income for a period as arising immediately before the end of the period.

(6)

Subsection (1)(d) does not apply if the income may not be taken into account because the individual has been charged to income tax under section 731 by reason of the income.”

170

The amendments made by paragraphs 161 to 169 have effect for the tax year 2008-09 and subsequent tax years.

General

171

For the purposes of this Part of this Schedule, the market value of any asset is its market value for the purposes of TCGA 1992.

F24172

(1)

Sub-paragraph (2) has effect for the purposes of—

  • paragraphs 100(1)(b), 101(1)(c) and 102(1)(e),

  • paragraph (b) of paragraph 118(3) so far as having effect for the purposes of paragraph 118(1)(d), and

  • paragraphs 124(1)(b), 126(7)(b), 127(1)(e) and 151(1)(b).

(2)

An individual not domiciled in the United Kingdom at a time in the tax year 2017-18, or a later tax year, is to be regarded as domiciled in the United Kingdom at that time if—

(a)

the individual was born in the United Kingdom,

(b)

the individual's domicile of origin was in the United Kingdom, and

(c)

the individual is resident in the United Kingdom for the tax year concerned.

F25SCHEDULE 8Rates of research and development relief and vaccine research relief

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F25SCHEDULE 9Companies in difficulty: SME R&D relief and vaccine research relief

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F25SCHEDULE 10Cap on R&D aid

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

SCHEDULE 11Venture capital schemes

Section 32

Corporate Venturing Scheme

1

Part 3 of Schedule 15 to FA 2000 (CVS: the issuing company) is amended as follows.

2

In paragraph 26 (excluded activities)—

(a)

in sub-paragraph (1), after paragraph (h) insert—

“(ha)

shipbuilding;

(hb)

producing coal;

(hc)

producing steel;”, and

(b)

in sub-paragraph (2), after the entry relating to paragraph 30 insert—

“paragraph 30A (shipbuilding);

paragraph 30B (producing coal);

paragraph 30C (producing steel);”.

3

After paragraph 30 insert—

“Excluded activities: shipbuilding

30A

In paragraph 26(1)(ha) “shipbuilding” has the same meaning as in the Framework on state aid to shipbuilding (2003/C 317/06), published in the Official Journal on 30 December 2003.

Excluded activities: producing coal

30B

(1)

This paragraph supplements paragraph 26(1)(hb).

(2)

Coal” has the meaning given by Article 2 of Council Regulation (EC) No. 1407/2002 (state aid to coal industry).

(3)

The production of coal includes the extraction of it.

Excluded activities: producing steel

30C

In paragraph 26(1)(hc) “steel” means any of the steel products listed in Annex 1 to the Guidelines on national regional aid (2006/C 54/08), published in the Official Journal on 4 March 2006.”

Enterprise Investment Scheme

4

Chapter 4 of Part 5 of ITA 2007 (EIS: the issuing company) is amended as follows.

5

In section 192 (meaning of “excluded activities”)—

(a)

in subsection (1), after paragraph (i) insert—

“(ia)

shipbuilding,

(ib)

producing coal,

(ic)

producing steel,”, and

(b)

in subsection (2), after paragraph (d) insert—

“(da)

section 196A (shipbuilding),

(db)

section 196B (producing coal),

(dc)

section 196C (producing steel),”.

6

After section 196 insert—

“196AExcluded activities: shipbuilding

In section 192(1)(ia) “shipbuilding” has the same meaning as in the Framework on state aid to shipbuilding (2003/C 317/06), published in the Official Journal on 30 December 2003.

196BExcluded activities: producing coal

(1)

This section supplements section 192(1)(ib).

(2)

Coal” has the meaning given by Article 2 of Council Regulation (EC) No. 1407/2002 (state aid to coal industry).

(3)

The production of coal includes the extraction of it.

196CExcluded activities: producing steel

In section 192(1)(ic) “steel” means any of the steel products listed in Annex 1 to the Guidelines on national regional aid (2006/C 54/08), published in the Official Journal on 4 March 2006.”

Venture capital trusts

7

Chapter 4 of Part 6 of ITA 2007 (VCTs: qualifying holdings) is amended as follows.

8

In section 303 (meaning of “excluded activities”)—

(a)

in subsection (1), after paragraph (i) insert—

“(ia)

shipbuilding,

(ib)

producing coal,

(ic)

producing steel,”, and

(b)

in subsection (2), after paragraph (d) insert—

“(da)

section 307A (shipbuilding),

(db)

section 307B (producing coal),

(dc)

section 307C (producing steel),”.

9

After section 307 insert—

“307AExcluded activities: shipbuilding

In section 303(1)(ia) “shipbuilding” has the same meaning as in the Framework on state aid to shipbuilding (2003/C 317/06), published in the Official Journal on 30 December 2003.

307BExcluded activities: producing coal

(1)

This section supplements section 303(1)(ib).

(2)

Coal” has the meaning given by Article 2 of Council Regulation (EC) No. 1407/2002 (state aid to coal industry).

(3)

The production of coal includes the extraction of it.

307CExcluded activities: producing steel

In section 303(1)(ic) “steel” means any of the steel products listed in Annex 1 to the Guidelines on national regional aid (2006/C 54/08), published in the Official Journal on 4 March 2006.”

Commencement

10

The amendments made by this Schedule are treated as having come into force on 6 April 2008.

11

But the amendments made by paragraphs 2, 3, 5 and 6 do not have effect in relation to shares issued before that date.

12

And the amendments made by paragraphs 8 and 9 do not have effect in relation to—

(a)

a relevant holding issued before that date, or

(b)

a relevant holding acquired by a company (“the investing company”) F26before 6 April 2018 by means of the investment of protected money.

13

For the purposes of paragraph 12(b) “protected money” is—

(a)

money raised by the issue before that date of shares in or securities of the investing company, or

(b)

money derived from the investment of such money.

SCHEDULE 12Tax credit for certain foreign distributions

Section 34

Part 1The tax credit

1

Chapter 3 of Part 4 of ITTOIA 2005 (dividends etc from UK resident companies etc) is amended as follows.

2

In the heading of the Chapter, for “etc.”, in the second place, substitute and tax credits etc. in respect of certain distributions.

F273

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

4

After section 397 insert—

“397ATax credits for distributions of non-UK resident companies: UK residents and eligible non-UK residents

(1)

This section applies where a UK resident or eligible non-UK resident receives a relevant distribution made by a non-UK resident company, provided that—

(a)

the company is not an offshore fund (within the meaning of section 756A of ICTA), and

(b)

the person is a minority shareholder in the company at the time the distribution is received.

(2)

The person is entitled to a tax credit equal to one-ninth of the amount or value of the grossed up distribution (but see subsections (3) and (6)).

(3)

Subsection (2) only applies so far as the distribution is brought into charge to tax, and accordingly if the person's total income is reduced by any deductions which fall to be made from the distribution, the tax credit for the distribution is reduced in the same proportion as the distribution.

(4)

The person may claim to deduct the tax credit from the income tax charged on the person's total income for the tax year in which the distribution (or the part of the distribution to which the tax credit relates) is brought into charge to tax.

(5)

If a distribution is, or is treated under any provision of the Tax Acts as, the income of a person (“P”) other than the recipient (“R”), P (not R) is treated as receiving it for the purposes of this section (and so P (not R) is entitled to a tax credit if P falls within subsection (1)).

(6)

This section is subject to the following provisions—

  • section 171(2B) of FA 1993 (no tax credit for distributions in respect of assets in Lloyd's member's premium trust fund),

  • section 504(4) of ITA 2007 (disapplication of certain provisions for income of unauthorised unit trusts),

  • section 592 of ITA 2007 (no tax credits for borrower under stock lending arrangement),

  • section 593 of ITA 2007 (no tax credits for interim holder under repo), and

  • section 594 of ITA 2007 (no tax credits for original owner under repo).

(7)

In this section—

eligible non-UK resident”, in relation to a distribution, means an individual who, at any time in the tax year in which the distribution (or the part of the distribution to which the tax credit relates) is brought into charge to tax, is a non-UK resident who meets the condition in section 56(3) of ITA 2007 (residence etc of claimants),

grossed up distribution” means the distribution increased by the amount of any tax chargeable in respect of the distribution directly or by deduction under the laws of the territory in which the company is resident, including special withholding tax,

minority shareholder”, in relation to a company, has the meaning given in section 397C,

relevant distribution”, in relation to a person, means—

(a)

a qualifying distribution arising in a relevant tax year,

(b)

a cash dividend paid over to the person under paragraph 68(4) of Schedule 2 of ITEPA 2003 (cash dividend paid over if not reinvested etc) in a relevant tax year, and

(c)

a dividend treated under section 407 as paid to the person in a relevant tax year,

relevant tax year” means the tax year 2008-09 or a subsequent tax year, and

special withholding tax” has the meaning given in section 107(3) of FA 2004.

(8)

Section 397B makes provision about the application of this section in the case of overseas dividends arising from manufactured overseas dividends (within the meaning of Chapter 2 of Part 11 of ITA 2007).

397BTax credits under section 397A: manufactured overseas dividends

(1)

This section applies where, under section 581 of ITA 2007, a person is treated as receiving an overseas dividend by virtue of having received a manufactured overseas dividend which is representative of an overseas dividend.

(2)

For the purposes of section 397A, the person is treated as receiving a relevant distribution made by a non-UK resident company that is not an offshore fund if, and only if, the manufactured overseas dividend is representative of such a distribution.

(3)

References in section 397A to the grossed up distribution have effect as if they were references to the gross amount of the overseas dividend of which the manufactured overseas dividend is representative, disregarding the amount of any overseas tax credit.

(4)

In this section—

gross amount”, in relation to a manufactured overseas dividend, has the same meaning as in Chapter 2 of Part 11 of ITA 2007 (manufactured payments) (see section 589 of that Act),

manufactured overseas dividend” and “overseas tax credit” have the same meaning as in Chapter 2 of that Part (see sections 581 and 591 of that Act), and

overseas dividend” has the same meaning as in that Part (see section 567 of that Act).

397CMeaning of “minority shareholder”

(1)

In section 397A “minority shareholder”, in relation to a non-UK resident company, means a person whose shareholding in the company is less than 10% of the company's issued share capital.

(2)

Subsections (3) to (6) make provision about the circumstances in which shares form part of a person's shareholding in a company for the purposes of this section.

(3)

Shares form part of a person's shareholding in a company to the extent that the person is beneficially entitled to the shares or to a distribution arising in respect of the shares (or both).

(4)

Shares form part of a person's shareholding in the company where—

(a)

a person is a settlor in relation to a settlement, and

(b)

income arising from shares comprised in the settlement is treated for income tax purposes as the income of that person and of that person alone.

(5)

Shares form part of the shareholding in a company of a person (“P”) if—

(a)

they form part of the shareholding in the company of a person connected with P,

(b)

P transferred the shares to the connected person or arranged for the connected person to acquire the shares, and

(c)

the purpose of the transfer or arrangement was wholly or mainly to enable P to avoid tax.

(6)

Shares form part of a person's shareholding in a company if that person has transferred the shares to another person under a repo or stock lending arrangement.

(7)

In this section—

repo” has the same meaning as in Part 11 of ITA 2007 (see section 569 of that Act),

settlement” and “settlor” have the same meaning as in Chapter 5 of Part 5 of this Act, and

stock lending arrangement” has the same meaning as in Part 11 of ITA 2007 (see section 568 of that Act).”

F285

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F296

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Part 2Consequential provision

TMA 1970

7

TMA 1970 is amended as follows.

F308

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F309

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F3010

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F3011

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F3012

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F3013

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F3014

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

ICTA

F3015

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

FA 1993

F3016

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

ITTOIA 2005

17

ITTOIA 2005 is amended as follows.

18

In section 403(1) (dividends from non-UK resident companies: income charged), omit “full”.

F3119

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F3220

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

21

In section 408 (reduction in tax due in cases within section 407), after subsection (2) insert—

“(2A)

In subsection (2) “the tax due” means the amount of tax due as a result of section 407 after deduction of the tax credit determined in accordance with section 407(4A).”

22

In section 688(1) (income not otherwise charged), omit “full”.

ITA 2007

23

ITA 2007 is amended as follows.

24

In section 425(5) (gift aid: deductions when calculating total amount of income tax to which individual charged for a tax year)—

(a)

in paragraph (a), omit “and” at the end of sub-paragraph (v), and

F33(b)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F3425

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F3526

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

27

(1)

Section 592 (no tax credits for borrower under stock lending arrangement) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1)—

F36(a)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

(b)

in paragraph (c), omit “UK”, and

F37(c)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F38(3)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

28

(1)

Section 593 (no tax credits for interim holder under repo) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1)—

F39(a)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

(b)

in paragraphs (b) and (d), omit “UK”, and

F40(c)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F41(3)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

29

(1)

Section 594 (no tax credits for original owner under repo) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1)—

F42(a)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

(b)

in paragraph (b), omit “UK”,

(c)

in paragraph (d)—

F43(i)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

(ii)

omit “UK”, and

F44(d)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F45(3)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F4630

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F4731

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F48SCHEDULE 13Company gains from investment life insurance contracts

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

SCHEDULE 14Company gains from investment life insurance contracts: consequential amendments etc

Section 36

ICTA

1

ICTA is amended as follows.

F492

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

3

Omit sections 539 to 551A (corporation tax in respect of gains arising in connection with life policies etc).

4

(1)

Section 552 (information: duty of insurers) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (3), omit—

(a)

the words from “(or” to “year)”, and

(b)

“, and the corresponding financial year,”.

(3)

In subsection (5)—

(a)

in paragraph (b)—

(i)

omit “section 546C(7)(a) of this Act and”, and

(ii)

for “the year and the insurance year end” substitute “ the insurance year ends ”, and

(b)

in paragraph (c), omit—

(i)

“this Chapter and”,

(ii)

in sub-paragraph (i), “the amount or value of any relevant capital payments and”,

(iii)

in sub-paragraph (iii), the words from the beginning to “656 and”, and

(iv)

in sub-paragraph (v), the words from the beginning to “year and”.

(4)

In subsection (6)—

(a)

in paragraph (b)—

(i)

omit “section 546C(7)(a) of this Act (and”,

(ii)

omit the closing bracket after “2005”, and

(iii)

for “the year (and the insurance year)” substitute “ the insurance year ”, and

(b)

in paragraph (c), omit “section 546C(7)(a) of this Act (and” and the closing bracket after “2005”.

(5)

In subsection (7)—

(a)

in paragraph (a), omit “, or, where the policy holder is a company, the financial year,”, and

(b)

in paragraph (b), for the words from “section 546C(7)(a)” to “insurance year)” substitute “ section 514(1) of ITTOIA 2005, the period of three months following the end of the insurance year ”.

(6)

In subsection (8)(c), omit the words from “or” to “financial year”.

(7)

In subsection (9)—

(a)

in the words before paragraph (a), omit “or financial year”,

(b)

in paragraph (a), for the words from “section 546C(7)(b)” to the end substitute “ subsection (1) of section 514 of ITTOIA 2005, the year of assessment which includes the end of the insurance year mentioned in subsection (3) and (4) of that section; ”, and

(c)

in paragraph (b) omit “or financial year”.

(8)

In subsection (10)—

(a)

in the definition of “amount”, omit “section 553(3) of this Act and”,

(b)

in the definition of “chargeable event”, omit “this Chapter and”,

(c)

omit the definition of “financial year”,

(d)

after that definition insert—

““insurance year” has the same meaning as in Chapter 9 of Part 4 of ITTOIA 2005 (see section 499 of that Act);”,

(e)

in the definition of “the relevant year of assessment”, omit paragraph (b) and the “or” before it, and

(f)

omit the definitions of “section 546 excess” and “year”.

(9)

Omit subsection (11).

(10)

In subsection (13), omit “section 548A above or”.

5

In section 552ZA(3) (information: supplementary provisions), omit “section 546C(7)(a) of this Act and”.

6

In section 552A(12) (tax representatives)—

(a)

omit “this Chapter and” in each place, and

(b)

for “have” substitute “ has ” in each place.

7

Omit sections 553 to 553C (further provisions about corporation tax in respect of gains arising in connection with life policies etc).

8

Omit sections 656 to 658 (purchased life annuities).

9

In paragraph 20 of Schedule 15 (qualifying policies)—

(a)

in sub-paragraph (1)(a), omit “and 540 and 541”, and

(b)

in sub-paragraph (3)—

(i)

in paragraph (a), omit “and 540 and 541”, and

(ii)

omit paragraph (b) and the “and” before it.

ITTOIA 2005

10

ITTOIA 2005 is amended as follows.

11

In section 467(5) (persons liable: UK resident trustees), for paragraph (c) substitute—

“(c)

neither section 465 nor section 466 applies.”

12

In section 469(2) (two or more persons interested in policy or contract), omit “above and section 547(1) of ICTA (persons liable for tax etc.)”.

13

Omit section 486 (exclusion of maturity of capital redemption policies in certain circumstances).

14

In section 501 (part surrenders: loans)—

(a)

in subsection (1), insert “ or ” at the end of paragraph (a) and omit paragraph (c) and the “or” before it”, and

(b)

omit subsection (4).

15

In section 541B(7) (section 541A: further definitions), omit paragraph (b) and the “or” before it.

16

In Schedule 1 (consequential amendments), omit paragraphs 210 to 221 and 226 to 228.

Other repeals

17

Omit—

(a)

in FA 1989, section 90 and Schedule 9,

(b)

in FA 1991, section 76(1),

(c)

in F(No.2)A 1992, paragraph 15 of Schedule 9,

(d)

in FA 1995, section 55(8),

(e)

in FA 1996, section 168(4) to (6) and paragraph 1A of Schedule 9,

(f)

in FA 1997, section 79,

(g)

in FA 1998, sections 88 and 89 and paragraphs 1 to 4 of Schedule 14,

(h)

in FA 1999, section 80 and paragraphs 16 and 18(3) of Schedule 4,

(i)

in FA 2000, in section 46(2A), “547(1)(b)”,

(j)

in FA 2001, section 83(2) and Part 1 of Schedule 28,

(k)

in FA 2002, section 87 and paragraph 21 of Schedule 25,

(l)

in FA 2003, section 171 and Schedule 34,

(m)

in FA 2004, paragraphs 25 and 27 of Schedule 35,

(n)

in ITTOIA 2005, paragraph (b) of section 473(2) and the “or” before it, paragraphs 268(1) and (2), 269 and 493 of Schedule 1 and paragraph 86(3) of Schedule 2,

(o)

in ITA 2007, paragraphs 111 and 141 of Schedule 1, and

(p)

in FA 2007, section 29(1), paragraphs 45 and 46 of Schedule 7 and paragraph 6(3) of Schedule 10.

Commencement

18

(1)

The amendments made by this Schedule—

(a)

so far as relating to corporation tax, have effect for accounting periods beginning on or after 1 April 2008, and

(b)

so far as relating to income tax, have effect for the tax year 2008-09 and subsequent tax years.

(2)

The amendments made by paragraphs 4 to 6 also have effect in relation to deemed surrenders under paragraph 6(1) of Schedule 13.

SCHEDULE 15Changes in trading stock

Section 37

Part 1Income tax

1

ITTOIA 2005 is amended as follows.

2

After section 172 insert—

“Chapter 11ATrade profits: changes in trading stock

Introduction

172AMeaning of “trading stock”

(1)

In this Chapter “trading stock”, in relation to a trade, means anything (whether land or other property)—

(a)

which is sold in the ordinary course of trade, or

(b)

which would be so sold if it were mature or its manufacture, preparation or construction were complete.

(2)

It does not include—

(a)

materials used in the manufacture, preparation or construction of any such thing,

(b)

any services performed in the ordinary course of the trade, or

(c)

any article produced, or any material used, in the performance of any such services.

Transfers of trading stock between trade and trader

172BTrading stock appropriated by trader

(1)

This section applies if trading stock of a person's trade is appropriated by the person for any other purpose.

(2)

In calculating the profits of the trade—

(a)

the amount which the stock appropriated would have realised if sold in the open market at the time of the appropriation is brought into account as a receipt, and

(b)

the value of anything in fact received for it is left out of account.

(3)

The receipt is treated as arising on the date of the appropriation.

172CTrading stock supplied by trader

(1)

This section applies if something that—

(a)

belongs to a person carrying on a trade, but

(b)

is not trading stock of the trade,

becomes trading stock of the trade.

(2)

In calculating the profits of the trade—

(a)

the cost of the stock is taken to be the amount which it would have realised if sold in the open market at the time it became trading stock of the trade, and

(b)

the value of anything in fact given for it is left out of account.

(3)

The cost is treated as being incurred on the date it became trading stock of the trade.

Other disposals not made in the course of trade

172DDisposals not made in the course of trade

(1)

This section applies if—

(a)

trading stock of a trade is disposed of otherwise than in the course of a trade, and

(b)

section 172B does not apply.

(2)

In calculating the profits of the trade—

(a)

the amount which the stock disposed of would have realised if sold in the open market at the time of the disposal is brought into account as the receipt, and

(b)

any consideration obtained for it is left out of account.

(3)

The receipt is treated as arising on the date of the disposal.

(4)

This section is subject to section 172F.

172EAcquisitions not made in the course of trade

(1)

This section applies if—

(a)

trading stock of a trade has been acquired otherwise than in the course of trade, and

(b)

section 172C does not apply.

(2)

In calculating the profits of the trade—

(a)

the cost of the stock is taken to be the amount which it would have realised if sold in the open market at the time of the acquisition, and

(b)

the value of anything in fact given for it is left out of account.

(3)

The cost is treated as being incurred on the date of the acquisition.

(4)

This section is subject to section 172F.

Relationship with transfer pricing rules

172FTransfer pricing rules to take precedence

(1)

Section 172D or 172E does not apply if the relevant consideration—

(a)

falls to be adjusted for tax purposes under Schedule 28AA to ICTA, or

(b)

falls within that Schedule without falling to be so adjusted.

(2)

For the purposes of subsection (1)(b), the relevant consideration falls within Schedule 28AA to ICTA without falling to be adjusted under that Schedule if—

(a)

the conditions in paragraph 1(1) of that Schedule are met, but

(b)

either—

(i)

the actual provision does not differ from the arm's length provision, or

(ii)

the exception in paragraph 8, 10 or 13 of that Schedule applies.

(3)

In this section “relevant consideration” means—

(a)

in relation to section 172D, the consideration for the disposal of the stock, and

(b)

in relation to section 172E, the consideration for the acquisition of the trading stock.”

3

In the heading of Chapter 12 of Part 2, insert at the end insert “ on cessation of trade ”.

4

In Schedule 4, in the table in Part 2, after the entry relating to “trade” insert—

“trading stock (in relation to a trade) (in Chapter 11A of Part 2)

section 172A”.

F50Part 2Corporation tax

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

SCHEDULE 16Non-residents: investment managers

Section 38

Part 1Eligibility to be UK representative

F511

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F512

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Part 2Eligibility to be agent of independent status

FA 2003

F523

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

ITA 2007

4

ITA 2007 is amended as follows.

5

(1)

Section 827 (meaning of “investment transaction”) is amended as follows.

(2)

For subsections (2) and (3) substitute—

“(2)

In this section “investment transaction” means any transaction of a description specified for the purposes of this section in regulations made by the Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs.

(3)

Provision made in regulations under subsection (2) may, in particular, have effect in relation to the tax year current on the day on which the regulations are made.”

6

(1)

Section 1014(2) (orders and regulations under the Income Tax Acts: excluded powers) is amended as follows.

(2)

In paragraph (g)(iia), omit “and”.

(3)

After paragraph (g)(iia) insert—

“(iib)

section 827(2) (meaning of “investment transaction”), and”.

Part 3Non-residents liable to tax: disregarded investment income or profits

FA 2003

F537

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F538

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F539

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

ITA 2007

10

(1)

Section 818 of ITA 2007 (the independent investment manager conditions) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for the words from “if” to the end substitute “ if conditions A to E are met. ”

(3)

Omit subsections (7) and (8).

Part 4Commencement

11

F54(1)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F55(2)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

(3)

The amendments made by paragraph 10 have effect for the tax year 2008-09 and subsequent tax years.

(4)

Subject to sub-paragraphs (1) to (3), the amendments made by this Schedule come into force on the day on which this Act is passed.

(5)

But, despite the coming into force of paragraph 2, 3 or 5—

(a)

the superseded provision, and

(b)

any regulations made under the superseded provision,

continue to have effect until such time as the first regulations under the new regulation-making power come into force.

(6)

In sub-paragraph (5)—

new regulation-making power” means the regulation-making power substituted by paragraph 2, 3 or 5, and

superseded provision” means—

(a)

in relation to paragraph 2, the existing section 127(12) and (13) of FA 1995,

(b)

in relation to paragraph 3, the existing paragraph 3(3) and (4) of Schedule 26 to FA 2003, or

(c)

in relation to paragraph 5, the existing section 827(2) and (3) of ITA 2007.

SCHEDULE 17Insurance companies etc

Section 43

Financing-arrangement-funded transfers

F561

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F572

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

3

In consequence of paragraphs 1 and 2, omit—

(a)

paragraph 2(2A) of Schedule 11 to FA 1996,

(b)

paragraph 3 of Schedule 33 to FA 2003,

(c)

paragraph 8 of Schedule 11 to FA 2006, and

(d)

paragraph 1 of Schedule 10 to FA 2007.

F584

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Expenses: fronting reinsurance commissions etc

F585

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F586

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Structural assets

7

In section 83XA of FA 1989 (structural assets), omit—

(a)

subsections (10) and (11), and

(b)

in subsection (15), “or (10)”.

F598

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Deposit back arrangements

9

F60(1)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F61(2)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F62(3)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Foreign business assets

F6310

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Foreign currency assets

F6411

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Derivative contracts

F6512

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Apportionments

13

In section 210A of TCGA 1992 (ring fencing of losses), after subsection (10) insert—

“(10A)

But where the BLAGAB profits for an accounting period are nil, the policy holders' share of the chargeable gains or allowable losses accruing in the accounting period—

(a)

if there are Case I profits of the accounting period in respect of its life assurance business, is nil, and

(b)

otherwise, is such proportion of the chargeable gains or allowable losses as is just and reasonable;

and for this purpose there are Case I profits if there are profits computed in accordance with the provisions applicable to Case I of Schedule D after making adjustments in respect of losses in accordance with section 85A(4) of the Finance Act 1989.”

14

In section 755A of ICTA (treatment of chargeable profits and creditable tax apportioned to life assurance company), after subsection (11B) insert—

“(11BA)

But where the BLAGAB profits for the relevant accounting period are nil, the relevant fraction—

(a)

if there are Case I profits of the accounting period in respect of its life assurance business, is nil, and

(b)

otherwise, is such fraction as is just and reasonable;

and for this purpose there are Case I profits if there are profits computed in accordance with the provisions applicable to Case I of Schedule D after making adjustments in respect of losses in accordance with section 85A(4) of the Finance Act 1989.”

15

The amendments made by paragraphs 13 and 14 have effect in relation to accounting periods beginning on or after 1 January 2008 and ending on or after 12 March 2008.

UK distributions received by insurance companies

16

(1)

In ICTA, after section 95 insert—

“95ZATaxation of UK distributions received by insurance companies

(1)

If the total amount of relevant distributions received by a company in an accounting period exceeds £50,000, those distributions are to be taken into account in calculating for corporation tax purposes the profits of the company in that period (and accordingly section 208 does not apply in relation to those distributions).

(2)

A company (“company A”) receives a “relevant distribution” if—

(a)

it receives a distribution made by a company resident in the United Kingdom (“company B”),

(b)

the value of the shares or stock in respect of which the distribution is made (“the holding”) is materially reduced by reason of the distribution,

(c)

a profit on the sale of the holding (to anyone other than company B) would be taken into account in calculating company A's profits in respect of relevant insurance business, and

(d)

either—

(i)

the holding amounts to, or is an ingredient in a holding amounting to, 10% of all holdings of the same class in company B, or

(ii)

the period between the acquisition by company A of the holding and that company first taking steps to dispose of the holding does not exceed 30 days.

(3)

In this section “relevant insurance business” means any kind of insurance business other than life assurance business.

(4)

Section 177(7) of TCGA 1992 (provision supplementing provision corresponding to subsection (2)(d)(i) above) applies for the purposes of subsection (2)(d)(i).

(5)

Section 731(4) below (interpretation of “taking steps to dispose of securities”) applies for the purposes of subsection (2)(d)(ii) as if the reference to the securities were to the holding.”

(2)

The amendment made by sub-paragraph (1) has effect in relation to distributions made on or after 1 April 2008.

Clarification of scope of ICTA s.432A

F6617

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

“BLAGAB profits” etc

F6718

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Abolition of “inherited estates” apportionment rules

19

(1)

Chapter 1 of Part 12 of ICTA (insurance companies) is amended as follows.

(2)

In section 431(2ZB) and (2ZC) (interpretative provisions), insert “or” at the end of paragraph (b) and omit paragraph (d) and the “or” before it.

(3)

In section 432A (apportionment of income and gains), omit—

(a)

in subsection (6), paragraph (b) of the definition of A (but not the “and” following it),

(b)

in subsection (8), paragraph (b) and the “and” before it, and

(c)

subsections (8A) and (8B).

(4)

In section 432B (apportionment of receipts brought into account), omit subsections (4) to (12).

(5)

The amendments made by this paragraph have effect in relation to periods of account beginning on or after 1 January 2007.

Insurance special purpose vehicles

F6820

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Group relief: gross profits to exclude relevant profits

F6821

Charges on income

F6822

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Remediation of contaminated land

F6923

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Repeal of ICTA s.56(4)

24

(1)

In section 56 of ICTA (transactions in deposits and debts), omit subsection (4) (which relates to section 76(2) computations and is spent).

(2)

In consequence of sub-paragraph (1), in section 164 of FA 1996, omit subsection (4) (which amends section 56(4) of ICTA).

Partnership returns

25

In section 12AE(2) of TMA 1970 (partnership returns: alternative methods for bringing amounts into charge to tax), for “84(2) or (3)” substitute “ 84(1) ”.

Overseas life assurance business

F7026

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

27

(1)

In section 476(3) of ITTOIA 2005 (foreign policies), omit—

(a)

“as a result of section 431D(1)(a) of ICTA (business with a non-UK resident policy holder)”, and

(b)

“as a result of section 431D(1) of ICTA”.

(2)

In consequence of sub-paragraph (1), omit paragraph 78 of Schedule 7 to FA 2007.

(3)

The amendments made by this paragraph have effect as if they were made by Schedule 7 to FA 2007 (see section 38(2) of that Act).

Trades in I minus E

28

F71(1)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F71(2)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F72(3)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F73(4)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Controlled foreign companies

F7429

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Offshore income gains

F7530

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Transfers of business

F7631

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F7632

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F7633

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Periodical return

F7634

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Repeal of section 737D of ICTA

35

(1)

In ICTA, omit section 737D (power to provide that manufactured payments are to be treated as income eligible for relief under section 438).

(2)

In consequence of sub-paragraph (1), omit—

(a)

section 83(1) of FA 1995,

(b)

section 139(6) of FA 2006, and

(c)

paragraph 175 of Schedule 1 to ITA 2007.

R&D relief

F7736

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Section 89(7) of FA 1989

F7837

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Commencement of Schedule 9 to FA 2007

38

(1)

Paragraph 17 of Schedule 9 to FA 2007 (transfers: commencement) is amended as follows.

(2)

In sub-paragraph (2), for “9, 10(3) to (5),” substitute “ 10(5), ”.

(3)

In sub-paragraph (3)—

(a)

after “effect” insert “ (a) ”, and

(b)

insert at the end“and

(b)

in relation to periods of account ending after 30 June 2008 where the transfer of business or demutualisation concerned took place on or after 21 March 2007 and before 1 July 2008.”

(4)

After sub-paragraph (4) insert—

“(4A)

The amendment made by paragraph 9 has effect in relation to contracts entered into in a period of account beginning on or after 1 January 2008.”

(5)

Insert at the end—

“(6)

The amendments made by paragraph 10(3) and (4) have effect in relation to assets transferred on or after 1 January 2008.”

Commencement of Business Transfer Schemes Order

39

(1)

In article 1(5) of the Insurance Business Transfer Schemes (Amendment of the Corporation Tax Acts) Order 2008 (S.I. 2008/381), for “other” substitute “ earlier ”.

(2)

In article 29(2), for “ “assuming the transferor had continued to carry on the business transferred after the transfer”” substitute “assuming that the transferor had continued to carry on the business transferred” .

(3)

The amendments made by this paragraph are to be treated as always having had effect.

Gross roll-up business

40

(1)

In section 436A(6) of ICTA (gross roll-up business: separate charge on profits), omit “under subsection (4) above”.

(2)

The amendment made by sub-paragraph (1) has effect in relation to periods of account beginning on or after 1 January 2008 and ending on or after 12 March 2008.

Repeal of spent provision

41

In section 88(5) of FA 1989 (policy holders' share of profits), omit the words after “January 1990”.

F79SCHEDULE 18Friendly societies

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

SCHEDULE 19Reduction of basic rate of income tax: transitional relief for gift aid charities

Section 53

Payment of gift aid supplement

1

(1)

A charity is entitled to be paid an amount by the Commissioners (referred to in this Schedule as a payment of “gift aid supplement”) if the following conditions are met.

(2)

Condition A is that a gift aid donation is made to the charity in a transitional tax year.

(3)

Condition B is that the charity makes a claim for the donation to be exempt from tax by virtue of—

F80(a)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

(b)

section 521(4) of ITA 2007 (charitable trusts), F81...

F82(ba)

section 472 of CTA 2010 (charitable companies),

(bb)

section 475 of CTA 2010 (eligible bodies), or

(c)

F83section 664(1) of CTA 2010 (community amateur sports clubs).

(4)

Condition C is that the claim is made within the period of two years beginning immediately after the end of—

(a)

the accounting period to which the claim relates (in a case falling within sub-paragraph F84(3)(ba), (bb) or (c)), or

(b)

the tax year to which the claim relates (in a case falling within sub-paragraph (3)(b)).

(5)

Condition D is that the claim is allowed.

Amount of gift aid supplement

2

(1)

The amount of gift aid supplement that a charity is entitled to be paid in respect of a gift aid donation is—

DGN-DGAmath

where—

DGN is the amount of the gift aid donation grossed up by reference to the notional basic rate for the transitional tax year, and

DGA the amount of the gift aid donation grossed up by reference to the actual basic rate of income tax for the transitional tax year.

(2)

A charity is not entitled to be paid gift aid supplement in respect of a gift aid donation if the amount determined in accordance with sub-paragraph (1) is a negative amount.

The “notional basic rate”

3

(1)

The “notional basic rate” for a transitional tax year is calculated by adding together—

(a)

the actual basic rate of income tax for that year, and

(b)

the transitional supplement for that year.

(2)

But if the rate calculated for a transitional tax year by adding those two things together is more than 22%, the notional basic rate for that year is 22%.

(3)

The “transitional supplement” for each transitional tax year is 2%.

(4)

Section 998 of ITA 2007 applies to the grossing up of an amount by reference to a notional basic rate as if the notional basic rate were an actual rate of tax.

Errors in connection with payment of gift aid supplement

4

(1)

This paragraph applies if an officer of Revenue and Customs discovers that payment or set-off of an amount of gift aid supplement—

(a)

ought not to have been made, or

(b)

is or has become excessive.

(2)

The relevant amount of gift aid supplement may be recovered as if it were an amount of income tax wrongly repaid to the charity (and, in particular, section 30 of TMA 1970 and paragraph 52 of Schedule 18 to FA 1998 apply accordingly).

(3)

An amount to be recovered in accordance with sub-paragraph (2) is liable to interest as if it were an amount of income tax wrongly repaid to the charity.

(4)

In this paragraph “relevant amount of gift aid supplement” means the payment or set-off of the amount of gift aid supplement, to the extent that it—

(a)

ought not to have been made, or

(b)

is or has become excessive.

(5)

For the purposes of this paragraph income tax is “wrongly repaid” to a charity if it is an amount repaid to the charity which ought not to have been repaid.

(6)

For the purposes of this paragraph it does not matter if a charity is within the charge to income tax or the charge to corporation tax.

General

5

Gift aid supplement is not—

(a)

income for the purposes of income tax, or

(b)

profits for the purposes of corporation tax.

6

Any expenditure incurred by the Commissioners under this Schedule is to be paid out of money provided by Parliament.

7

In this Schedule—

charity” has the same meaning as in Chapter 2 of Part 8 of ITA 2007 (gift aid);

the Commissioners” means the Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs;

gift aid donation” means a gift which is a qualifying donation for the purposes of Chapter 2 of Part 8 of ITA 2007;

gift aid supplement” has the meaning given in paragraph 1(1);

transitional tax year” means each of the tax years 2008-09, 2009-10 and 2010-11.

Amendments

F858

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

9

In section 521 of ITA 2007 (gifts entitling donor to gift aid relief: income tax liability and exemption of charity), after subsection (6) insert—

“(7)

Schedule 19 to FA 2008 contains provision for transitional payments to charitable trusts in respect of gifts made in the tax years 2008-09 to 2010-11.”

SCHEDULE 20Leases of plant or machinery

Section 55

Capital received in respect of lease to be treated as income

F861

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

2

(1)

In ITA 2007, after section 809 insert—

“Chapter 6Avoidance involving leases of plant and machinery

809ZAPlant and machinery leases: capital receipts to be treated as income

(1)

This section applies if—

(a)

there is an unconditional obligation, under a lease of plant or machinery or a relevant arrangement, to make a relevant capital payment (at any time), or

(b)

a relevant capital payment is made under such a lease or arrangement otherwise than in pursuance of such an obligation.

(2)

The lessor is treated for income tax purposes as receiving income attributable to the lease of an amount equal to the amount of the capital payment.

(3)

The income is treated—

(a)

if subsection (1)(a) applies, as income for the period of account in which there is first an obligation of the kind mentioned there, and

(b)

if subsection (1)(b) applies, as income for the period of account in which the payment is made.

809ZBSection 809ZA: interpretation

(1)

The expressions used in section 809ZA and this section are to be interpreted as follows.

(2)

Capital payment” means any payment except one which, if made to the lessor—

(a)

would fall to be included in a calculation of the lessor's income for income tax purposes, or

(b)

would fall to be included in such a calculation but for section 148A of ITTOIA 2005 (rental earnings under long funding finance lease).

(3)

Lease” includes—

(a)

a licence, and

(b)

the letting of a ship or aircraft on charter or the letting of any other asset on hire,

and “lessor” and “lessee” are to be read accordingly.

(4)

Lease of plant or machinery” includes a lease of plant or machinery and other property but does not include—

(a)

a lease where the income attributable to the lease received by the lessor (if any) would be chargeable to tax under Part 3 of ITTOIA 2005 (property income), or

(b)

a lease of plant or machinery where the lessor has incurred what would (but for section 34A of CAA 2001) be qualifying expenditure (within the meaning of Part 2 of that Act) on the plant or machinery.

(5)

Relevant arrangement” means any agreement or arrangement relating to a lease of plant or machinery, including one made before the lease is entered into or after it has ended (and, accordingly, “lessor” and lessee” include prospective and former lessors and lessees).

(6)

A capital payment, in relation to a lease or relevant arrangement, is “relevant” if condition A or B is met (but this is subject to subsection (9)).

(7)

Condition A is that the capital payment is payable (or paid), directly or indirectly, by (or on behalf of) the lessee to (or on behalf of) the lessor in connection with—

(a)

the grant, assignment, novation or termination of the lease, or

(b)

any provision of the lease or relevant arrangement (including the variation or waiver of any such provision).

(8)

Condition B is that rentals payable under the lease are less than (or payable later than) they might reasonably be expected to be if there were no obligation to make the capital payment (and the capital payment were not made).

(9)

A capital payment is not “relevant” if or to the extent that—

(a)

the capital payment reduces (or would but for section 536 of CAA 2001 reduce) the amount of expenditure incurred by the lessor for the purposes of CAA 2001 in respect of the plant or machinery in question,

(b)

the capital payment is compensation for loss resulting from damage to, or damage caused by, the plant or machinery in question, or

(c)

the capital payment would fall (or falls) to be brought into account by the lessor as a disposal receipt within the meaning of Part 2 of CAA 2001 (see section 60(1) of that Act).

(10)

References to payment include the provision of value by any means other than the making of a payment, and accordingly—

(a)

references to the making of a payment include the passing of value (by any other means), and

(b)

references to the amount of the payment include the value passed.

809ZCSection 809ZA: lease of plant and machinery and other property

(1)

This section applies if section 809ZA applies in relation to a lease of plant or machinery and other property (see section 809ZB(4)).

(2)

The relevant capital payment is to be apportioned, on a just and reasonable basis, between—

(a)

the plant and machinery, and

(b)

the other property.

(3)

If the income (if any) received by the lessor that is attributable to any of the plant or machinery is chargeable to tax under Part 3 of ITTOIA 2005 (property income), treat that plant or machinery as falling within subsection (2)(b) (and not subsection (2)(a)).

(4)

Section 809ZA(2) has effect as if the reference to the amount of the capital payment were to such amount as is apportioned under subsection (2) in respect of the plant or machinery within subsection (2)(a).

809ZDSection 809ZA: expectation that relevant capital payment will not be paid

(1)

This section applies for income tax purposes if—

(a)

section 809ZA applies by virtue of subsection (1)(a) of that section, and

(b)

at any time, the lessor reasonably expects that the relevant capital payment will not be paid (or will not be paid in full).

(2)

For the purposes of calculating the profits of the lessor, a deduction is allowed for the period of account which includes that time.

(3)

The amount of the deduction is equal to the amount reasonably expected not to be paid.

(4)

No other deduction is allowed in respect of the matters mentioned in subsection (1).”

(2)

The amendment made by sub-paragraph (1) has effect in relation to—

(a)

cases where there is first an obligation of the kind mentioned in subsection (1)(a) of section 809ZA of ITA 2007 on or after 13 December 2007, and

(b)

capital payments within subsection (1)(b) of that section made on or after that date.

(3)

In relation to a case where the condition in paragraph (a) or (b) of section 809ZA(1) of ITA 2007 was met before 12 March 2008, sections 809ZA F87to 809ZF of that Act have effect as if—

(a)

for F88section 809ZF(3) to (5) there were substituted—

F89“(3)

“Lease of plant or machinery”—

(a)

includes an equipment lease within the meaning of Chapter 14 of Part 2 of CAA 2001, but

(b)

subject to that, does not include a lease of plant or machinery and other property.”, and

(b)

section 809ZC were omitted.

3

In section 785A of ICTA (rent factoring of leases of plant or machinery), after subsection (5A) insert—

“(5B)

This section does not apply in relation to a relevant capital payment to which section 785B below or section 809ZA of ITA 2007 applies; and “relevant capital payment” here has the same meaning as in that section.”

Disposal events: grant of long funding lease

F904

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Deemed disposals: plant or machinery used under long funding lease

F915

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Plant or machinery subject to a sale and finance leaseback or lease and finance leaseback

6

(1)

Part 2 of CAA 2001 (plant and machinery allowances) is amended as follows.

(2)

In section 13(5) (use for qualifying activity of plant or machinery provided for other purposes), omit “or 224”.

(3)

In section 52(5) (first-year allowances), omit “, 223”.

(4)

In section 57(3) (available qualifying expenditure), omit “224(1),”.

(5)

In section 66 (provisions referred to in section 60(1)(b)), omit the entry relating to section 222.

(6)

In section 70I (meaning of “short lease”), after subsection (9) insert—

“(10)

Where plant or machinery is the subject of a sale and finance leaseback (as defined in section 221), any finance lease of a kind mentioned in section 221(1)(c) is not a short lease (if it otherwise would be).

(11)

But, if the conditions set out in section 227(2) are met, B and S (within the meaning of section 221) may make an election the effect of which is that—

(a)

subsection (10) above does not apply,

(b)

section 228(2) and (3) apply in relation to B (but this does not prevent section 225 from applying), and

(c)

section 228(5) applies in relation to S.

(12)

Subsections (4) to (6) of section 227 apply in relation to elections under this section as they apply in relation to elections under that section.”

(7)

In section 89(3)(b) (disposal to connected person), for “sections 222 to” substitute “ section ”.

(8)

In section 217 (no first-year allowance for B's expenditure), for subsection (3) substitute—

“(3)

This section does not apply if plant or machinery is the subject of a sale and finance leaseback (as defined in section 221).”

(9)

In section 218 (restriction on B's qualifying expenditure), for subsection (4) substitute—

“(4)

This section does not apply if plant or machinery is the subject of a sale and finance leaseback (as defined in section 221), but see section 225.”

(10)

In section 219(1) (meaning of “finance lease”), omit “and which are not a long funding lease in the case of the lessor”.

(11)

In section 221(1) (meaning of “sale and finance leaseback”), for “sections 222 to 228” substitute “ section 225 ”.

(12)

Omit—

(a)

section 222 (disposal value restricted),

(b)

section 223 (no first-year allowance for B's expenditure),

(c)

section 224 (restriction on B's qualifying expenditure), and

(d)

section 226 (qualifying expenditure limited in subsequent transactions).

(13)

In section 227 (circumstances in which election may be made)—

(a)

in subsection (1)(b), omit sub-paragraph (ii) (and the “or” before it), and

(b)

in subsection (2)(c), for “217, 218, 223 or 224” substitute “ 217 or 218 ”,

and the heading before that section accordingly becomes “ Sale and leaseback: election for special treatment ”.

(14)

In section 228 (effect of election: relaxation of restriction on B's qualifying expenditure, etc)—

(a)

in subsection (1), omit “or 224”, and

(b)

omit subsection (4).

(15)

In section 230(2) (exception for manufacturers and suppliers), for “sections 222 to” substitute “ section ”.

(16)

In section 241(1)(b) (no first-year allowance in respect of additional VAT liability), omit “or 223(1)”.

(17)

Omit section 243 (restriction on B's qualifying expenditure: sale and finance leaseback).

(18)

In section 774E(6) of ICTA (structured finance arrangements: exceptions), omit the second sentence.

(19)

The amendments made by this paragraph have effect in the case of plant or machinery which is the subject of a sale and finance leaseback (as defined in section 221 of CAA 2001) where the date of the transaction (within the meaning of that section) is on or after 9 October 2007.

(20)

In the case of plant or machinery which is the subject of a sale and finance leaseback (as defined in section 221 of CAA 2001) where the date of the transaction (within the meaning of that section) is before 12 March 2008, section 70I(10) of CAA 2001 has effect as if for “any finance lease of a kind” there were substituted “ the finance lease ”.

7

(1)

In section 70I of CAA 2001 (meaning of “short lease”), after subsection (9) insert—

“(9A)

Where plant or machinery is the subject of a lease and finance leaseback (as defined in section 228A)—

(a)

the finance lease mentioned in section 228A(2)(c), and

(b)

any other finance lease forming part of the arrangements for the lease and finance leaseback (except the lease referred to in section 228A(2)(a)),

is not a short lease (if it otherwise would be).”

(2)

The amendment made by sub-paragraph (1) has effect in the case of plant or machinery which is the subject of a lease and finance leaseback (as defined in section 228A of CAA 2001) where the date of the transaction mentioned in subsection (2)(a) of that section is on or after 12 March 2008.

Restriction on lessee's right to elect that rules for non-long funding leases apply

8

(1)

In section 70H of CAA 2001 (lessee: requirement for tax return treating lease as long funding lease), after subsection (1) insert—

“(1A)

Subsection (1) does not apply in respect of a lease of plant or machinery (“lease A”) if, at any time in the relevant period—

(a)

the lessee is the lessor of a lease of any of that plant or machinery (“lease B”), and

(b)

lease B is a long funding lease.

(1B)

In subsection (1A) “the relevant period” means the period—

(a)

beginning with the inception of lease A, and

(b)

ending with the making of the tax return for the initial period (or, if that return is amended, the making of the last amendment).”

(2)

The amendment made by sub-paragraph (1) has effect in relation to leases entered into on or after 13 December 2007.

Lessors under long funding leases of plant or machinery

F929

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

10

(1)

Chapter 10A of Part 2 of ITTOIA 2005 (corresponding income tax rules) is amended as follows.

(2)

After section 148F insert—

“Lessors under long funding finance or operating leases: avoidance etc

148FACases where ss. 148A to 148F do not apply: plant or machinery held as trading stock

(1)

Sections 148A to 148F do not apply in the case of a person carrying on a trade who is or has been the lessor of any plant or machinery under a long funding lease if the following condition is met.

(2)

The condition is that any part of the expenditure incurred by the person on the acquisition of the plant or machinery for leasing under the lease—

(a)

is (apart from those sections) allowable as a deduction in calculating the profits or losses of the trade, and

(b)

is so allowable as a result of the plant or machinery forming part of the trading stock of the trade.

(3)

For the purposes of this section the cases in which expenditure incurred by a person carrying on a trade on the acquisition of any plant or machinery for leasing under a lease is allowable as such a deduction include any case where—

(a)

the person becomes entitled to the deduction at any time after the expenditure is incurred, and

(b)

the deduction arises as a result of the plant or machinery forming part of the trading stock of the trade at that time.

(4)

If—

(a)

at any time any of sections 148A to 148F has applied for determining the amounts to be taken into account in calculating the profits or losses of the trade, and

(b)

the condition in subsection (2) is met at any subsequent time,

those amounts, and any other amounts which (as a result of this section) are to be so taken into account, are subject to such adjustments as are just and reasonable.

(5)

All such assessments and adjustments of assessments are to be made as are necessary to give effect to subsection (4).”

(3)

After section 148FA insert—

“148FBCases where ss. 148A to 148F do not apply: lessor also lessee under non-long funding lease

(1)

This section applies if—

(a)

a person is the lessee of any plant or machinery under a lease (“lease A”) that is not a long funding lease,

(b)

the person enters into a lease (“lease B”) of any of that plant or machinery (as lessor), and

(c)

lease B is a long funding lease.

(2)

Sections 148A to 148F do not apply in relation to lease B.

(3)

If by virtue of section 70H of CAA 2001 (tax return by lessee treating lease as long funding lease) lease A becomes a long funding lease (and does not cease to be such a lease), treat this section as never having applied in relation to lease B.”

(4)

After section 148FB insert—

“148FCCases where ss. 148A to 148F do not apply: other avoidance

(1)

Sections 148A to 148F do not apply in the case of a person carrying on a trade who is or has been the lessor of any plant or machinery under a long funding lease if conditions A to C are met.

(2)

Condition A is that the long funding lease forms part of any arrangement entered into by the person which includes one or more other transactions (whether the arrangement is entered into before or after or at the inception of the lease).

(3)

Condition B is that the main purpose, or one of the main purposes, of the arrangement is to secure that, over the relevant period, there would be a substantial difference between—

(a)

the total amount of the amounts under the arrangement which are, in accordance with generally accepted accounting practice, recognised in determining the profit or loss of the trade for any period or taken into account in calculating the amounts which are so recognised, and

(b)

the total amount of the amounts under the arrangement which are taken into account in calculating the profits or losses of the trade.

(4)

For the purposes of condition B “the relevant period” means the period which begins with the inception of the lease and ends with the end of the term of the lease.

(5)

Condition C is that the difference would be attributable (wholly or partly) to the application of any of sections 148A to 148F in relation to the person by reference to the plant or machinery under the lease.

(6)

The reference in this section to an amount being recognised in determining the profit or loss of a trade for a period is to an amount being recognised for accounting purposes—

(a)

in the profit and loss account or income statement relating to the trade,

(b)

in the statement of recognised gains and losses or statement of changes in equity relating to the trade, or

(c)

in any other statement of items brought into account in calculating the profits and losses of the trade for that period.

(7)

For the purposes of this section it does not matter whether the parties to any transaction which forms part of the arrangement differ from the parties to any of the other transactions.

(8)

For the purposes of this section the cases in which two or more transactions are to be taken as forming part of an arrangement include any case in which it would be reasonable to assume that one or more of them—

(a)

would not have been entered into independently of the other or others, or

(b)

if entered into independently of the other or others, would not have taken the same form or been on the same terms.

(9)

If—

(a)

at any time any of sections 148A to 148F has applied for determining the amounts to be taken into account in calculating the profits or losses of the trade, and

(b)

conditions A to C are met at any subsequent time,

those amounts, and any other amounts which (as a result of this section) are to be so taken into account, are subject to such adjustments as are just and reasonable.

(10)

All such assessments and adjustments of assessments are to be made as are necessary to give effect to subsection (9).”

(5)

The amendment made by sub-paragraph (2) has effect where—

(a)

expenditure is incurred on or after 9 October 2007, or

(b)

a person carrying on a trade becomes entitled to a deduction in calculating the profits or losses of the trade as a result of any plant or machinery forming part of the trading stock of the trade on or after that date.

(6)

The amendment made by sub-paragraph (3) has effect where the lease mentioned in section 148FB(1)(b) of ITTOIA 2005 is entered into on or after 13 December 2007.

(7)

The amendment made by sub-paragraph (4) has effect in relation to arrangements entered into on or after 9 October 2007.

11

(1)

If, at the beginning of 13 December 2007 (“the relevant date”)—

(a)

a company or a person carrying on a trade is the lessee of any plant or machinery under a lease that is not a long funding lease (“lease A”), and

(b)

the company or person is the lessor of any of that plant or machinery under a lease that is a long funding finance lease (“lease B”),

sub-paragraphs (2) to (10) apply in respect of lease B.

(2)

F93... Section 148A of ITTOIA 2005 (rental earnings) does not apply in relation to a period of account within sub-paragraph (3).

(3)

A period of account is within this sub-paragraph if—

(a)

it begins on or after the relevant date, and

(b)

no rentals which were due under lease B before the relevant date are (wholly or in part) in respect of any part of the period of account.

(4)

For the purpose of calculating the profits of the lessor under lease B for a period of account ending on or after the relevant date that is not within sub-paragraph (3), treat the lessor as receiving for that period of account income attributable to lease B of an amount equal to the relevant amount.

(5)

The “relevant amount” is an amount equal to so much of the rentals that—

(a)

become due on or after the relevant date, and

(b)

are wholly or partly in respect of the period of account,

as would not reasonably be regarded as reflected in the rental earnings for that period of account.

“Rental earnings” here has the same meaning as in F94... section 148A of ITTOIA 2005.

(6)

If any rental is paid for a period (“the rental period”) which begins before the relevant date or is not wholly within the period of account, for the purposes of sub-paragraph (5) treat the amount of that rent as equal to the amount apportioned (on a time basis) in respect of so much of the rental period as falls on or after the relevant date and within the period of account.

(7)

The income treated as received by virtue of sub-paragraph (4) is in addition to any amount brought into account under F95... section 148A(2) of ITTOIA 2005.

(8)

F96... Section 148B of ITTOIA 2005 (exceptional items) does not apply in relation to any profit or loss arising on or after the relevant date.

(9)

If F97... section 148C of ITTOIA 2005 (lessor making termination payment) applies in respect of the termination of lease B on or after the relevant date, a deduction is allowed (in calculating the profits of the lessor) in respect of the sum paid to the lessee.

(10)

The amount of that deduction is (if it would otherwise exceed that amount) limited to the total amount brought into account in respect of the lease by virtue of sub-paragraph (2) or (4).

(11)

If lease A becomes a long funding lease by virtue of section 70H of CAA 2001 (and does not cease to be such a lease), treat this paragraph as never having applied in relation to lease B.

(12)

Chapter 6A of Part 2 of CAA 2001 (interpretation of provisions about long funding leases) applies in relation to this paragraph.

Plant and machinery allowances: anti-avoidance

12

(1)

Chapter 17 of Part 2 of CAA 2001 (plant and machinery allowances: anti-avoidance) is amended as follows.

(2)

For section 228A substitute—

“228AApplication of sections 228B and 228C

(1)

Sections 228B and 228C apply where plant or machinery is the subject of a lease and finance leaseback.

(2)

Plant or machinery is the subject of a lease and finance leaseback if—

(a)

a person (“S”) leases the plant or machinery to another (“B”),

(b)

after the date of that transaction, the use of the plant or machinery falls within sub-paragraph (i), (ii) or (iii) of section 221(1)(b), and

(c)

it is directly as a consequence of having been leased under a finance lease that the plant or machinery is available to be so used after that date.

(3)

For the purposes of subsection (2), S leases the plant or machinery to B only if—

(a)

S grants B rights over the plant or machinery,

(b)

consideration is given for that grant, and

(c)

S is not required to bring all of that consideration into account under this Part.”

(3)

In section 228B (lessee's income or profits: deductions)—

(a)

in subsection (1), for “the lessee's” substitute “ S's ”,

(b)

in subsection (2), for the words from “the total” to the end substitute “ the amount of the finance charges shown in the accounts. ”,

(c)

in subsection (4), in the definition of “Original Consideration”, for “entering into the relevant transaction” substitute “ granting B rights over the plant or machinery ”, and

(d)

the heading accordingly becomes S's income or profits: deductions.

(4)

In section 228C (lessee's income or profits: termination of leaseback)—

(a)

in subsection (2), for “the lessee” substitute “ S ”,

(b)

in subsection (3), in the formula, for “Net” substitute “ Original ” and for the definition of “Net Consideration” substitute—

““Original Consideration” means the consideration payable to S for granting B rights over the plant or machinery,”,

(c)

in subsection (6), for “the lessee's” substitute “ S's ” and for “the lessor” substitute “ B (or, where appropriate, an assignee of B) ”, and

(d)

the heading accordingly becomes S's income or profits: termination of leaseback.

(5)

Omit—

(a)

section 228D (lessor's income or profits),

(b)

section 228E (lessor's income or profits: termination of leaseback), and

(c)

section 228F (lease and finance leaseback).

(6)

In section 228G (leaseback not accounted for as finance lease in accounts of lessee)—

(a)

in subsection (1), for “the lessee” substitute “ S ”,

(b)

in subsection (2), for “the lessee” (in both places) substitute “ S ”,

(c)

in subsection (3), for “the lessee's” substitute “ S's ”,

(d)

in subsection (4), for “the lessee” substitute “ S ”,

(e)

in subsection (6), for “the lessee” substitute “ S ” and for the words from “increased by—” to the end substitute “ increased by the consideration payable to S for granting B rights over the plant or machinery. ”, and

(f)

the heading accordingly becomes Leaseback not accounted for as finance lease in S's accounts.

(7)

Section 228H (sections 228A to 228G: supplementary) is amended as follows.

(8)

In subsection (1)—

(a)

insert (as the first defined term)—

““consideration” does not include rentals;”,

(b)

omit the definition of “lessee”,

(c)

in the definition of “net book value”, for “the lessee's” substitute “ S's ”,

(d)

omit the definition of “restricted disposal value”,

(e)

before the definition of “termination” insert—

““S” does not include an assignee of S;”, and

(f)

in the definition of “termination”, omit “(except in section 228E)”, for “the lessee's” (in both places) substitute “ S's ” and for “the lessee” substitute “ S ”.

(9)

After that subsection insert—

“(1A)

For the purposes of sections 228A to 228G, references to consideration given (or payable to S) for the grant to B of rights over the plant or machinery do not include—

(a)

rentals payable under that grant, or

(b)

any relevant capital payment (within the meaning of section 785B of ICTA or section 809ZA of ITA 2007) to which either of those sections applies.

(1B)

In relation to a case where some but not all of the consideration mentioned in subsection (1A) falls within paragraph (b) of that subsection, sections 228B to 228G or section 228J have effect subject to such modifications as are just and reasonable.”

(10)

In section 228J(8) (plant or machinery subject to further operating lease), in the definition of “lease and finance leaseback”, for “section 228F” substitute “ section 228A ”.

(11)

In section 774E(5)(b) of ICTA (structured finance arrangements: exceptions), omit “with the modifications contained in section 228F of that Act”.

(12)

The amendments made by this paragraph have effect in relation to transactions referred to in section 228A(2)(a) of CAA 2001 (as substituted by this paragraph) entered into on or after 9 October 2007.

13

(1)

Section 228B of CAA 2001 (S's income or profits: deductions) is amended as follows.

(2)

After subsection (4) insert—

“(5)

If the use mentioned in section 228A(2)(b) includes use by a person (other than B) who is connected with S, this section applies in relation to that person as it applies in relation to S.”

(3)

Accordingly, in the heading, after “profits” insert etc.

(4)

The amendments made by this paragraph have effect in relation to transactions referred to in section 228A(2)(a) of CAA 2001 entered into on or after 12 March 2008.

SCHEDULE 21Restriction on loss relief for non-active traders

Section 60

Introduction

1

ITA 2007 is amended as follows.

Main provisions

2

After section 74 insert—

“General restrictions on sideways relief and capital gains relief

74AReliefs in any tax year not to exceed cap for tax year

(1)

This section applies if—

(a)

during a tax year an individual carries on one or more trades, otherwise than as a partner in a firm, in a non-active capacity (see section 74C), and

(b)

the individual makes a loss in any of those trades (an “affected loss”) in that tax year.

(2)

There is a restriction on the amount of sideways relief and capital gains relief which (after applying the restrictions under the other provisions of this Chapter) may be given to the individual for any affected loss (but see subsections (7) and (8)).

(3)

The restriction is that the total amount of the sideways relief and capital gains relief given to the individual for all the affected losses must not exceed the cap for that tax year.

(4)

The cap for any tax year is £25,000.

(5)

The Treasury may by order amend the sum for the time being specified in subsection (4).

(6)

If—

(a)

in a tax year an individual makes a loss to which the restriction under section 103C (losses in trade carried on by non-active or limited partner) applies, and

(b)

sideways relief or capital gains relief is given to the individual for that loss,

the amount of the cap under this section for the tax year in the case of the individual is reduced by the amount of that loss.

(7)

The restriction under this section does not apply to so much of any affected loss as derives from qualifying film expenditure (see section 74D).

(8)

The restriction under this section does not affect the giving of sideways relief for a loss made in a trade against the profits of that trade.

(9)

In this section “trade” does not include a trade which consists of the underwriting business of a member of Lloyd's (within the meaning of section 184 of FA 1993).

(10)

For the purposes of this section—

(a)

capital gains relief is, in relation to a loss, the treatment of a loss as an allowable loss by virtue of section 261B of TCGA 1992 (use of trading loss as a CGT loss), and

(b)

capital gains relief is given for a loss when it is so treated.

74BNo relief for tax-generated losses

(1)

This section applies if—

(a)

during a tax year an individual carries on a trade, otherwise than as a partner in a firm, in a non-active capacity (see section 74C),

(b)

the individual makes a loss in the trade in that tax year, and

(c)

the loss arises directly or indirectly in consequence of, or otherwise in connection with, relevant tax avoidance arrangements.

(2)

No sideways relief or capital gains relief may be given to the individual for the loss (but subject to subsection (5)).

(3)

In subsection (1) “relevant tax avoidance arrangements” means arrangements made by the individual the main purpose, or one of the main purposes, of which is the obtaining of a reduction in tax liability by means of sideways relief or capital gains relief.

(4)

In subsection (3) “arrangements” includes any agreement, understanding, scheme, transaction or series of transactions (whether or not legally enforceable).

(5)

This section has no effect in relation to any loss that derives wholly from qualifying film expenditure (see section 74D).

(6)

Subsection (10) of section 74A (capital gains relief) applies for the purposes of this section.

74CMeaning of “non-active capacity” for purposes of sections 74A and 74B etc

(1)

For the purposes of sections 74A and 74B an individual carries on a trade in a non-active capacity during a tax year if the individual—

(a)

carries on the trade at a time during the year, and

(b)

does not devote a significant amount of time to the trade in the relevant period for the tax year.

(2)

For the purposes of this section an individual devotes a significant amount of time to a trade in the relevant period for a tax year if, in the relevant period, the individual spends an average of at least 10 hours a week personally engaged in activities of the trade and those activities are carried on—

(a)

on a commercial basis, and

(b)

with a view to the realisation of profits as a result of the activities.

(3)

For this purpose “the relevant period” means the basis period for the tax year (unless the basis period is shorter than 6 months).

(4)

If the basis period for the tax year is shorter than 6 months, “the relevant period” means—

(a)

the period of 6 months beginning with the date on which the individual first started to carry on the trade (if the basis period begins with that date), or

(b)

the period of 6 months ending with the date on which the individual permanently ceased to carry on the trade (if the basis period ends with that date).

(5)

If—

(a)

any relief is given on the assumption that the individual devoted or will devote a significant amount of time to the trade in the relevant period for a tax year, but

(b)

the individual in fact failed or fails to do so,

the relief is withdrawn by the making of an assessment to income tax under this section.

74DMeaning of “qualifying film expenditure” for purposes of sections 74A and 74B

(1)

For the purposes of sections 74A and 74B expenditure is qualifying film expenditure if—

(a)

it is deducted under a relevant film provision for the purposes of calculating the profits of a trade, or

(b)

it is incidental expenditure which (although not deducted under a relevant film provision) is incurred in connection with the production of a film, or the acquisition of the original master version of a film, in relation to which expenditure is so deducted.

(2)

Expenditure is incidental if it is on management, administration or obtaining finance.

(3)

The extent to which expenditure is within subsection (1)(b) is determined on a just and reasonable basis.

(4)

For the purposes of sections 74A and 74B the amount of any loss that derives from qualifying film expenditure is determined on a just and reasonable basis.

(5)

In this section—

the acquisition of the original master version of a film” has the same meaning as in Chapter 9 of Part 2 of ITTOIA 2005 (see sections 130 and 132 of that Act),

film” is to be read in accordance with paragraph 1 of Schedule 1 to the Films Act 1985, and

a relevant film provision” means any one of sections 137 to 140 of ITTOIA 2005 (relief for certified master versions of films).”

Other amendments

3

In section 32 (liability not dealt with in the calculation), before the entry relating to section 79(1) insert— “ under section 74C(5) (non-active traders: withdrawal of relief), ”.

4

In section 64(8) (deduction of trade losses from general income), after paragraph (b) insert—

“(ba)

sections 74A to 74D (general restrictions on relief),”.

5

In section 72(5) (early trade loss relief)—

(a)

in paragraph (b), after “relief” insert “ unless trade is commercial etc, and

(b)

after that paragraph insert—

“(ba)

sections 74A to 74D (general restrictions on relief),”.

Commencement

6

(1)

Section 74A of ITA, and the other provisions inserted into that Act by this Schedule so far as relating to that section, have effect in relation to any loss made by an individual in the tax year 2007-08 or any subsequent tax year.

(2)

But those provisions do not have effect in relation to a loss made by an individual in a tax year the basis period for which ended before 12 March 2008.

(3)

If the basis period for the tax year in which a loss is made by an individual begins before 12 March 2008 and ends on or after that date (a “straddling basis period”), the amount of that loss for the purposes of section 74A of ITA 2007 is—

(a)

the amount of sideways relief and capital gains relief which (after applying the restrictions under the other provisions of Chapter 2 of Part 4 of that Act) may be given to the individual for that loss, less

(b)

the amount (if any) of the pre-announcement loss.

(4)

“The pre-announcement loss” is determined as follows.

(5)

Calculate the profits or losses of the straddling basis period, but without regard to capital allowances and qualifying film expenditure (within the meaning of section 74D of ITA 2007).

(6)

If that calculation produces a loss, apportion the loss produced by that calculation to the part of the straddling basis period which falls before 12 March 2008 in proportion to the number of days in that part.

(7)

Calculate so much of the loss of the straddling basis period as derives from relevant pre-announcement capital expenditure.

(8)

The pre-announcement loss is the sum of—

(a)

the amount of the loss apportioned under sub-paragraph (6) (if any), and

(b)

so much of the loss of the straddling period (if any) as derives from relevant pre-announcement capital expenditure.

(9)

For the purposes of this paragraph the amount of the loss of the straddling basis period that derives from relevant pre-announcement capital expenditure is determined on a just and reasonable basis.

(10)

In this paragraph “relevant pre-announcement capital expenditure” means—

(a)

any capital allowance in respect of expenditure paid before 12 March 2008, and

(b)

any capital allowance in respect of expenditure paid on or after that date pursuant to an unconditional obligation in a contract made before that date;

and for this purpose “an unconditional obligation” means an obligation which may not be varied or extinguished by the exercise of any right conferred on the individual in question (whether or not under the contract).

7

(1)

Section 74B of ITA, and the other provisions inserted into that Act by this Schedule so far as relating to that section, have effect in relation to a loss arising directly or indirectly in consequence of, or otherwise in connection with, relevant tax avoidance arrangements made on or after 12 March 2008.

(2)

But those provisions do not have effect if the arrangements were made pursuant to an unconditional obligation in a contract made before that date; and for this purpose “an unconditional obligation” means an obligation which may not be varied or extinguished by the exercise of any right conferred on the individual in question (whether or not under the contract).

SCHEDULE 22Avoidance involving financial arrangements

Section 62

Rent factoring of leases of plant or machinery

1

(1)

Section 785A of ICTA (rent factoring of leases of plant or machinery) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), omit paragraph (d).

(3)

In subsection (2)—

(a)

for “relevant portion of the consideration” substitute “ market value of the rights transferred ”, and

(b)

for “in a period of account to the extent that it is receivable in that period of account” substitute “ at the time of the transfer ”.

(4)

After that subsection insert—

“(2A)

But subsection (2) does not apply if and to the extent that any of the market value of the rights transferred is (apart from this section) brought into account—

(a)

as income, or

(b)

as a capital allowances disposal receipt.”

(5)

After subsection (5) insert—

“(5ZA)

The references in subsections (1)(c) and (3) to another person include any person in which P has an interest, including any partnership of which P is a member and the trustees of any trust of which P is a beneficiary.”

(6)

The amendments made by this paragraph have effect in relation to arrangements for transfers of rights entered into on or after 12 March 2008.

Credit allowable in relation to interest

2

(1)

In section 807A of ICTA (disposals and acquisitions of company loan relationships with or without interest), omit subsection (3) (credit allowable as if amount of foreign tax had been paid).

(2)

Accordingly, omit—

(a)

in section 807A of ICTA, subsections (5) and (6) and, in subsection (7), the definitions of “related transaction” and “trading credit”, and

(b)

section 91(4) of FA 1997.

(3)

The repeals made by this paragraph have effect in relation to related transactions on or after 12 March 2008.

Distributions arising from tax arrangements

F983

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Disposals for consideration not recognised by accounting practice

F984

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Avoidance relying on continuity of treatment provisions

F985

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Distributions from shares treated as loan relationships

F986

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Depreciatory transactions

F987

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F988

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F989

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Falsifying transactions

F9810

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F9811

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F9812

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Non-qualifying shares

F9813

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Income producing assets

F9814

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Exit arrangements

F9815

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Schemes etc designed to reproduce interest-like return

F9816

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Partnerships

17

F99(1)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

(2)

In section 131 of FA 2004 (companies in partnership), insert at the end—

“(10)

Subsection (4) does not apply if and to the extent that the chargeable amount is brought into account under section 91H or 91I of the Finance Act 1996.”

(3)

The amendments made by this paragraph have effect in relation to returns arising on or after 12 March 2008.

Loan relationships treated differently by debtor and creditor

F10018

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Commercial rate of interest

F10019

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Derivative contracts

F10020

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Restrictions on relief for interest payments

21

(1)

Section 384 of ITA 2007 (general restrictions on relief for interest payments) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (2), for “interest is paid at a rate in excess of a reasonable commercial rate” substitute “ the interest paid on a loan in a tax year exceeds a reasonable commercial amount of interest on the loan for the relevant period ”.

(3)

After subsection (2) insert—

“(3)

The relevant period is the tax year or, if the loan exists for part only of the tax year, the part of the tax year for which the loan exists.

(4)

A reasonable commercial amount of interest on the loan for the relevant period is an amount which, together with any interest paid before that period (other than unrelieved interest), represents a reasonable commercial rate of interest on the loan from the date it was made to the end of that period.

(5)

Unrelieved interest” means interest which because of subsection (2) is not eligible for relief under this Chapter.”

(4)

The amendments made by this paragraph have effect in relation to interest paid on or after 9 October 2007; but in relation to interest paid in the period beginning with that date and ending with 5 April 2008, they have effect as if the references in section 384(2) and (3) to a tax year were to that period.

SCHEDULE 23Manufactured payments: anti-avoidance

Section 63

Introduction

F1011

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Section 572A

F1012

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Section 573

F1013

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Section 574

F1014

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Section 575

5

Omit section 575 (allowable deductions for manufactured dividends on UK shares: restriction on double-counting).

Section 578

F1026

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Section 579

F1027

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Section 580

8

Omit section 580 (allowable deductions for manufactured interest on UK securities: restriction on double counting).

Section 581A

F1039

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Section 583

F10310

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Capital gains

F10311

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

12

In ITA 2007, omit paragraph 335(5) of Schedule 1 (which amended section 263D(7) of TCGA 1992).

SCHEDULE 24Annual investment allowance

Section 74

Part 1Amendments of CAA 2001

1

CAA 2001 is amended as follows.

2

In Part 2, after Chapter 3 insert—

“Chapter 3AAIA qualifying expenditure

38AAIA qualifying expenditure

(1)

An annual investment allowance is not available unless the qualifying expenditure is AIA qualifying expenditure.

(2)

Expenditure is AIA qualifying expenditure if—

(a)

it is incurred by a qualifying person on or after the relevant date, and

(b)

it is not excluded by any of the general exclusions in section 38B.

(3)

Qualifying person” means—

(a)

an individual,

(b)

a partnership of which all the members are individuals, or

(c)

a company.

(4)

In determining whether expenditure is AIA qualifying expenditure, any effect of section 12 on the time at which it is to be treated as incurred is to be disregarded.

(5)

The relevant date” means—

(a)

for corporation tax purposes, 1 April 2008, and

(b)

for income tax purposes, 6 April 2008.

38BGeneral exclusions applying to section 38A

Expenditure within any of the following general exclusions is not AIA qualifying expenditure. General exclusion 1

The expenditure is incurred in the chargeable period in which the qualifying activity is permanently discontinued.

General exclusion 2

The expenditure is incurred on the provision of a car (as defined by section 81).

General exclusion 3

The expenditure is incurred wholly for the purposes of a ring fence trade in respect of which tax is chargeable under section 501A of ICTA (supplementary charge in respect of ring fence trades).

General exclusion 4

The circumstances of the incurring of the expenditure are that—

(a)

the provision of the plant or machinery on which the expenditure is incurred is connected with a change in the nature or conduct of the trade or business carried on by a person other than the person incurring the expenditure, and

(b)

the obtaining of an annual investment allowance is the main benefit, or one of the main benefits, which could reasonably be expected to arise from the making of the change.

General exclusion 5

Any of the following sections applies—

  • section 13 (use for qualifying activity of plant or machinery provided for other purposes);

  • section 13A (use for other purposes of plant or machinery provided for long funding leasing);

  • section 14 (use for qualifying activity of plant or machinery which is a gift).

This is subject to section 161 (pre-trading expenditure on mineral exploration and access).”

3

In Chapter 5 of Part 2 (allowances and charges), insert at the beginning—

“Annual investment allowance

51AEntitlement to annual investment allowance

(1)

A person is entitled to an allowance (an “annual investment allowance”) in respect of AIA qualifying expenditure if—

(a)

the expenditure is incurred in a chargeable period to which this Act applies, and

(b)

the person owns the plant and machinery at some time during that chargeable period.

(2)

Any annual investment allowance is made for the chargeable period in which the AIA qualifying expenditure is incurred.

(3)

If the AIA qualifying expenditure incurred in a chargeable period is less than or equal to the maximum allowance, the person is entitled to an annual investment allowance in respect of all the AIA qualifying expenditure.

(4)

If the AIA qualifying expenditure incurred in a chargeable period is more than the maximum allowance, the person is entitled to an annual investment allowance in respect of so much of the AIA qualifying expenditure as does not exceed the maximum allowance.

(5)

The maximum allowance is £50,000.

(6)

But if the chargeable period is more or less than a year, the maximum allowance is proportionately increased or reduced.

(7)

A person may claim an annual investment allowance in respect of all the AIA qualifying expenditure in respect of which the person is entitled to an allowance, or in respect of only some of it.

(8)

The Treasury may by order substitute for the amount for the time being specified in subsection (5) such other amount as it thinks fit.

(9)

An order under subsection (8) may make such incidental, supplemental, consequential and transitional provision as the Treasury thinks fit.

(10)

This section is subject to—

(a)

sections 51B to 51N (restrictions on entitlement to annual investment allowance),

(b)

section 205 (reduction of allowance if plant or machinery provided partly for purposes other than those of qualifying activity),

(c)

section 210 (reduction of allowance if it appears that a partial depreciation subsidy is or will be payable), and

(d)

sections 217, 218A and 241 (anti-avoidance: no allowance in certain cases),

and needs to be read with section 236 (additional VAT liabilities).

51BFirst restriction: companies

(1)

A company is entitled to a single annual investment allowance in respect of all the qualifying activities carried on by the company in a chargeable period.

(2)

The company may allocate the annual investment allowance to the relevant AIA qualifying expenditure as it thinks fit.

(3)

The relevant AIA qualifying expenditure is the AIA qualifying expenditure incurred by the company in the chargeable period mentioned in subsection (1).

(4)

This section is subject to sections 51C, 51D and 51E.

51CSecond restriction: groups of companies

(1)

This section applies in relation to—

(a)

a company which, in a financial year, is a parent undertaking of one or more other companies, and

(b)

those other companies.

(2)

The companies are entitled to a single annual investment allowance between them in respect of the relevant AIA qualifying expenditure.

(3)

The companies may allocate the annual investment allowance to the relevant AIA qualifying expenditure as they think fit.

(4)

The relevant AIA qualifying expenditure is the AIA qualifying expenditure incurred by the companies in chargeable periods ending in the financial year mentioned in subsection (1).

(5)

A company (“P”) is a parent undertaking of another company (“C”) in a financial year if P is a parent undertaking of C at the end of C's chargeable period ending in that financial year.

(6)

In this section “parent undertaking” has the same meaning as in section 1162 of the Companies Act 2006.

(7)

This section is subject to section 51D.

51DThird restriction: groups of companies under common control

(1)

Where in a financial year two or more groups of companies are—

(a)

controlled by the same person (see section 51F), and

(b)

related to one another (see section 51G),

this section applies in relation to the companies which are members of those groups.

(2)

The companies are entitled to a single annual investment allowance between them in respect of the relevant AIA qualifying expenditure.

(3)

The companies may allocate the annual investment allowance to the relevant AIA qualifying expenditure as they think fit.

(4)

The relevant AIA qualifying expenditure is the AIA qualifying expenditure incurred by the companies in chargeable periods ending in the financial year mentioned in subsection (1).

(5)

In this section and in sections 51F and 51G, a group of companies means—

(a)

a company which, in the financial year mentioned in subsection (1), is a parent undertaking of one or more other companies, and

(b)

those other companies,

(and the members of the group are the company which is the parent undertaking and those other companies).

(6)

A company (“P”) is a parent undertaking of another company (“C”) in a financial year if P is a parent undertaking of C at the end of C's chargeable period ending in that financial year.

(7)

In this section “parent undertaking” has the same meaning as in section 1162 of the Companies Act 2006.

51EFourth restriction: other companies under common control

(1)

This section applies in relation to two or more companies which in a financial year are—

(a)

controlled by the same person (see section 51F), and

(b)

related to one another (see section 51G),

and in relation to which to neither section 51C nor section 51D applies.

(2)

The companies are entitled to a single annual investment allowance between them in respect of the relevant AIA qualifying expenditure.

(3)

The companies may allocate the annual investment allowance to the relevant AIA qualifying expenditure as they think fit.

(4)

The relevant AIA qualifying expenditure is the AIA qualifying expenditure incurred by the companies in chargeable periods ending in the financial year mentioned in subsection (1).

51FCompanies and groups: meaning of “control”

(1)

A company is controlled by a person in a financial year if it is controlled by that person at the end of its chargeable period ending in that financial year.

(2)

A group of companies is controlled by a person in a financial year if the company which is the parent undertaking is controlled by that person at the end of its chargeable period ending in that financial year.

(3)

Section 574(2) defines “control” in relation to a company which is a body corporate.

(4)

In relation to a company (“C”) which is not a body corporate, control means the power of a person (“P”) to secure—

(a)

by means of the holding of shares or the possession of voting power in relation to C or another body, or

(b)

as a result of any powers conferred by the constitution of C or another body,

that the affairs of C are conducted in accordance with P's wishes.

(5)

In subsection (4) “shares” has the meaning given by section 1161(2) of the Companies Act 2006.

51GCompanies and groups: meaning of “related”

(1)

A company (“C1”) is related to another company (“C2”) in a financial year if one or both of—

(a)

the shared premises condition, and

(b)

the similar activities condition,

are met in relation to the companies in that financial year.

(2)

Where C1 is related to C2 in a financial year, C1 is also related to any other company to which C2 is related in that financial year.

(3)

A group of companies (“G1”) is related to another group of companies (“G2”) in a financial year if in that financial year a company which is a member of G1 is related to a company which is a member of G2.

(4)

Where G1 is related to G2 in a financial year, G1 is also related to any other group of companies to which G2 is related in that financial year.

(5)

The shared premises condition is met in relation to two companies in a financial year if, at the end of the relevant chargeable period of one or both of the companies, the companies carry on qualifying activities from the same premises.

(6)

The similar activities condition is met in relation to two companies in a financial year if—

(a)

more than 50% of the turnover of one company for the relevant chargeable period is derived from qualifying activities within a particular NACE classification, and

(b)

more than 50% of the turnover of the other company for the relevant chargeable period is derived from qualifying activities within that NACE classification.

(7)

In this section—

NACE classification” means the first level of the common statistical classification of economic activities in the European Union established by Regulation (EC) No 1893/2006 of the European Parliament and the Council of 20 December 2006 (as that Regulation has effect from time to time), and

relevant chargeable period”, in relation to a company and a financial year, means the chargeable period of the company ending in that financial year.

51HFifth restriction: qualifying activities under common control

(1)

This section applies in relation to two or more qualifying activities which, in a tax year—

(a)

are carried on by a qualifying person other than a company,

(b)

are controlled by the same person (see section 51I), and

(c)

are related to one another (see section 51J).

(2)

A qualifying activity is carried on by a qualifying person in a tax year if it is carried on by the person at the end of the chargeable period for the activity ending in the tax year.

(3)

Where all the qualifying activities are carried on by one qualifying person, that person is entitled to a single annual investment allowance in respect of the relevant AIA qualifying expenditure.

(4)

Where the qualifying activities are carried on by more than one qualifying person, those persons are entitled to a single annual investment allowance between them in respect of the relevant AIA qualifying expenditure.

(5)

The person or persons carrying on the qualifying activities may allocate the annual investment allowance to the relevant AIA qualifying expenditure as the person or persons think fit.

(6)

The relevant AIA qualifying expenditure is the AIA qualifying expenditure incurred for the purposes of the qualifying activities in the chargeable periods for those activities ending in the tax year mentioned in subsection (1).

51IQualifying activities: meaning of control

(1)

A qualifying activity is controlled by a person in a tax year if it is controlled by the person at the end of the chargeable period for that activity which ends in that tax year.

(2)

A qualifying activity carried on by an individual is controlled by the individual who carries it on.

(3)

A qualifying activity carried on by a partnership is controlled by the person (if any) who controls the partnership.

(4)

Section 574(3) defines “control” in relation to a partnership.

(5)

Where partners who between them control one partnership also between them control another partnership, the qualifying activities carried on by the partnerships are to be treated as controlled by the same person.

51JQualifying activity: meaning of “related”

(1)

A qualifying activity (“A1”) is related to another qualifying activity (“A2”) in a tax year if one or both of—

(a)

the shared premises condition, and

(b)

the similar activities condition,

are met in relation to the activities in the tax year.

(2)

Where A1 is related to A2 in a tax year, A1 is also related to any other qualifying activity to which A2 is related in that tax year.

(3)

The shared premises condition is met in relation to two qualifying activities in a tax year if, at the end of the relevant chargeable period for one or both of the activities, the activities are carried on from the same premises.

(4)

The similar activities condition is met in relation to two qualifying activities in a tax year if, at the end of the relevant chargeable period for one or both of the activities, the activities are within the same NACE classification.

(5)

In this section—

NACE classification” has the same meaning as in section 51G, and

relevant chargeable period”, in relation to a qualifying activity and a tax year, means the chargeable period for that activity ending in that tax year.

51KOperation of annual investment allowance where restrictions apply

(1)

This section applies where because of section 51B, 51C, 51D, 51E or 51H a person is (or persons between them are) entitled to a single annual investment allowance in respect of relevant AIA qualifying expenditure.

(2)

If the relevant AIA qualifying expenditure is less than or equal to the maximum allowance, the person is (or the persons between them are) entitled to an annual investment allowance in respect of all the relevant AIA qualifying expenditure.

(3)

If the relevant AIA qualifying expenditure is more than the maximum allowance, the person is (or the persons between them are) entitled to an annual investment allowance in respect of so much of the relevant AIA qualifying expenditure as does not exceed the maximum allowance.

(4)

The maximum allowance is the amount for the time being specified in section 51A(5); but this is subject to sections 51M and 51N (which provide that in certain cases an additional amount of annual investment allowance may be available).

(5)

The person or persons may claim an annual investment allowance in respect of all the relevant AIA qualifying expenditure in respect of which the person is (or the persons between them are) entitled to an allowance, or in respect of only some of it.

(6)

The amount of the annual investment allowance allocated to relevant AIA qualifying expenditure incurred in a chargeable period must not exceed the amount of the annual investment allowance to which a person would be entitled in respect of that expenditure under section 51A(5) and (6) if section 51B, 51C, 51D, 51E or 51H did not apply.

51LSpecial provision for short chargeable periods

(1)

This section applies where—

(a)

more than one chargeable period of a company ends in a financial year, or

(b)

more than one chargeable period for a qualifying activity ends in a tax year.

(2)

Whether section 51C, 51D or 51E applies in relation to the company, or section 51H applies in relation to the qualifying activity, is to be determined in relation to each chargeable period ending in that year as if it were the only chargeable period ending in that year.

(3)

AIA qualifying expenditure incurred in a chargeable period in relation to which the section in question does not apply is not relevant AIA qualifying expenditure for the purposes of that section.

51MSpecial provision for long chargeable periods

(1)

This section applies where—

(a)

section 51H applies in relation to two or more qualifying activities controlled by a person (“P”) in a tax year, and

(b)

the relevant chargeable period for one of those qualifying activities (“A1”) is longer than a year.

(2)

An additional amount of annual investment allowance may be allocated to relevant AIA qualifying expenditure incurred for the purposes of A1.

(3)

That additional amount is the amount, or the aggregate of the amounts, of any relevant unused allowance for each tax year (a “previous tax year”)—

(a)

which falls before the tax year mentioned in subsection (1)(a), and

(b)

in which part of A1's relevant chargeable period falls.

(4)

The amount of the relevant unused allowance for a previous tax year is (subject to subsections (7) and(8))—

MA-AMmath

but where the amount given by that formula is less than nil, the amount of the relevant unused allowance for the previous tax year is nil.

(5)

In subsection (4)—

  • MA is the amount specified in section 51A(5) in relation to the previous tax year, and

  • AM is the amount of any annual investment allowance made under section 51A or 51K in respect of AIA qualifying expenditure incurred for the purposes of a relevant qualifying activity in the chargeable period for that activity ending in the previous tax year.

(6)

Relevant qualifying activity” means—

(a)

any qualifying activity carried on by a qualifying person other than a company which was controlled by P in the previous tax year (see section 51I) and related to A1 in that tax year (see section 51J), and

(b)

if A1 was controlled by P in the previous tax year (see section 51I), A1.

(7)

Where any part of the amount calculated under subsection (4) has, on a previous application of this section, been allocated to AIA qualifying expenditure incurred for the purposes of a qualifying activity controlled by P in a tax year before that mentioned in subsection (1)(a), the amount of the relevant unused allowance is reduced accordingly.

(8)

Where the amount of the relevant unused allowance for a previous tax year would (apart from this subsection) exceed—

DCPYDY×MAmath

the amount of the relevant unused allowance for that tax year is limited to the amount given by that formula.

(9)

In subsection (8)—

  • DCPY is the number of days in A1's relevant chargeable period falling in the previous tax year,

  • DY is the number of days in that tax year, and

  • MA has the meaning given by subsection (5).

(10)

Nothing in this section prevents section 51K(6) applying in relation to relevant AIA qualifying expenditure incurred for the purposes of A1.

(11)

In this section references to a relevant chargeable period, in relation to a qualifying activity, are to the chargeable period for that activity ending in the tax year mentioned in subsection (1)(a).

51NSpecial provision for long chargeable periods: supplementary

(1)

This section applies where—

(a)

section 51H applies in relation to two or more qualifying activities controlled by a person (“P”) in a tax year, and

(b)

the relevant chargeable period for more than one of those qualifying activities is longer than a year.

(2)

Section 51M applies in relation to each of the qualifying activities mentioned in subsection (1)(b) and the tax year mentioned in subsection (1)(a), as it applies in relation to A1 and the tax year mentioned in subsection (1)(a) of that section.

(3)

But where two or more of the qualifying activities mentioned in subsection (1)(b) were related in a previous tax year, section 51M applies with the following modifications.

(4)

The amount of any relevant unused allowance for that tax year is to be calculated under section 51M(4) to (7) (without regard to section 51M(8)).

(5)

For that purpose section 51M(6) applies as if the references to A1 were references to any of the qualifying activities mentioned in subsection (1)(b).

(6)

The amount of the relevant unused allowance may be allocated between those activities, but this is subject to subsection (7).

(7)

The amount of the relevant unused allowance allocated to any one of those activities may not exceed the amount given by the formula in section 51M(8).”

4

After section 52 insert—

“Prevention of double relief

52APrevention of double relief

A person may not claim an annual investment allowance and a first-year allowance in respect of the same expenditure.”

5

In section 58 (allocation of qualifying expenditure to pools), after subsection (4) insert—

“(4A)

If an annual investment allowance is made to a person for a chargeable period—

(a)

the AIA qualifying expenditure in respect of which the allowance is made must be allocated to the appropriate pool (or pools) in that chargeable period, and

(b)

the available qualifying expenditure in a pool to which the expenditure (or some of it) is allocated is reduced by the amount of that expenditure.”

6

(1)

Section 205 (reduction of first-year allowances) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), after “any” insert “ annual investment allowance or ”.

(3)

In the heading, after “of” insert annual investment allowance and.

7

(1)

Section 210 (reduction of first-year allowances) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), after “amount of any” insert “ annual investment allowance or ”.

(3)

In the heading, after “of” insert annual investment allowance and.

8

(1)

Section 217 (restrictions on allowances) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for “a first-year allowance is not” substitute “ no annual investment allowance or first-year allowance is ”.

(3)

In subsection (2), after “Any” insert “ annual investment allowance or ”.

(4)

In the heading, after “No” insert annual investment allowance or.

9

After section 218 insert—

“218AFurther restriction on annual investment allowance

(1)

This section applies where an arrangement is entered into wholly or mainly for a disqualifying purpose.

(2)

Arrangements are entered into for a disqualifying purpose if their main purpose, or one of their main purposes, is to enable a person to obtain an annual investment allowance to which the person would not otherwise be entitled.

(3)

The annual investment allowance mentioned in subsection (2) is not to be made.

(4)

Any annual investment allowance which is prohibited by subsection (3), but which has already been made, is to be withdrawn.”

10

(1)

Section 236 (additional VAT liability generates first-year allowance) is amended as follows.

(2)

After subsection (3) insert—

“(3A)

Subsection (3B) applies if—

(a)

the original expenditure was AIA qualifying expenditure, and

(b)

the additional VAT liability is incurred at a time when the plant or machinery is provided for the purposes of the qualifying activity.

(3B)

The additional VAT liability is to be regarded for the purposes of this Part as AIA qualifying expenditure incurred on the same plant or machinery as the original expenditure in the chargeable period in which the liability accrues.

(3C)

Section 51A(7) applies to AIA qualifying expenditure constituted by the additional VAT liability as it applies to other AIA qualifying expenditure.”

(3)

In the heading, after “allowance” insert or annual investment allowance.

11

In section 237(1) (exceptions to section 236), after “liability is not” insert “ AIA qualifying expenditure or ”.

12

(1)

Section 241 (no first-year allowance in respect of additional VAT liability) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1)(b), before “a first-year” insert “ an annual investment allowance or ”.

(3)

In subsection (2), for “A first-year allowance is not” substitute “ No annual investment allowance or first-year allowance is ”.

(4)

In subsection (3), after “Any” insert “ annual investment allowance or ”.

(5)

In the heading, after “No” insert annual investment allowance or.

13

In section 263(3) (qualifying activities carried on in partnership), after “Any” insert “ annual investment allowance, ”.

14

In section 265(4) (successions: general), after “to” insert “ an annual investment allowance or ”.

15

In Part 2 of Schedule 1 (index of defined expressions), insert at the appropriate place—

“AIA qualifying expenditure

section 38A”.

Part 2Amendments of other enactments

ICTA

16

ICTA is amended as follows.

17

In section 395(1)(c) (leasing contracts and company reconstructions), after “for which” insert “ an annual investment allowance or ”.

18

In paragraph 1(6)(b)(i) of Schedule 18 (group relief), before “a first-year” insert “ an annual investment allowance or ”.

FA 2000

19

(1)

Schedule 22 to FA 2000 (tonnage tax) is amended as follows.

(2)

In paragraph 87(1)(a), for “a first-year allowance shall not” substitute “ no annual investment allowance or first-year allowance is to be ”.

(3)

In paragraph 94(2), after “any” insert “ annual investment allowance or ”.

ITA 2007

20

ITA 2007 is amended as follows.

21

In section 76 (first-year allowances)—

(a)

after “from” insert “ an annual investment allowance or ”, and

(b)

in the heading, after “allowances” insert and annual investment allowances.

22

In section 78 (arrangements to reduce tax liabilities)—

(a)

in subsection (1)(a), after “the” insert “ annual investment allowance or ”, and

(b)

in the heading, after “allowances” insert and annual investment allowances.

Part 3Commencement

23

(1)

This Schedule has effect in relation to expenditure incurred on or after the relevant date.

(2)

In relation to a chargeable period which—

(a)

begins before the relevant date, and

(b)

ends on or after the relevant date,

the maximum allowance under section 51A of CAA 2001 is to be calculated as if the period beginning with the relevant date and ending with the end of the chargeable period were the chargeable period.

(3)

The relevant date is—

(a)

for corporation tax purposes, 1 April 2008, and

(b)

for income tax purposes, 6 April 2008.

F104SCHEDULE 25First-year tax credits

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

SCHEDULE 26Special rate expenditure and the special rate pool

Section 82

Part 1Amendments of CAA 2001

Introductory

1

CAA 2001 is amended as follows.

Special rate expenditure and the special rate pool

2

After Chapter 10 insert—

“Chapter 10ASpecial rate expenditure

Special rate expenditure

104ASpecial rate expenditure

(1)

Special rate expenditure” means—

(a)

expenditure incurred on or after the relevant date to which section 28 (thermal insulation) applies,

(b)

expenditure incurred on or after that date to which section 33A (integral features) applies,

(c)

long-life asset expenditure (within the meaning of Chapter 10) incurred on or after that date, and

(d)

long-life asset expenditure (within the meaning of that Chapter) incurred before that date but allocated to a pool in a chargeable period beginning on or after that date.

(2)

The relevant date is—

(a)

for corporation tax purposes, 1 April 2008, and

(b)

for income tax purposes, 6 April 2008.

104BApplication of Chapter to part of expenditure

(1)

If part only of the capital expenditure on plant and machinery is special rate expenditure—

(a)

the part which is such expenditure, and

(b)

the part which is not,

are to be treated for the purposes of this Act as expenditure on separate items of plant or machinery.

(2)

For the purposes of subsection (1), all such apportionments are to be made as are just and reasonable.

Rules applying to special rate expenditure

104CSpecial rate pool

(1)

Special rate expenditure to which this section applies, if allocated to a pool, must be allocated to a class pool (“the special rate pool”).

(2)

This section applies to special rate expenditure if—

(a)

it is incurred wholly and exclusively for the purposes of a qualifying activity, and

(b)

it is not expenditure which is required to be allocated to a single asset pool.

104DWriting-down allowances at 10%

(1)

The amount of the writing-down allowance to which a person is entitled for a chargeable period in respect of expenditure which is special rate expenditure is 10% of the amount by which AQE exceeds TDR (see Chapter 5).

(2)

Subsection (1) applies even if the special rate expenditure is in a single asset pool.

(3)

In the case of expenditure in the special rate pool, this section is subject to section 56A (writing-down allowance for small pools).

(4)

Subsections (3) and (4) of section 56 (proportionate increases or reductions in amount in certain cases) apply for the purposes of subsection (1) of this section as they apply for the purposes of subsection (1) of that section.

104EDisposal value of special rate assets

(1)

This section applies if—

(a)

section 104D (writing-down allowances at 10%) has had effect in relation to any special rate expenditure incurred by a person (“the taxpayer”),

(b)

any disposal event occurs in relation to the item on which the expenditure was incurred,

(c)

the disposal value to be brought into account by the taxpayer would (but for this section) be less than the notional written-down value of the item, and

(d)

the disposal event is part of, or occurs as a result of, a scheme or arrangement the main purpose or one of the main purposes of which is the obtaining by the taxpayer of a tax advantage under this Part.

(2)

The disposal value that the taxpayer must bring into account is the notional written-down value of the item.

(3)

The notional written-down value is—

QE-Amath

where—

QE is the taxpayer's expenditure on the item that is qualifying expenditure, and

A is the total of all allowances which could have been made to the taxpayer in respect of that expenditure if—

  • (a) that expenditure had been the only expenditure that had ever been taken into account in determining the taxpayer's available qualifying expenditure,

  • (b) where the item is a long-life asset, that expenditure had not been prevented by the application of a monetary limit from being long-life asset expenditure, and

  • (c) all allowances had been made in full.”

Consequential amendments

3

In section 54(5) (the different kinds of pools), for “section 101 (long life assets);” substitute “ section 104C (special rate expenditure); ”.

4

In section 56(2) (amount of allowances and charges), for paragraph (a) substitute—

“(a)

section 104D (special rate expenditure: 10%), and”.

5

In section 65(1) (final chargeable period), for paragraph (b) substitute—

“(b)

a special rate pool,”.

6

In section 66 (list of provisions about disposal values), for the entry relating to section 104 substitute—

“section 104E

special rate expenditure: avoidance cases”.

7

In column 1 of the table in section 84 (cases in which short-life asset treatment is ruled out), for item 4 substitute—

“4

The expenditure is special rate expenditure (see Chapter 10A).”

8

Omit section 92 (application of Chapter 10 to part of expenditure).

9

For section 101 (long-life asset pool) substitute—

“101Allocation of long-life asset expenditure to pool

Chapter 10A (special rate expenditure and the special rate pool) provides for long-life asset expenditure to be allocated to the special rate pool.”

10

For section 102 (6% writing-down allowance in respect of long-life asset expenditure) substitute—

“102Writing-down allowance in respect of long-life asset expenditure

Chapter 10A (special rate expenditure and the special rate pool) provides for the writing-down allowance to which a person is entitled in respect of long-life asset expenditure.”

11

Omit section 104 (disposal value of long-life assets).

12

In section 266(7) (certain provisions disapplied where election made under section 266)—

(a)

for “104” substitute “ 104E ”, and

(b)

for “of long-life assets” substitute “ in connection with special rate expenditure ”.

13

In Part 2 of Schedule 1 (index of defined expressions), insert at the appropriate place—

“special rate expenditure (in Part 2)

section 104A”.

Part 2Commencement etc

Commencement

14

(1)

This Schedule has effect in relation to—

(a)

expenditure incurred on or after the relevant date, and

(b)

long-life asset expenditure (within the meaning of Chapter 10 of CAA 2001) incurred before the relevant date but allocated to a pool in a chargeable period beginning on or after that date.

(2)

Sub-paragraph (1) is subject to—

(a)

section 83 (which provides that certain other long-life asset expenditure is to be treated as special rate expenditure for the purposes of CAA 2001), and

(b)

paragraphs 15 to 17.

(3)

The relevant date is—

(a)

for corporation tax purposes, 1 April 2008, and

(b)

for income tax purposes, 6 April 2008.

Sale between connected persons

15

(1)

This paragraph applies where, on or after the relevant date—

(a)

there is a sale of a pre-commencement integral feature,

(b)

the buyer and seller are connected persons (within the meaning of section 575 of CAA 2001), and

(c)

the buyer's expenditure on the integral feature would (apart from this paragraph) be special rate expenditure.

(2)

An integral feature is a pre-commencement integral feature if the seller—

(a)

incurred expenditure on it before the relevant date, or

(b)

incurred expenditure on it on or after that date which was not qualifying expenditure because of a previous application of this paragraph.

(3)

The buyer's expenditure on the integral feature is not qualifying expenditure unless—

(a)

the original expenditure was qualifying expenditure, or

(b)

the buyer's expenditure would have been qualifying expenditure, had it been incurred at the time the original expenditure was incurred.

(4)

The “original expenditure”—

(a)

where the integral feature is a pre-commencement integral feature because of sub-paragraph (2)(a), is the expenditure mentioned in that sub-paragraph, and

(b)

otherwise, is the expenditure incurred on the integral feature before the relevant date by virtue of which this paragraph first applied.

(5)

The “relevant date” has the same meaning as in paragraph 14.

Saving for intra-group transfers

16

(1)

This paragraph applies where, on or after the relevant date—

(a)

there is a sale of a pre-commencement integral feature,

(b)

the buyer and seller are companies which are members of the same group, and

(c)

the buyer's expenditure on the integral feature would (apart from this paragraph) be special rate expenditure.

(2)

An integral feature is a pre-commencement integral feature if qualifying expenditure on it—

(a)

was incurred by the seller before the relevant date and allocated to the seller's main pool, or

(b)

was incurred by the seller on or after that date and allocated to the seller's main pool because of a previous election under this paragraph.

(3)

The buyer and seller may jointly elect for paragraph 17 to apply.

(4)

The election must be made by notice to an officer of Revenue and Customs within 2 years after the date on which the sale takes place.

(5)

All such assessments and adjustments of assessments are to be made as are necessary to give effect to the election.

(6)

Whether the buyer and seller are members of the same group is to be determined in accordance with section 170(3) to (6) of TCGA 1992.

(7)

The “relevant date” has the same meaning as in paragraph 14.

17

(1)

Where this paragraph applies, for the purposes of making allowances and charges under Part 2 of CAA 2001—

(a)

the integral feature is treated as having been sold by the seller to the buyer at a price which gives rise to neither a balancing allowance nor a balancing charge, and

(b)

the buyer's expenditure on the integral feature is treated as qualifying expenditure which is not special rate expenditure (and, if allocated to a pool, is to be allocated to the buyer's main pool).

(2)

Allowances and charges are to be made under Part 2 of CAA 2001 to or on the buyer as if everything done to or by the seller had been done to or by the buyer.

Interpretation

18

Expressions used in this Part of this Schedule and in Part 2 of CAA 2001 have the same meaning in this Part of this Schedule as in that Part of that Act.

SCHEDULE 27Abolition of allowances: consequential amendments and savings

Section 84

Part 1Consequential amendments

CAA 2001

1

CAA 2001 is amended as follows.

2

In section 1 (capital allowances), omit—

(a)

subsection (2)(b) and (c) (entitlement to industrial and agricultural buildings allowances), and

(b)

in subsection (3) “, industrial buildings or agricultural buildings,”.

3

In section 2(3) (general means of giving effect to capital allowances), omit—

(a)

“sections 352 to 355 (industrial buildings allowances);”, and

(b)

“sections 391 and 392 (agricultural buildings allowances);”.

4

In section 3 (claims for capital allowances), omit subsections (4)(b) and (5)(b).

5

(1)

Section 186 (fixture on which an industrial buildings allowance has been made) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1)(a) and (b), for “is” substitute “ was ”.

(3)

In subsection (3)—

(a)

at the beginning insert “ If the total consideration for the transfer by the past owner exceeds R, ”, and

(b)

in the definition of “R”—

(i)

after “expenditure” insert “ which would have been ”, and

(ii)

at the end insert “ , had the time immediately after the transfer fallen immediately before the repeal of Part 3 by section 84 of the Finance Act 2008. ”

(4)

After that subsection insert—

“(3A)

Where subsection (3) does not apply, the maximum allowable amount is the part of the consideration for the transfer by the past owner that is attributable to the fixture.”

(5)

In subsection (5), for “in Part 3” substitute “ for the purposes of Part 3 immediately before its repeal by section 84 of the Finance Act 2008. ”

6

In section 443(3) (disposal values and disposal events), omit “or 3” and “and industrial building allowances”.

7

In section 448(3) (additional VAT rebate generates disposal value), omit “or 3” and “and industrial buildings allowances”.

8

In section 537 (contribution allowances), omit “, 3, 4” in—

(a)

subsection (1),

(b)

subsection (2)(b)(ii), and

(c)

the heading.

9

Omit section 539 (contribution allowances: industrial buildings).

10

Omit section 540 (contribution allowances: agricultural buildings).

11

In section 542(1) (effect of transfers of trade on contribution allowances), for “Parts 3, 4 and 5” substitute “ Part 5 ”.

12

In section 546 (introduction to Chapter 2 of Part 12), omit paragraph (b).

13

In section 564 (application of procedure in section 563)—

(a)

in subsection (1), for “3” substitute “ 3A ”, and

(b)

omit subsection (3).

14

In section 567(1) (sales treated as for alternative amounts), omit “3,” and “4,”.

15

In section 569 (election to treat sale as being for an alternative amount), omit—

(a)

in subsections (3)(a) and (5)(a), “3 or”, and

(b)

in subsection (5), “319 (building not an industrial building, etc throughout) or”.

16

In section 570 (elections: supplementary), omit—

(a)

in subsection (1), “, 4”, and

(b)

in subsection (3), “3,”.

17

In section 570A(1) (avoidance affecting proceeds of balancing event), omit “3,” and “4,”.

18

In section 573(1) (transfers treated as sales), omit “3,” and “4,”.

19

(1)

Part 2 of Schedule 1 (index of defined expressions) is amended as follows.

(2)

Omit the entries relating to the following defined expressions—

  • “adjusted net cost (in Chapter 7 of Part 3)”,

  • “agricultural building”,

  • “balancing adjustment (in Part 3)”,

  • “balancing adjustment (in Part 4)”,

  • “balancing event (in Part 3)”,

  • “balancing event (in Part 4)”,

  • “building (in Part 3_includes structure)”,

  • “commercial building (in Part 3, in relation to qualifying enterprise zone expenditure)”,

  • “developer, carrying on a trade as (in Chapter 4 of Part 3)”,

  • “enterprise zone (in Part 3)”,

  • “expenditure on the construction of a building (in Part 3)”,

  • “expenditure on the construction of a building (in Part 4)”,

  • “highway concession (in Chapter 9 of Part 3)”,

  • “husbandry (in Part 4)”,

  • “industrial building”,

  • “lease and related expressions (in Part 3)”,

  • “lease and related expressions (in Part 4)”,

  • “proceeds from a balancing event (in Part 3)”,

  • “proceeds from a balancing event (in Part 4)”,

  • “qualifying enterprise zone expenditure (in Part 3)”,

  • “qualifying hotel (in Part 3)”,

  • “qualifying trade (in Part 3)”,

  • “related agricultural land (in Part 4)”,

  • “relevant interest (in Part 3)”,

  • “relevant interest (in Part 4)”,

  • “residue of qualifying expenditure (in Part 3)”,

  • “residue of qualifying expenditure (in Part 4)”, and

  • “writing-down period (in Part 4)”.

(3)

In the entry relating to “sale, transfers under Parts 3, 3A, 4, 4A and 10 treated as”, omit “3,” and “4,”.

20

In Schedule 3 (transitional provision and savings), omit—

(a)

paragraphs 56 to 83, and

(b)

paragraph 110.

ICTA

F10521

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

FA 2000

22

In Schedule 22 (tonnage tax), omit paragraphs 84 and 86.

FA 2001

23

(1)

FA 2001 is amended as follows.

(2)

In Schedule 19 (insertion of Part 4A of CAA 2001: consequential amendments), omit paragraph 4.

(3)

In Schedule 21 (capital allowances: minor amendments), omit paragraphs 5 and 6.

Proceeds of Crime Act 2002 (c. 29)

24

In Schedule 10 to the Proceeds of Crime Act 2002 (tax consequences of transfers under Part 5 of that Act), omit paragraphs 18 to 21.

Energy Act 2004 (c. 20)

25

In Schedule 4 to the Energy Act 2004 (tax exemption for NDA and NDA companies), omit paragraphs 5 and 6.

ITTOIA 2005

26

In Schedule 1 to ITTOIA 2005 (consequential amendments), omit paragraphs 552 to 558.

ITA 2007

27

(1)

ITA 2007 is amended as follows.

(2)

In section 24(1)(b) (reliefs deductible at Step 2), omit the entry relating to Part 3 of CAA 2001.

(3)

In section 25(3) (reliefs deductible at Steps 2 and 3: supplementary), omit the entry relating to section 355 of that Act.

(4)

In Schedule 1 (minor and consequential amendments), omit paragraph 406.

FA 2007

28

In FA 2007, omit section 36 (industrial and agricultural buildings allowances: balancing adjustments).

FA 2008

29

In FA 2008, omit—

(a)

section 85 (phasing out of allowances before abolition),

(b)

section 86 (qualifying enterprise zone expenditure: transitional provision), and

(c)

section 87 (which inserts section 313A of CAA 2001).

Commencement

30

(1)

Subject to sub-paragraph (2), this Part of this Schedule has effect in relation to chargeable periods (within the meaning of CAA 2001) beginning on or after—

(a)

for corporation tax purposes, 1 April 2011, and

(b)

for income tax purposes, 6 April 2011.

(2)

The amendments made by paragraph 5 have effect in relation to a transfer by the past owner (within the meaning of section 186 of CAA 2001) in such a chargeable period.

Part 2Savings

Enterprise zone expenditure

31

(1)

Sub-paragraph (2) applies if—

(a)

an initial allowance or a writing down allowance has been made under Part 3 of CAA 2001 in respect of qualifying enterprise zone expenditure, and

(b)

an event occurs in relation to the building on which the expenditure was incurred which, if that Part of that Act remained in force, would be a balancing event in respect of which a balancing charge would be made.

(2)

Unless the event occurs more than 7 years after the building was first used, a balancing charge is to be made in respect of the event as if that Part of that Act remained in force.

32

(1)

Sub-paragraph (2) applies if—

(a)

an initial allowance has been made under Part 3 of CAA 2001 in respect of qualifying enterprise zone expenditure, and

(b)

an event occurs in relation to the building on which the expenditure was incurred which, if section 307 of that Act (withdrawal of allowance if building not industrial building when first used etc) remained in force, would result in the allowance being withdrawn.

(2)

Unless the event occurs more than 7 years after the end of the chargeable period for which the allowance was made, the allowance is to be withdrawn as if that section remained in force.

Definition of structure

33

Despite the repeal of Part 3 of CAA 2001 by section 84, Chapter 2 of that Part continues to have effect for the purposes of paragraph (a) of item 7 in List B in section 22(1) of that Act (structures which are not plant and machinery).

Definition of qualifying trade

34

Despite the repeal of Part 3 of CAA 2001 by section 84, the following provisions continue to have effect for the purposes of section 484 of that Act (dredging allowances: definition of qualifying trade)—

(a)

section 274(1) (definition of qualifying trade), and

(b)

sections 276(3) and 341(4) of that Act (parts of trades and undertakings; meaning of “highway concession”) so far as they relate to the Tables in that section.

Commencement

35

This Part of this Schedule has effect in relation to chargeable periods (within the meaning of CAA 2001) beginning on or after—

(a)

for corporation tax purposes, 1 April 2011, and

(b)

for income tax purposes, 6 April 2011.

SCHEDULE 28Inheritance of tax-relieved pension savings

Section 91

Amendments of Part 4 of FA 2004

1

Part 4 of FA 2004 (pension schemes etc) is amended as follows.

2

(1)

Section 172 (assignment) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (3)—

(a)

in paragraph (a), for “an actual or” substitute “ a ”, and

(b)

in paragraph (b), for “the member” substitute “ a member of the pension scheme ”.

(3)

After subsection (6) insert—

“(6A)

References in this section to a benefit to which the member or a person has an entitlement under the pension scheme includes rights to payments under—

(a)

a scheme pension or dependants' scheme pension provided by the scheme administrator or as a result of the application of sums or assets held for the purposes of the pension scheme, or

(b)

a lifetime annuity or dependants' annuity purchased by the application of sums or assets held for the purposes of the pension scheme.”

3

(1)

Section 172A (surrender) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), at the end of paragraph (a) (but before the “or”) insert—

“(aa)

any rights to payments under a lifetime annuity or dependants' annuity purchased by the application of sums or assets held for the purposes of the pension scheme,”.

(3)

In subsection (3)(a), for “relating to” substitute “ in respect of ”.

(4)

In subsection (5), after paragraph (c) insert—

“(ca)

a surrender of (or agreement to surrender) rights to payments under an annuity in any case covered by regulations under paragraph 3(2B) or 17(3) of Schedule 28;”.

(5)

After subsection (9) insert—

“(9A)

References in this section to a benefit to which the member or a person has an entitlement under the pension scheme includes rights to payments under—

(a)

a scheme pension or dependants' scheme pension provided by the scheme administrator or as a result of the application of sums or assets held for the purposes of the pension scheme, or

(b)

a lifetime annuity or dependants' annuity purchased by the application of sums or assets held for the purposes of the pension scheme.”

4

(1)

Section 172B (increase in rights of connected person on death) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (2), at the end of paragraph (a) (but before the “or”) insert—

“(aa)

rights to payments under a scheme pension or dependants' scheme pension provided by the scheme administrator or as a result of the application of sums or assets held for the purposes of the pension scheme or under a lifetime annuity or dependants' annuity purchased by the application of sums or assets held for the purposes of the pension scheme,”.

(3)

In subsections (3)(a) and (7)(b), for “is actually or prospectively entitled” substitute “ has an actual or prospective entitlement ”.

(4)

In subsection (7)—

(a)

omit paragraph (a) (including the “and” at the end), and

(b)

in paragraph (b), for “them” substitute “ at least 20 members of the pension scheme ”.

(5)

After subsection (7) insert—

“(7A)

This section does not apply if—

(a)

the increase mentioned in subsection (1)(a) is an increase in the rate of a dependants' annuity or dependants' scheme pension or in rights representing a dependants' unsecured pension fund or dependants' alternatively secured pension fund, and

(b)

the increase is attributable to rights of the dead member to payments under a dependants' annuity or dependants' scheme pension or rights representing a dependants' unsecured pension fund.

(7B)

References in this section to a benefit to which the member or a person has an entitlement under the pension scheme includes rights to payments under—

(a)

a scheme pension or dependants' scheme pension provided by the scheme administrator or as a result of the application of sums or assets held for the purposes of the pension scheme, or

(b)

a lifetime annuity or dependants' annuity purchased by the application of sums or assets held for the purposes of the pension scheme.”

5

In paragraph 16(2) of Schedule 28 (dependants' scheme pension), after “pension” insert “ for the purposes of this Part ”.

Amendments of IHTA 1984

F1066

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F1067

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F1068

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F1069

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F10610

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F10611

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F10612

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F10613

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F10614

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Commencement

15

(1)

The amendments made by paragraph 2 have effect in relation to assignments or agreements to assign made on or after 10 October 2007.

(2)

The amendments made by paragraph 3 have effect in relation to surrenders and agreements to surrender made on or after that date.

(3)

The amendments made by paragraphs 4, 7(2), 8, 10 and 11 to 14 have effect in relation to deaths occurring on or after 6 April 2008.

SCHEDULE 29Further provision about pension schemes

Section 92

Authorised member payments

1

(1)

Part 4 of FA 2004 (pension schemes etc) is amended as follows.

(2)

In section 164 (authorised member payments)—

(a)

the existing provision becomes subsection (1), and

(b)

after that subsection insert—

“(2)

Regulations under subsection (1)(f) may—

(a)

provide that for the purposes of Part 9 of ITEPA 2003 all or part of a prescribed payment is to be treated as pension under a registered pension scheme, or as a lump sum of a prescribed description,

(b)

provide that all or part of a prescribed payment is subject to the short service refund lump sum charge or the special lump sum death benefits charge,

(c)

provide that a prescribed event in relation to a prescribed payment is to be treated for the purposes of the lifetime allowance charge as a benefit crystallisation event, and make provision as to the amount crystallised by that event,

(d)

include provision having effect in relation to times before the regulations are made if that provision does not increase any person's liability to tax,

and “prescribed” means prescribed in regulations under subsection (1)(f).”

(3)

In the table in section 216 (benefit crystallisation events and amounts crystallised), insert at the end—

“9. If regulations under section 164(1)(f) so provide, the happening of an event prescribed in the regulations in relation to a payment prescribed in the regulations

An amount determined in accordance with the regulations”.

Transfer of lifetime annuities and dependants' annuities

F1072

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Definition of investment-regulated pension schemes

3

(1)

In Schedule 29A to FA 2004 (taxable property etc), omit paragraph 2(1)(b) and the “or” before it.

(2)

The amendment made by sub-paragraph (1) is treated as having come into force on 6 April 2006.

Benefit crystallisation event 3

4

Part 4 of FA 2004 (pension schemes etc) is amended as follows.

5

In the table in section 216(1) (benefit crystallisation events), in benefit crystallisation event 3 (becoming entitled to pension at increased annual rate), in column 1, after “rate which” insert“—

(a)

exceeds the threshold annual rate, and

(b)

 ”.

6

Schedule 32 (benefit crystallisation events: supplementary) is amended as follows.

7

(1)

Paragraph 10 (benefit crystallisation event 3: excepted circumstances) is amended as follows.

(2)

The existing provision becomes sub-paragraph (1).

(3)

For paragraph (b) of that sub-paragraph substitute—

“(b)

that the individual is one of a class of at least 20 pensioner members of the pension scheme, and all the scheme pensions being paid under the pension scheme to pensioner members of that class are at that time increased at the same rate.”

(4)

After that sub-paragraph insert—

“(2)

A class may consist of all the pensioner members of the pension scheme.

(3)

Sub-paragraph (4) applies where—

(a)

the annual rate of the individual's pension is increased in excepted circumstances (“the excepted increase”),

(b)

before the end of the period of 12 months beginning with the date of the excepted increase, the annual rate of the individual's pension is increased in circumstances which would (apart from that sub-paragraph) be excepted circumstances (“the subsequent increase”), and

(c)

the class by virtue of which sub-paragraph (1)(b) is satisfied on the subsequent increase (“the new class”) is not the class by virtue of which it was satisfied on the excepted increase.

(4)

If the purpose, or one of the main purposes, of the individual's being included in the new class is to increase the annual rate of the individual's pension without benefit crystallisation event 3 occurring, the subsequent increase is not in excepted circumstances.”

8

After that paragraph insert—

“Benefit crystallisation event 3: threshold annual rate

10A

(1)

This paragraph applies for the purposes of benefit crystallisation event 3.

(2)

The threshold annual rate is the annual rate of the pension on the date of which the increase date is the first anniversary, increased by the greatest of—

(a)

the relevant percentage rate,

(b)

the relevant indexation percentage, and

(c)

£250,

and rounded up in accordance with sub-paragraph (8).

(3)

But if the person became entitled to the pension after the date of which the increase date is the first anniversary, the threshold annual rate is the annual rate of the pension on the date on which the person became entitled to the pension, increased and rounded up as mentioned in sub-paragraph (2).

(4)

The increase date is the date on which the individual becomes entitled to payment of the pension at the increased annual rate.

(5)

The relevant percentage rate is—

(a)

in a case where the pension is paid under a pension scheme, or an arrangement under a pension scheme, in relation to which the relevant valuation factor is a number greater than 20, the rate agreed by the Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs and the scheme administrator, and

(b)

otherwise, 5%.

(6)

The relevant indexation percentage means—

(a)

if the retail prices index for the reference month is higher than the retail prices index for the same calendar month in the previous year, the percentage increase in the retail prices index, and

(b)

if it is not, 0%.

(7)

The scheme administrator may select as the reference month any month in the period of 12 months ending with the month in which the increase date falls.

(8)

An amount is rounded up in accordance with this sub-paragraph if it is rounded up to the next greatest amount which—

(a)

where the pension is payable monthly, gives an amount of whole pounds when divided by 12, or

(b)

where the pension is payable weekly, gives an amount of whole pounds when divided by 52.

(9)

If the pension is under a public service pension scheme, any abatement of the pension is to be left out of account in determining for the purposes of this paragraph the annual rate of the pension on the date of which the increase date is the first anniversary (or, where sub-paragraph (3) applies, the date on which the person became entitled to the pension).

(10)

An individual who becomes entitled to payment of a scheme pension at an increased annual rate on 29 February in any year is to be treated for the purposes of this paragraph as having become so entitled on 28 February in that year.

(11)

The Treasury may by order substitute for the amount for the time being specified in sub-paragraph (2)(c) a different amount (including an amount to be calculated as a percentage of the standard lifetime allowance).”

9

(1)

Paragraph 11 (benefit crystallisation event 3: permitted margin) is amended as follows.

(2)

In sub-paragraph (6)—

(a)

for “month in which the individual becomes entitled to payment of the pension at the increased rate” substitute “ reference month ”, and

(b)

for “month in which the individual became entitled to the pension” substitute “ base month ”.

(3)

After sub-paragraph (7) insert—

“(7A)

The scheme administrator may select as the reference month any month in the period of 12 months ending with the month in which the individual becomes entitled to payment of the pension at the increased rate.

(7B)

The base month is the month which is the same number of months before the month in which the individual became entitled to the pension, as the reference month is before the month in which the individual becomes entitled to payment of the pension at the increased rate.”

10

In paragraph 13 (benefit crystallisation event 3: meaning of XP), for sub-paragraph (2) substitute—

“(2)

But if one or more benefit crystallisation events has or have previously occurred by reason of the individual having become entitled to payment of the pension at an increased rate, XP does not include the amount of XP on that event or the aggregate of the amounts of XP on those events.

(2A)

For the purposes of sub-paragraph (2), the amount of XP on a previous benefit crystallisation event is to be increased by whichever of calculation A and calculation B gives the greater amount.

(2B)

Calculation A involves increasing the amount of XP on the previous event at the relevant annual percentage rate for the whole of the period—

(a)

beginning with the month in which the previous event occurred, and

(b)

ending with the month in which the individual becomes entitled to payment of the pension at the increased rate.

(2C)

The relevant annual percentage rate has the same meaning as in paragraph 11(4).

(2D)

Calculation B involves increasing the amount of XP on the previous event by the relevant indexation percentage.

(2E)

The relevant indexation percentage is—

(a)

if the retail prices index for the reference month is higher than the retail prices index for the base month, the percentage increase in the retail prices index, and

(b)

if it is not, 0%.

(2F)

The scheme administrator may select as the reference month any month in the period of 12 months ending with the month in which the individual becomes entitled to payment of the pension at the increased rate.

(2G)

The base month is the month which is the same number of months before the month in which the previous event occurred, as the reference month is before the month in which the individual becomes entitled to payment of the pension at the increased rate.”

11

In consequence of the amendment made by paragraph 7(3), in Schedule 10 to FA 2005, omit paragraph 44.

12

(1)

The amendments made by paragraphs 9(2) and (3) come into force on 6 April 2008.

(2)

The amendment made by paragraph 10 has effect for the purposes of any benefit crystallisation event 3 occurring on or after 10 October 2007 (including the calculation, for the purposes of such an event, of the amount of XP on any benefit crystallisation event occurring before that date).

(3)

Subject to that, the amendments made by paragraphs 4 to 11 are treated as having come into force on 6 April 2006.

Transitional protection of lump sums

13

(1)

In paragraph 34 of Schedule 36 to FA 2004 (pension commencement lump sums), in the provisions of paragraph 2 of Schedule 29 substituted by sub-paragraph (2)—

(a)

in sub-paragraph (5), omit the words from “and relevant” to “2006” and

(b)

omit sub-paragraphs (6) and (7C).

(2)

The amendments made by sub-paragraph (1) are treated as having come into force on 6 April 2006.

Miscellaneous provision about registered pension schemes

14

(1)

FA 2004 is amended as follows.

(2)

In section 197 (spreading of relief)—

(a)

in subsection (2), for “section 196 (relief for employers in respect of contributions paid)” substitute “ the relieving provisions ”,

(b)

in subsection (4), for “section 196” substitute “ the relieving provisions ”, and

(c)

after subsection (9) insert—

“(9A)

In this section “the relieving provisions” means the provisions mentioned in subsections (2) to (4) of section 196 (relief for employers in respect of contributions paid), as they have effect under that section.”

(3)

In section 199(2) (deemed contributions), for paragraphs (a) to (c) substitute “ the relieving provisions (within the meaning of section 197) and sections 197 and 198 ”.

(4)

In consequence of the amendment made by sub-paragraph (3), in Schedule 1 to ITTOIA 2005 (consequential amendments), omit paragraph 648.

15

In section 215(4)(a) of FA 2004 (amount of lifetime allowance charge), after “first lifetime allowance” insert “ charge ”.

F10816

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Employer contributions under exempt approved schemes

17

(1)

This paragraph applies in relation to section 592 of ICTA (which before its repeal made provision about exempt approved pension schemes), where that section had effect as amended by the 2004 Order.

(2)

Section 592 is to be treated as having had effect as if after subsection (4) (as substituted by the 2004 Order) there had been inserted—

“(4A)

No sums other than contributions made by the employer to the pension scheme in respect of an individual—

(a)

are deductible in computing the amount of the profits of the employer for the purposes of Part 2 of ITTOIA 2005 or Case I or II of Schedule D,

(b)

are expenses of management for the purposes of section 75, or

(c)

are to be brought into account at Step 1 in section 76(7),

in connection with the cost of providing benefits under the pension scheme.”

(3)

But the words “Part 2 of ITTOIA 2005 or” in subsection (4A)(a) are to be treated as having had effect only in relation to times in relation to which (by virtue of paragraph 253(3) of Schedule 1 to ITTOIA 2005) they had effect in section 592(4)(a).

(4)

In this paragraph “the 2004 Order” means the Finance Act 2004, Sections 38 to 45 and Schedule 6 (Consequential Amendment of Enactments No. 2) Order 2004 (S.I. 2004/3269).

Inheritance tax treatment of non-UK pension schemes

18

(1)

IHTA 1984 is amended as follows.

(2)

In section 12(2) (dispositions conferring benefits under pension scheme), for “or” substitute “ , a qualifying non-UK pension scheme or a ”.

(3)

In section 58 (meaning of relevant property)—

(a)

in subsection (1)(d), for “or” substitute “ , a qualifying non-UK pension scheme or a ”, and

(b)

in subsection (2A)(b), after “member of” insert “ a qualifying non-UK pension scheme or ”.

(4)

In section 151(2), (4) and (5) (treatment of pension rights etc), for “or section” substitute “ , a qualifying non-UK pension scheme or a section ”.

(5)

In section 152 (cash options), for “or section” substitute “ , a qualifying non-UK pension scheme or a section ”.

(6)

After section 271 insert—

“271AQualifying non-UK pension scheme

(1)

For the purposes of this Act “qualifying non-UK pension scheme” means a pension scheme (other than a registered pension scheme) which—

(a)

is established in a country or territory outside the United Kingdom, and

(b)

satisfies any requirements prescribed for the purposes of this section by regulations made by the Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs.

(2)

Pension scheme” has the same meaning as in Part 4 of the Finance Act 2004 (see section 150 of that Act).

(3)

Regulations under this section may include provision having effect in relation to times before the regulations are made if it does not increase any person's liability to tax.

(4)

The power to make regulations under this section is exercisable by statutory instrument, which is subject to annulment in pursuance of a resolution of the House of Commons.”

(7)

In paragraph 56 of Schedule 36 to FA 2004 (pension schemes: transitional provision in relation to inheritance tax)—

(a)

in sub-paragraph (1)(a), after “registered pension scheme” insert “ , a qualifying non-UK pension scheme ”, and

(b)

after sub-paragraph (3) insert—

“(4)

In this paragraph “qualifying non-UK pension scheme” has the same meaning as in the Inheritance Tax Act 1984 (see section 271A of that Act).”

(8)

The amendments made by this paragraph are treated as having come into force on 6 April 2006.

Application of charges to non-UK pension schemes

19

(1)

Schedule 34 to FA 2004 (which applies certain charges to non-UK pension schemes) is amended as follows.

(2)

In paragraph 10(2), in the definition of EI, after “tax year,” insert “ excluding any such income which is exempt income (within the meaning of section 8 of ITEPA 2003), ”.

(3)

In paragraph 11(2), in the definition of EI, after “tax year,” insert “ excluding any such income which is exempt income (within the meaning of section 8 of ITEPA 2003), ”.

(4)

The amendment made by sub-paragraph (2) has effect for the tax year 2008-09 and subsequent tax years.

(5)

The amendment made by sub-paragraph (3) has effect—

(a)

for the tax year 2007-08 in accordance with sub-paragraph (6), and

(b)

for the tax year 2008-09 and subsequent tax years.

(6)

For the tax year 2007-08, for the purposes of paragraph 11(1)(b) of Schedule 34 to FA 2004 the appropriate fraction of the contributions mentioned in that paragraph is the aggregate of—

(a)

the appropriate fraction of so much of those contributions as are paid before 12 March 2008, calculated in accordance with paragraph 11(2) unamended by sub-paragraph (3), and

(b)

the appropriate fraction of so much of those contributions as are paid on and after that date, calculated in accordance with paragraph 11(2) as amended by sub-paragraph (3).

SCHEDULE 30Stamp duty land tax: notification etc: consequential provision

Section 94

FA 2003

1

Part 4 of FA 2003 (stamp duty land tax) is amended as follows.

2

(1)

Section 79 (registration of land transactions) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (3), omit the word “either”, paragraph (b) and the word “or” before it.

(3)

For subsection (5) substitute—

“(5)

Part 2 of Schedule 11 imposes a duty to keep and preserve records in respect of transactions that are not notifiable.”

(4)

In subsection (6)(a), omit “or self-certificates”.

3

In section 81B(1) (declaration by person authorised to act on behalf of individual), omit “or paragraph 2(1)(c) of Schedule 11” and “or self-certificate”.

4

(1)

Section 103 (joint purchasers) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (4), omit “or paragraph 2(1)(c) of Schedule 11” and “or self-certificate”.

(3)

In subsection (5), omit “or self-certificate”.

5

(1)

Section 122 (index of defined expressions) is amended as follows.

(2)

In the entry for “closure notice”, omit “Schedule 11, paragraph 16(1) (in relation to a self-certificate)”.

(3)

In the entry for “notice of enquiry”, omit “Schedule 11, paragraph 7(1) (in relation to a self-certificate)”.

(4)

In the entry for “notifiable (in relation to a land transaction)”, after “72A(7)” insert “ and paragraph 30 of Schedule 15 ”.

(5)

Omit the entry for “self-certificate”.

F1096

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

7

In paragraph 36 of Schedule 10 (notice of appeal), in sub-paragraph (5A)(d), for “one for which a self-certificate is due” substitute “ not notifiable ”.

8

Omit Part 1 of Schedule 11 (SDLT: self-certificates).

9

(1)

In Part 2 of that Schedule (duty to keep and preserve records), paragraph 4 is amended as follows.

(2)

Before sub-paragraph (1) insert—

“A1

This paragraph applies where a transaction is not notifiable, unless the transaction is a transaction treated as taking place under a provision listed in section 79(2)(a) to (d).”

(3)

In sub-paragraph (1)—

(a)

for “A purchaser who may be required to give a self-certificate” substitute “ The purchaser ”, and

(b)

in paragraph (a), for “to deliver a correct and complete certificate” substitute “ to demonstrate that the transaction is not notifiable ”.

(4)

In sub-paragraph (2), omit the words from “and” to the end.

10

Omit Part 3 of that Schedule (enquiry into self-certificate).

11

Accordingly, in the heading to Schedule 11, for “self-certificates” substitute “ record-keeping where transaction is not notifiable ”.

12

In Schedule 15 (SDLT: partnerships), in paragraph 8(2), omit “or paragraph 2(1)(c) of Schedule 11” and “or self-certificate”.

13

(1)

In Schedule 16 (SDLT: trusts and powers), paragraph 6 is amended as follows.

(2)

In sub-paragraphs (1) and (3), omit “or self-certificate”.

(3)

In sub-paragraph (2), omit “or paragraph 2(1)(c) of Schedule 11” and “or self-certificate”.

14

In Schedule 17A (SDLT: further provisions relating to leases), in paragraphs 3(2) and (5) and 4(1) and (4A), for “section 77” substitute “ sections 77 and 77A ”.

FA 2007

15

In consequence of the preceding provisions of this Schedule, omit section 81 of FA 2007.

SCHEDULE 31Stamp duty land tax: special provisions for property-investment partnerships

Section 97

Part 1Transfer of interest in partnership: “relevant partnership property”

Paragraph 14 of Schedule 15 to FA 2003

1

(1)

Paragraph 14 of Schedule 15 to FA 2003 (transfer of interest in property-investment partnership) is amended as follows.

(2)

After sub-paragraph (3) insert—

“(3A)

A transfer to which this paragraph applies is a Type A transfer if it takes the form of arrangements entered into under which—

(a)

the whole or part of a partner's interest as partner is acquired by another person (who may be an existing partner), and

(b)

consideration in money or money's worth is given by or on behalf of the person acquiring the interest.

(3B)

A transfer to which this paragraph applies is also a Type A transfer if it takes the form of arrangements entered into under which—

(a)

a person becomes a partner,

(b)

the interest of an existing partner in the partnership is reduced or an existing partner ceases to be a partner, and

(c)

there is a withdrawal of money or money's worth from the partnership by the existing partner mentioned in paragraph (b) (other than money or money's worth paid from the resources available to the partnership prior to the transfer).

(3C)

Any other transfer to which this paragraph applies is a Type B transfer.”

(3)

In sub-paragraph (5)—

(a)

for “a transfer” substitute “ a Type A transfer ”,

(b)

in paragraph (a), after “any” insert “ chargeable ”, and

(c)

at the end insert“, and

(c)

any chargeable interest that is not attributable economically to the interest in the partnership that is transferred.”

(4)

After that sub-paragraph insert—

“(5A)

The “relevant partnership property”, in relation to a Type B transfer of an interest in a partnership, is every chargeable interest held as partnership property immediately after the transfer, other than—

(a)

any chargeable interest that was transferred to the partnership in connection with the transfer,

(b)

a lease to which paragraph 15 (exclusion of market rent leases) applies,

(c)

any chargeable interest that is not attributable economically to the interest in the partnership that is transferred,

(d)

any chargeable interest that was transferred to the partnership on or before 22 July 2004,

(e)

any chargeable interest in respect of whose transfer to the partnership an election has been made under paragraph 12A, and

(f)

any other chargeable interest whose transfer to the partnership did not fall within paragraph 10(1)(a), (b) or (c).”

Consequential provision

2

In paragraph 15(1) of that Schedule (exclusion of market rent leases), after “14(5)” insert “ or (5A) ”.

3

In paragraph 16(2) of that Schedule (application of provisions about exchanges etc), after “14(5)” insert “ or (5A) (as appropriate) ”.

F1104

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Part 2Elections in respect of interest transferred to partnership

Election when interest transferred to partnership

5

In paragraph 10 of Schedule 15 to FA 2003 (transfer of chargeable interest to partnership: general) insert at the end—

“(8)

This paragraph has effect subject to any election under paragraph 12A.”

6

After paragraph 12 insert—

“Election by property-investment partnership to disapply paragraph 10

12A

(1)

Paragraph 10 does not apply to a transfer of a chargeable interest to a property-investment partnership if the purchaser in relation to the transaction elects for that paragraph not to apply.

(2)

Where an election under this paragraph is made in respect of a transaction—

(a)

paragraph 18 (if relevant) is also disapplied,

(b)

the chargeable consideration for the transaction shall be taken to be the market value of the chargeable interest transferred, and

(c)

the transaction falls within Part 2 of this Schedule.

(3)

An election under this paragraph must be included in the land transaction return made in respect of the transaction or in an amendment of that return.

(4)

Such an election is irrevocable and a land transaction return may not be amended so as to withdraw the election.

(5)

Where an election under this paragraph in respect of a transaction (the “main transaction”) is made in an amendment of a land transaction return—

(a)

the election has effect as if it had been made on the date on which the land transaction return was made, and

(b)

any land transaction return in respect of an affected transaction may be amended (within the period allowed for amendment of that return) to take account of that election.

(6)

In sub-paragraph (5) “affected transaction”, in relation to the main transaction, means a transaction—

(a)

to which paragraph 14 applied, and

(b)

with an effective date on or after the effective date of the main transaction.

(7)

In this paragraph “property-investment partnership” has the meaning given in paragraph 14(8).”

7

In paragraph 18 of that Schedule (transfer of chargeable interest from a partnership) insert at the end—

“(8)

This paragraph has effect subject to any election under paragraph 12A.”

Consequential provision

8

In paragraph 17A(1) of that Schedule (withdrawal of money etc from partnership after transfer of chargeable interest), after paragraph (c) insert—

“(d)

at the time of the qualifying event, an election has not been made in respect of the land transfer under paragraph 12A.”

F1119

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Part 3Transitional provision

10

Omit section 72(14) of FA 2007 (saving relating to changes to Part 3 of Schedule 15 to FA 2003).

11

(1)

This paragraph applies in the case of a transfer of a chargeable interest to a partnership falling within paragraph 10(1)(a), (b) or (c) of Schedule 15 to FA 2003 where the effective date of the transaction is before the day on which this Act is passed.

(2)

The purchaser in relation to the transaction may at any time before the end of the period of 12 months beginning with that day amend the land transaction return in respect of that transaction so as to make an election under paragraph 12A of Schedule 15 to FA 2003 (inserted by this Schedule).

(3)

An election made in reliance on sub-paragraph (2) has effect as if it had been made on the date on which the land transaction return was made, even though paragraph 12A of Schedule 15 to FA 2003 was not in force at that time.

(4)

Where an election is made in reliance on sub-paragraph (2), the power under paragraph 12A(5)(b) of Schedule 15 to FA 2003 to amend a land transaction return in respect of an affected transaction to take account of that election may be exercised at any time before the end of the period of 12 months beginning with the day on which this Act is passed.

SCHEDULE 32Stamp duty: abolition of fixed duty on certain instruments

Section 99

Part 1Abolition of fixed duty

FA 1985

1

Part 3 of FA 1985 (stamp duty) is amended as follows.

2

In section 83 (transfers in connection with divorce, dissolution of civil partnership, etc), omit subsection (2) (fixed duty).

3

In section 84 (death: varying dispositions, and appropriations)—

(a)

omit subsections (8) and (9) (fixed duty and adjudication), and

(b)

in subsection (11) (commencement), omit the words from “and,” to “subsection (8) above”.

FA 1986

4

Part 3 of FA 1986 (stamp duty) is amended as follows.

5

In section 66 (company's purchase of own shares), omit subsection (2A) (fixed duty).

6

In section 67(9) (transfer of securities between depositary receipt systems), for “the stamp duty chargeable on the instrument is £5” substitute “ stamp duty is not chargeable on the instrument ”.

7

In section 70(9) (transfer of securities between clearance systems), for “the stamp duty chargeable on the instrument is £5” substitute “ stamp duty is not chargeable on the instrument ”.

8

In section 72A(1) (transfer of securities between depositary receipt system and clearance system), for paragraph (b) substitute—

“(b)

stamp duty is not chargeable on the instrument.”

FA 1999

9

FA 1999 is amended as follows.

10

(1)

Schedule 13 (instruments chargeable to stamp duty and rates of duty) is amended as follows.

(2)

In paragraph 1(5) (treasury shares), for the words from “any instrument” to the end substitute “ sub-paragraph (1) does not apply to any instrument to which sub-paragraph (6) applies. ”

(3)

In Part 3 (other instruments chargeable to stamp duty and rates of duty) omit—

(a)

paragraph 16 (fixed duty on transfer otherwise than on sale) and the heading before it,

(b)

paragraph 17 (fixed duty on declaration of use or trust) and the heading before it,

(c)

paragraph 18(2) (fixed duty on disposition of certain property in Scotland),

(d)

paragraph 19(1) (fixed duty on duplicate or counterpart),

(e)

paragraph 21(3) (fixed duty on partition or division),

(f)

paragraph 22 (fixed duty on release or renunciation) and the heading before it, and

(g)

paragraph 23 (fixed duty on surrender) and the heading before it.

11

(1)

Schedule 15 (stamp duty: bearer instruments) is amended as follows.

(2)

Omit paragraph 6 (fixed duty on instrument given in substitution for a like instrument stamped ad valorem).

(3)

At the beginning of Part 2 (exemptions) insert—

“Substitute instruments

12A

(1)

Stamp duty is not chargeable on a substitute instrument.

(2)

A substitute instrument is a bearer instrument given in substitution for a like instrument stamped ad valorem (whether under this Schedule or otherwise) (“the original instrument”).

(3)

The substitute instrument shall not be treated as duly stamped unless it appears by some stamp impressed on it that the full and proper duty has been paid on the original instrument.”

(4)

In paragraph 20 (variation of original terms or conditions), for paragraph (b) substitute—

“(b)

has been stamped in accordance with paragraph 12A, or”.

(5)

In paragraph 26 (instruments treated as duly stamped), omit paragraph (b) (and the “or” before it).

Part 2Consequential provisions and saving

FA 1982

12

In section 129(1) of FA 1982 (exemption from duty on grants, transfers to charities etc), omit “, or paragraph 16,”.

FA 1986

13

Part 3 of FA 1986 (stamp duty) is amended as follows.

14

(1)

Section 67 (stamp duty on certain transfers to depositary receipt systems) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), after “instrument” insert “ (other than a bearer instrument) ”.

(3)

In subsection (3), for the words from the beginning to “then,” substitute“In any other case—

(a)

stamp duty is chargeable on the instrument under this subsection, and

(b)

 ”.

(4)

After subsection (9) insert—

“(9A)

In this section “bearer instrument” has the meaning given in paragraph 3 of Schedule 15 to the Finance Act 1999.”

15

(1)

Section 70 (stamp duty on certain transfers to a clearance system) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), after “instrument” insert “ (other than a bearer instrument) ”.

(3)

In subsection (3), for the words from the beginning to “then,” substitute“In any other case—

(a)

stamp duty is chargeable on the instrument under this subsection, and

(b)

 ”.

(4)

After subsection (9) insert—

“(9A)

In this section “bearer instrument” has the meaning given in paragraph 3 of Schedule 15 to the Finance Act 1999.”

FA 1987

16

Part 3 of FA 1987 (stamp duty and stamp duty reserve tax) is amended as follows.

17

In section 50(1) (warrants to purchase Government stock, etc), omit “, or paragraph 16”.

18

In section 55(1) (Crown exemption), omit “, or paragraph 16”.

FA 1990

19

In section 108(1) of FA 1990 (abolition of stamp duty on transfer of securities), insert at the end “ or section 67(3) or 70(3) of the Finance Act 1986 (stamp duty on certain transfers to depositary receipt systems and clearance systems) ”.

FA 1999

20

In Schedule 14 to FA 1999, omit paragraphs 10(b), 11(b), 12(3) and 13(3).

FA 2003

21

In Schedule 40 to FA 2003, omit paragraph 2(b).

Saving for certain land transactions

22

(1)

The following provisions of this Schedule do not have effect in relation to an instrument effecting a land transaction or a duplicate or counterpart of such an instrument—

(a)

paragraphs 1 to 3,

(b)

paragraph 10,

(c)

paragraph 12,

(d)

paragraph 18, and

(e)

the repeal of paragraphs 10(b) and 11(b) of Schedule 14 to FA 1999.

(2)

In sub-paragraph (1) “land transaction” has the same meaning as in Part 4 of FA 2003, except that it does not include a transfer of an interest in a property-investment partnership (within the meaning of Schedule 15 of that Act).

Repeals on abolition day

23

If a day is appointed under section 111 of FA 1990 (abolition day), paragraphs 14 and 15 of this Schedule cease to have effect in accordance with section 108 of that Act.

SCHEDULE 33PRT: elections for oil fields to become non-taxable

Section 107

Part 1New Schedule 20A to FA 1993

1

This is Schedule 20A to be inserted before Schedule 21 to FA 1993—

“SCHEDULE 20APRT: elections for oil fields to become non-taxable

Election by responsible person

1

(1)

The responsible person for a taxable field may make an election that the field is to be non-taxable.

(2)

An election is irrevocable.

(3)

The responsible person may not make an election unless each person who is a participator at the time the election is made agrees to the election being made.

(4)

If the responsible person makes an election, the Commissioners may assume that each participator agrees to the election being made (unless it appears to the Commissioners that a participator does not agree).

Decision by Commissioners

2

(1)

If an election is made, the Commissioners must decide whether or not the field is no longer taxable.

(2)

For the purposes of this paragraph, the field is no longer taxable if it appears to the Commissioners that one or other of the following conditions is met in relation to each future chargeable period.

(3)

Condition A is that no assessable profit will accrue to any participator in the field in that period.

(4)

Condition B is that the assessable profit accruing to each participator in the field in that period will be equal to, or smaller than, the cash equivalent of that participator's share of the oil allowance for the field in that period.

(5)

The responsible person must give the Commissioners such information as the Commissioners may reasonably require in connection with their making a decision under sub-paragraph (1).

(6)

The Commissioners may make such assumptions as they think appropriate for the purposes of making a decision under this paragraph (including assumptions about what, if any, participators there will be in the field in future chargeable periods).

(7)

In this paragraph—

assessable profit” means assessable profit before any reduction under section 7 of OTA 1975 (relief for allowable losses);

future chargeable period”, in relation to a decision by the Commissioners under this paragraph, means a chargeable period that falls at any time after the chargeable period in which the Commissioners make that decision.

3

(1)

The Commissioners must give the responsible person notice of their decision under paragraph 2(1).

(2)

Within one month of being given notice by the Commissioners of their decision, the responsible person must give copies of the notice to each person who is a participator, or a former participator, at the time the Commissioners' notice is given.

(3)

But the responsible person is not required to give notice to any person to whom it would be impracticable to give notice.

When election has effect

4

(1)

An election does not have effect unless the Commissioners decide under paragraph 2(1) that the field is no longer taxable.

(2)

In such a case, the election has effect from the start of the first chargeable period to begin after the Commissioners give notice under paragraph 3.

(3)

The election then continues to have effect indefinitely (unless cancelled in accordance with paragraph 6).

No unrelievable field losses from field

5

For as long as the election has effect, no allowable loss that accrues from the oil field is an allowable unrelievable field loss for the purposes of petroleum revenue tax.

Cancellation of election by Commissioners

6

(1)

The Commissioners may cancel an election if, within 3 years of their giving notice under paragraph 3, it appears to them that—

(a)

information that the responsible person gave the Commissioners in connection with the election was inaccurate or incomplete at the time it was given, and

(b)

if the information had not been inaccurate or incomplete, the Commissioners would not have made the decision that they made under paragraph 2.

(2)

For the purposes of sub-paragraph (1) it does not matter whether or not the Commissioners required the information to be given.

7

(1)

If the Commissioners cancel an election, they must give notice of the cancellation—

(a)

to the person who made the election, or

(b)

if it is impracticable to give notice to that person, to a person who is a participator at the time the election is cancelled, or

(c)

if it is impracticable to give notice to any such person, to a person who is a former participator at the time the election is cancelled;

but the Commissioners are not required to give notice to a person falling within paragraph (c) if it would be impracticable to give notice to any such person.

(2)

Within one month of being given notice by the Commissioners under sub-paragraph (1), the person must give copies of the notice to each person who is a participator, or a former participator, at the time the Commissioners' notice is given.

(3)

But that person is not required to give notice to any person to whom it would be impracticable to give notice.

Effect of cancellation

8

(1)

If the Commissioners cancel an election under paragraph 6, the election is to be treated as though it had never had effect.

(2)

But that does not make a person liable for anything that the person did, or did not do, in consequence of the election having effect before its cancellation.

(3)

If the Commissioners cancel an election, the enactments relating to petroleum revenue tax apply to the oil field subject to sub-paragraphs (4) to (7).

(4)

The Commissioners may specify the periods within which PRT returns for the relevant chargeable periods must be delivered.

(5)

If the Commissioners specify the period within which a PRT return must be delivered, the provisions of OTA 1975 set out in sub-paragraph (6) apply to the specified period as if it were a period for the delivery of a PRT return that has been extended under paragraph 2 or 5 of Schedule 2 to OTA 1975.

(6)

The provisions of OTA 1975 referred to in sub-paragraph (5) are—

(a)

paragraph 12A of Schedule 2, and

(b)

paragraph 2(7) and (8) of Schedule 5 (including those provisions as applied to Schedule 6 to OTA 1975 by paragraph 2 of Schedule 6).

(7)

For the purposes of paragraph 4 of Schedule 2 to OTA 1975, the “initial period” is the period of thirty days beginning with the date on which the Commissioners give notice in accordance with paragraph 6 of this Schedule.

(8)

The Commissioners may by regulations make transitional provision (including provision modifying enactments) applicable to cases where elections are made and subsequently cancelled under this Schedule.

(9)

Regulations under sub-paragraph (8)—

(a)

are to be made by statutory instrument, and

(b)

are subject to annulment in pursuance of a resolution of the House of Commons.

(10)

In this paragraph—

PRT return” means a return under paragraph 2 or 5 of Schedule 2 to OTA 1975;

relevant chargeable periods”, in relation to a cancelled election, means the series of consecutive chargeable periods that—

(a)

begins with the chargeable period from the start of which the election had effect, and

(b)

ends with the chargeable period during which the election is cancelled.

Appeals

9

(1)

The responsible person may appeal against a decision of the Commissioners under paragraph 2(1).

(2)

Any such appeal must be made within 3 months of the Commissioners giving notice under paragraph 3 of their decision to the responsible person.

10

(1)

A person who is a participator, or a former participator, at the time the Commissioners cancel an election under paragraph 6 may appeal against the cancellation.

(2)

Any such appeal must be made within 3 months of the Commissioners giving notice under paragraph 7 of the cancellation (whether or not the notice was given to the person making the appeal).

11

(1)

Any appeal under paragraph 9 or 10 must be made to the Commissioners—

(a)

by notice in writing, or

(b)

in any other form authorised by direction of the Commissioners.

(2)

Any appeal under paragraph 9 or 10 is to be determined by the Special Commissioners.

Interpretation

12

(1)

In this Schedule—

Commissioners” means the Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs (except in the expression “Special Commissioners”);

election” means an election in writing, or in any other form authorised by direction of the Commissioners, made to the Commissioners;

former participator”, in relation to a particular time, means a person who—

(a)

is not a participator in the chargeable period which includes that time, but

(b)

was a participator in any earlier chargeable period;

OTA 1975” means the Oil Taxation Act 1975;

participator”, in relation to a particular time, means a person who is a participator in the chargeable period which includes that time.

(2)

Expressions used in this Schedule and in Part 1 of OTA 1975 have the same meaning in this Schedule as in that Part of OTA 1975.”

Part 2Other amendments

OTA 1975

2

In section 6 of OTA 1975 (allowances of unrelievable loss from abandoned field), in subsection (1A), after “this Act” insert “ and paragraph 5 of Schedule 20A to the Finance Act 1993 ”.

FA 1980

3

In Schedule 17 to FA 1980 (transfers of interests in oil fields), in paragraph 15 (terminal losses), after sub-paragraph (9) insert—

“(9A)

This paragraph is subject to paragraph 5 of Schedule 20A to the Finance Act 1993.”

Oil Taxation Act 1983

4

In section 9 of the Oil Taxation Act 1983 (c. 56) (tariff receipts allowance), in subsection (5)(a), for the words from “other than” to the end substitute“other than—

(i)

the principal field, or

(ii)

an oil field that is a non-taxable field by virtue of section 185(1) or (1A) of the Finance Act 1993.”

SCHEDULE 34Oil decommissioning expenditure: consequential amendments

Section 109

ICTA

1

In section 393A of ICTA (losses: set off against profits), in subsections (2C)(b) and (11)(a), for “abandonment expenditure” substitute “ general decommissioning expenditure ”.

CAA 2001

2

CAA 2001 is amended as follows.

3

In section 26 (demolition costs), in subsection (5), for “abandonment expenditure” substitute “ general decommissioning expenditure ”.

4

In section 57 (available qualifying expenditure), in the entry in subsection (2) relating to section 165(3) of CAA 2001, for “abandonment expenditure” substitute “ general decommissioning expenditure ”.

5

(1)

Section 164 (abandonment expenditure incurred before cessation of ring fence trade) is amended as follows.

(2)

In the heading, for “abandonment expenditure” substitute general decommissioning expenditure.

(3)

In subsections (1), (2)(a), (3)(a), (4)(a) and (5), for “abandonment expenditure” substitute “ general decommissioning expenditure ”.

6

(1)

Section 165 (abandonment expenditure within 3 years of ceasing ring fence trade) is amended as follows.

(2)

In the heading, for “abandonment expenditure” substitute “ general decommissioning expenditure ”.

(3)

In subsection (1)(b) and (c), for “abandonment expenditure” substitute “ general decommissioning expenditure ”.

(4)

In subsection (3)—

(a)

in paragraph (a), for “relevant abandonment cost” substitute “ relevant decommissioning cost ”, and

(b)

in paragraph (b), for “abandonment expenditure” substitute “ general decommissioning expenditure ”.

(5)

In subsection (4), in the definition of “the relevant abandonment cost”—

(a)

for “relevant abandonment cost” substitute “ relevant decommissioning cost ”, and

(b)

for “abandonment expenditure”, in each place, substitute “ general decommissioning expenditure ”.

SCHEDULE 35Set off against oil profits: minor and consequential amendments

Section 111

TMA 1970

F1121

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

ICTA

2

ICTA is amended as follows.

F1133

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F1134

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F1135

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F1136

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

7

In section 826 (interest on tax overpaid), in subsection (7A)(b), after “set off” insert “ (whether under section 393A(1) or 393B(3)) ”.

8

(1)

Schedule 19B (petroleum extraction activities: exploration expenditure supplement) is amended as follows.

(2)

In paragraph 1 (provision about the Schedule), in sub-paragraph (7)(b), after “section 393A” insert “ or 393B ”.

(3)

In paragraph 17 (ring fence losses and qualifying E&A losses), in sub-paragraph (2)—

(a)

the words after “assumed” become sub-paragraph (a), and

(b)

at the end of that sub-paragraph insert“and—

(b)

that (where appropriate) section 393B applies in relation to every such claim.”

F1149

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

FA 2000

F11510

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

SCHEDULE 36Information and inspection powers

Section 113

Part 1Powers to obtain information and documents

Power to obtain information and documents from taxpayer

1

(1)

An officer of Revenue and Customs may by notice in writing require a person (“the taxpayer”)—

(a)

to provide information, or

(b)

to produce a document,

if the information or document is reasonably required by the officer for the purpose of checking the taxpayer's tax position.

(2)

In this Schedule, “taxpayer notice” means a notice under this paragraph.

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I1Sch. 36 para. 1 in force at 1.4.2009 by S.I. 2009/404, art. 2

Power to obtain information and documents from third party

2

(1)

An officer of Revenue and Customs may by notice in writing require a person—

(a)

to provide information, or

(b)

to produce a document,

if the information or document is reasonably required by the officer for the purpose of checking the tax position of another person whose identity is known to the officer (“the taxpayer”).

(2)

A third party notice must name the taxpayer to whom it relates, unless the F116tribunal has approved the giving of the notice and disapplied this requirement under paragraph 3.

(3)

In this Schedule, “third party notice” means a notice under this paragraph.

Approval etc of taxpayer notices and third party notices

3

(1)

An officer of Revenue and Customs may not give a third party notice without—

(a)

the agreement of the taxpayer, or

(b)

the approval of the F117tribunal .

(2)

An officer of Revenue and Customs may ask for the approval of the F118tribunal to the giving of any taxpayer notice or third party notice (and for the effect of obtaining such approval see paragraphs 29, 30 and 53 (appeals against notices and offence)).

F119(2A)

An application for approval under this paragraph may be made without notice (except as required under sub-paragraph (3)).

(3)

The F120tribunal may not approve the giving of a taxpayer notice or third party notice unless—

(a)

an application for approval is made by, or with the agreement of, an authorised officer of Revenue and Customs,

(b)

the F121tribunal is satisfied that, in the circumstances, the officer giving the notice is justified in doing so,

(c)

the person to whom the notice is F122to be addressed has been told that the information or documents referred to in the notice are required and given a reasonable opportunity to make representations to an officer of Revenue and Customs,

(d)

the F120tribunal has been given a summary of any representations made by that person, and

(e)

in the case of a third party notice, the taxpayer has been given a summary of the reasons why an officer of Revenue and Customs requires the information and documents.

(4)

Paragraphs (c) to (e) of sub-paragraph (3) do not apply to the extent that the F123tribunal is satisfied that taking the action specified in those paragraphs might prejudice the assessment or collection of tax.

(5)

Where the F124tribunal approves the giving of a third party notice under this paragraph, it may also disapply the requirement to name the taxpayer in the notice if it is satisfied that the officer has reasonable grounds for believing that naming the taxpayer might seriously prejudice the assessment or collection of tax.

Copying third party notice to taxpayer

4

(1)

An officer of Revenue and Customs who gives a third party notice must give a copy of the notice to the taxpayer to whom it relates, unless the F125tribunal has disapplied this requirement.

(2)

The F126tribunal may not disapply that requirement unless—

(a)

an application for approval is made by, or with the agreement of, an authorised officer of Revenue and Customs, and

(b)

the F127tribunal is satisfied that the officer has reasonable grounds for believing that giving a copy of the notice to the taxpayer might prejudice the assessment or collection of tax.

Power to obtain information and documents about persons whose identity is not known

5

(1)

An authorised officer of Revenue and Customs may by notice in writing require a person—

(a)

to provide information, or

(b)

to produce a document,

if the condition in sub-paragraph (2) is met.

(2)

That condition is that the information or document is reasonably required by the officer for the purpose of checking the F128... tax position of—

(a)

a person whose identity is not known to the officer, or

(b)

a class of persons whose individual identities are not known to the officer.

(3)

An officer of Revenue and Customs may not give a notice under this paragraph without the approval of the F129tribunal .

F130(3A)

An application for approval under this paragraph may be made without notice.

(4)

The F131tribunal may not F132approve the giving of a notice under this paragraph unless it is satisfied that—

(a)

the notice would meet the condition in sub-paragraph (2),

(b)

there are reasonable grounds for believing that the person or any of the class of persons to whom the notice relates may have failed or may fail to comply with any provision of F133the law (including the law of a territory outside the United Kingdom) relating to tax,

(c)

any such failure is likely to have led or to lead to serious prejudice to the assessment or collection of F134... tax, and

(d)

the information or document to which the notice relates is not readily available from another source.

F135(5)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F136Power to obtain information about persons whose identity can be ascertained

5A

(1)

An authorised officer of Revenue and Customs may by notice in writing require a person to provide relevant information about another person (“the taxpayer”) if conditions A to D are met.

(2)

Condition A is that the information is reasonably required by the officer for the purpose of checking the tax position of the taxpayer.

(3)

Condition B is that—

(a)

the taxpayer's identity is not known to the officer, but

(b)

the officer holds information from which the taxpayer's identity can be ascertained.

(4)

Condition C is that the officer has reason to believe that—

(a)

the person will be able to ascertain the taxpayer's identity from the information held by the officer, and

(b)

the person obtained relevant information about the taxpayer in the course of carrying on a business.

(5)

Condition D is that the taxpayer's identity cannot readily be ascertained by other means from the information held by the officer.

(6)

Relevant information” means all or any of the following—

(a)

name,

(b)

last known address, and

(c)

date of birth (in the case of an individual).

(7)

This paragraph applies for the purpose of checking the tax position of a class of persons as for the purpose of checking the tax position of a single person (and references to “the taxpayer” are to be read accordingly).

Notices

6

(1)

In this Schedule, “information notice” means a notice under paragraph 1, 2 F137, 5 or 5A.

(2)

An information notice may specify or describe the information or documents to be provided or produced.

(3)

If an information notice is given with the approval of the F138tribunal , it must state that it is given with that approval.

F139(4)

A decision of the tribunal under paragraph 3, 4 or 5 is final (despite the provisions of sections 11 and 13 of the Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007).

Complying with notices

7

(1)

Where a person is required by an information notice to provide information or produce a document, the person must do so—

(a)

within such period, and

(b)

at such time, by such means and in such form (if any),

as is reasonably specified or described in the notice.

(2)

Where an information notice requires a person to produce a document, it must be produced for inspection—

(a)

at a place agreed to by that person and an officer of Revenue and Customs, or

(b)

at such place as an officer of Revenue and Customs may reasonably specify.

(3)

An officer of Revenue and Customs must not specify a place that is used solely as a dwelling.

(4)

The production of a document in compliance with an information notice is not to be regarded as breaking any lien claimed on the document.

Producing copies of documents

8

(1)

Where an information notice requires a person to produce a document, the person may comply with the notice by producing a copy of the document, subject to any conditions or exceptions set out in regulations made by the Commissioners.

(2)

Sub-paragraph (1) does not apply where—

(a)

the notice requires the person to produce the original document, or

(b)

an officer of Revenue and Customs subsequently makes a request in writing to the person for the original document.

(3)

Where an officer of Revenue and Customs requests a document under sub-paragraph (2)(b), the person to whom the request is made must produce the document—

(a)

within such period, and

(b)

at such time and by such means (if any),

as is reasonably requested by the officer.

Restrictions and special cases

9

This Part of this Schedule has effect subject to Parts 4 and 6 of this Schedule.

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I9Sch. 36 para. 9 in force at 1.4.2009 by S.I. 2009/404, art. 2

Part 2Powers to inspect F140PREMISES AND OTHER PROPERTY

Power to inspect business premises etc

10

(1)

An officer of Revenue and Customs may enter a person's business premises and inspect—

(a)

the premises,

(b)

business assets that are on the premises, and

(c)

business documents that are on the premises,

if the inspection is reasonably required for the purpose of checking that person's tax position.

(2)

The powers under this paragraph do not include power to enter or inspect any part of the premises that is used solely as a dwelling.

(3)

In this Schedule—

business assets” means assets that an officer of Revenue and Customs has reason to believe are owned, leased or used in connection with the carrying on of a business by any person F141(but see sub-paragraph (4)),

business documents” means documents (or copies of documents)—

(a)

that relate to the carrying on of a business by any person, and

(b)

that form part of any person's statutory records, and

business premises”, in relation to a person, means premises (or any part of premises) that an officer of Revenue and Customs has reason to believe are (or is) used in connection with the carrying on of a business by or on behalf of the person.

F142(4)

For the purposes of this Schedule, “business assets” does not include documents, other than—

(a)

documents that are trading stock for the purposes of Chapter 11A of Part 2 of ITTOIA 2005 (see section 172A of that Act), and

(b)

documents that are plant for the purposes of Part 2 of CAA 2001.

F143(5)

In sub-paragraph (1), the reference to a person's tax position does not include a reference to a person's position as regards soft drinks industry levy.

F144Power to inspect business premises etc of involved third parties

10A

(1)

An officer of Revenue and Customs may enter business premises of an involved third party (see paragraph 61A) and inspect—

(a)

the premises,

(b)

business assets that are on the premises, and

(c)

relevant documents that are on the premises,

if the inspection is reasonably required by the officer for the purpose of checking the position of any person or class of persons as regards a relevant tax.

(2)

The powers under this paragraph may be exercised whether or not the identity of that person is, or the individual identities of those persons are, known to the officer.

(3)

The powers under this paragraph do not include power to enter or inspect any part of the premises that is used solely as a dwelling.

(4)

In relation to an involved third party, “relevant documents” and “relevant tax” are defined in paragraph 61A.

Power to inspect premises used in connection with taxable supplies etc

11

(1)

This paragraph applies where an officer of Revenue and Customs has reason to believe that—

(a)

premises are used in connection with the supply of goods under taxable supplies and goods to be so supplied F145or documents relating to such goods are on those premises,

(b)

premises are used in connection with the acquisition of goods from other member States under taxable acquisitions and goods to be so acquired F146or documents relating to such goods are on those premises, or

(c)

premises are used as F147or in connection with a fiscal warehouse.

(2)

An officer of Revenue and Customs may enter the premises and inspect—

(a)

the premises,

(b)

any goods that are on the premises, and

(c)

any documents on the premises that appear to the officer to relate to F148the supply of goods under taxable supplies, the acquisition of goods from other member States under taxable acquisitions or fiscal warehousing.

(3)

The powers under this paragraph do not include power to enter or inspect any part of the premises that is used solely as a dwelling.

(4)

Terms used both in F149this paragraph and in VATA 1994 have the same meaning F150here as they have in that Act.

Carrying out inspections F151under paragraph 10, 10A or 11

12

(1)

An inspection under F152paragraph 10, 10A or 11 may be carried out only—

(a)

at a time agreed to by the occupier of the premises, or

(b)

if sub-paragraph (2) is satisfied, at any reasonable time.

(2)

This sub-paragraph is satisfied if—

(a)

the occupier of the premises has been given at least 7 days' notice of the time of the inspection (whether in writing or otherwise), or

(b)

the inspection is carried out by, or with the agreement of, an authorised officer of Revenue and Customs.

(3)

An officer of Revenue and Customs seeking to carry out an inspection under sub-paragraph (2)(b) must provide a notice in writing as follows—

(a)

if the occupier of the premises is present at the time the inspection is to begin, the notice must be provided to the occupier,

(b)

if the occupier of the premises is not present but a person who appears to the officer to be in charge of the premises is present, the notice must be provided to that person, and

(c)

in any other case, the notice must be left in a prominent place on the premises.

(4)

The notice referred to in sub-paragraph (3) must state the possible consequences of obstructing the officer in the exercise of the power.

(5)

If a notice referred to in sub-paragraph (3) is given F153in respect of an inspection approved by the F154tribunal (see paragraph 13), it must state that F155the inspection has been so approved.

F156Powers to inspect property for valuation etc

12A

(1)

An officer of Revenue and Customs may enter and inspect premises for the purpose of valuing the premises if the valuation is reasonably required for the purpose of checking any person's position as regards income tax or corporation tax.

(2)

An officer of Revenue and Customs may enter premises and inspect—

(a)

the premises, and

(b)

any other property on the premises,

for the purpose of valuing, measuring or determining the character of the premises or property.

(3)

Sub-paragraph (2) only applies if the valuation, measurement or determination is reasonably required for the purpose of checking any person's position as regards—

(a)

capital gains tax,

(b)

corporation tax in respect of chargeable gains,

(c)

inheritance tax,

(d)

stamp duty land tax, F157...

(e)

stamp duty reserve taxF158, or

(f)

annual tax on enveloped dwellings.

(4)

A person who the officer considers is needed to assist with the valuation, measurement or determination may enter and inspect the premises or property with the officer.

Carrying out inspections under paragraph 12A

12B

(1)

An inspection under paragraph 12A may be carried out only if condition A or B is satisfied.

(2)

Condition A is that—

(a)

the inspection is carried out at a time agreed to by a relevant person, and

(b)

the relevant person has been given notice in writing of the agreed time of the inspection.

(3)

Relevant person” means—

(a)

the occupier of the premises, or

(b)

if the occupier cannot be identified or the premises are vacant, a person who controls the premises.

(4)

Condition B is that—

(a)

the inspection has been approved by the tribunal, and

(b)

any relevant person specified by the tribunal has been given at least 7 days' notice in writing of the time of the inspection.

(5)

A notice under sub-paragraph (4)(b) must state the possible consequences of obstructing the officer in the exercise of the power.

(6)

If a notice is given under this paragraph in respect of an inspection approved by the tribunal (see paragraph 13), it must state that the inspection has been so approved.

(7)

An officer of Revenue and Customs seeking to carry out an inspection under paragraph 12A must produce evidence of authority to carry out the inspection if asked to do so by—

(a)

the occupier of the premises, or

(b)

any other person who appears to the officer to be in charge of the premises or property.

Approval of F159tribunal

13

(1)

An officer of Revenue and Customs may ask the F160tribunal to approve an inspection under this Part of this Schedule F161(and for the effect of obtaining such approval see paragraph 39 (penalties)).

F162(1A)

An application for approval under this paragraph may be made without notice F163(except as required under sub-paragraph (2A)).

(2)

The F160tribunal may not approve an inspection F164under paragraph 10, 10A or 11 unless—

(a)

an application for approval is made by, or with the agreement of, an authorised officer of Revenue and Customs, and

(b)

the F165tribunal is satisfied that, in the circumstances, the inspection is justified.

F166(2A)

The tribunal may not approve an inspection under paragraph 12A unless—

(a)

an application for approval is made by, or with the agreement of, an authorised officer of Revenue and Customs,

(b)

the person whose tax position is the subject of the proposed inspection has been given a reasonable opportunity to make representations to the officer of Revenue and Customs about that inspection,

(c)

the occupier of the premises has been given a reasonable opportunity to make such representations,

(d)

the tribunal has been given a summary of any representations made, and

(e)

the tribunal is satisfied that, in the circumstances, the inspection is justified.

(2B)

Paragraph (c) of sub-paragraph (2A) does not apply if the tribunal is satisfied that the occupier of the premises cannot be identified.

F167(3)

A decision of the tribunal under this paragraph is final (despite the provisions of sections 11 and 13 of the Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007).

Restrictions and special cases

14

This Part of this Schedule has effect subject to Parts 4 and 6 of this Schedule.

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I14Sch. 36 para. 14 in force at 1.4.2009 by S.I. 2009/404, art. 2

Part 3Further powers

Power to copy documents

15

Where a document (or a copy of a document) is produced to, or inspected by, an officer of Revenue and Customs, such an officer may take copies of, or make extracts from, the document.

Power to remove documents

16

(1)

Where a document is produced to, or inspected by, an officer of Revenue and Customs, such an officer may—

(a)

remove the document at a reasonable time, and

(b)

retain it for a reasonable period,

if it appears to the officer to be necessary to do so.

(2)

Where a document is removed in accordance with sub-paragraph (1), the person who produced the document may request—

(a)

a receipt for the document, and

(b)

if the document is reasonably required for any purpose, a copy of the document,

and an officer of Revenue and Customs must comply with such a request without charge.

(3)

The removal of a document under this paragraph is not to be regarded as breaking any lien claimed on the document.

(4)

Where a document removed under this paragraph is lost or damaged, the Commissioners are liable to compensate the owner of the document for any expenses reasonably incurred in replacing or repairing the document.

(5)

In this paragraph references to a document include a copy of a document.

Power to mark assets and to record information

17

The powers under Part 2 of this Schedule include—

(a)

power to mark business assets, and anything containing business assets, for the purpose of indicating that they have been inspected, and

(b)

power to obtain and record information (whether electronically or otherwise) relating to the premises, F168property, goods, assets and documents that have been inspected.

Part 4Restrictions on powers

Documents not in person's possession or power

18

An information notice only requires a person to produce a document if it is in the person's possession or power.

Types of information

19

(1)

An information notice does not require a person to provide or produce—

(a)

information that relates to the conduct of a pending appeal relating to tax or any part of a document containing such information,

F169(aa)

information that relates to the conduct of a pending appeal under the Savings (Government Contributions) Act 2017 or any part of a document containing such information, or

(b)

journalistic material (as defined in section 13 of the Police and Criminal Evidence Act 1984 (c. 60)) or information contained in such material.

(2)

An information notice does not require a person to provide or produce personal records (as defined in section 12 of the Police and Criminal Evidence Act 1984) or information contained in such records, subject to sub-paragraph (3).

(3)

An information notice may require a person—

(a)

to produce documents, or copies of documents, that are personal records, omitting any information whose inclusion (whether alone or with other information) makes the original documents personal records (“personal information”), and

(b)

to provide any information contained in such records that is not personal information.

Old documents

20

An information notice may not require a person to produce a document if the whole of the document originates more than 6 years before the date of the notice, unless the notice is given by, or with the agreement of, an authorised officer.

Taxpayer notices F170following tax return

21

(1)

Where a person has made a tax return in respect of a chargeable period under section 8, 8A or 12AA of TMA 1970 (returns for purpose of income tax and capital gains tax), a taxpayer notice may not be given for the purpose of checking that person's income tax position or capital gains tax position in relation to the chargeable period.

(2)

Where a person has made a tax return in respect of a chargeable period under paragraph 3 of Schedule 18 to FA 1998 (company tax returns), a taxpayer notice may not be given for the purpose of checking that person's corporation tax position in relation to the chargeable period.

(3)

Sub-paragraphs (1) and (2) do not apply where, or to the extent that, any of conditions A to D is met.

(4)

Condition A is that a notice of enquiry has been given in respect of—

(a)

the return, or

(b)

a claim or election (or an amendment of a claim or election) made by the person in relation to the chargeable period in respect of the tax (or one of the taxes) to which the return relates (“relevant tax”),

and the enquiry has not been completed F171so far as relating to the matters to which the taxpayer notice relates.

(5)

In sub-paragraph (4), “notice of enquiry” means a notice under—

(a)

section 9A or 12AC of, or paragraph 5 of Schedule 1A to, TMA 1970, or

(b)

paragraph 24 of Schedule 18 to FA 1998.

(6)

Condition B is that F172, as regards the person, an officer of Revenue and Customs has reason to suspect that—

(a)

an amount that ought to have been assessed to relevant tax for the chargeable period may not have been assessed,

(b)

an assessment to relevant tax for the chargeable period may be or have become insufficient, or

(c)

relief from relevant tax given for the chargeable period may be or have become excessive.

(7)

Condition C is that the notice is given for the purpose of obtaining any information or document that is also required for the purpose of checking F173the person's F174position as regards any tax other than income tax, capital gains tax or corporation tax.

(8)

Condition D is that the notice is given for the purpose of obtaining any information or document that is required (or also required) for the purpose of checking the person's position as regards any deductions or repayments F175of tax or withholding of income referred to in paragraph 64(2) F176or (2A) (PAYE etc).

F177(9)

In this paragraph references to the person who made the return are only to that person in the capacity in which the return was made.

F178Application of paragraph 21 in case of returns under Schedule 2 to FA 2019

21ZA

(1)

For the purposes of paragraph 21 any reference to the making by a person of a return under section 8 or 8A of TMA 1970 includes the making by the person of a return under Schedule 2 to FA 2019.

(2)

In the application of paragraph 21 in relation to a return under Schedule 2 to FA 2019, the return is to be treated as if it required a self-assessment of an amount of capital gains tax.

(3)

For the purposes of paragraph 21, the definition of “the notice of enquiry” in its application to a return under Schedule 2 to FA 2019 needs to be read in the light of the provision made by paragraph 20 of that Schedule.

F179Taxpayer notices following land transaction return

21A

(1)

Where a person has delivered a land transaction return under section 76 of FA 2003 (returns for purposes of stamp duty land tax) in respect of a transaction, a taxpayer notice may not be given for the purpose of checking that person's stamp duty land tax position in relation to that transaction.

(2)

Sub-paragraph (1) does not apply where, or to the extent that, any of conditions A to C is met.

(3)

Condition A is that a notice of enquiry has been given in respect of—

(a)

the return, or

(b)

a claim (or an amendment of a claim) made by the person in connection with the transaction,

and the enquiry has not been completed.

(4)

In sub-paragraph (3) “notice of enquiry” means a notice under paragraph 12 of Schedule 10, or paragraph 7 of Schedule 11A, to FA 2003.

(5)

Condition B is that, as regards the person, an officer of Revenue and Customs has reason to suspect that—

(a)

an amount that ought to have been assessed to stamp duty land tax in respect of the transaction may not have been assessed,

(b)

an assessment to stamp duty land tax in respect of the transaction may be or have become insufficient, or

(c)

relief from stamp duty land tax in respect of the transaction may be or have become excessive.

(6)

Condition C is that the notice is given for the purpose of obtaining any information or document that is also required for the purpose of checking that person's position as regards a tax other than stamp duty land tax.

F180Annual tax on enveloped dwellings: taxpayer notices following return

21B

(1)

Where a person has delivered, for a chargeable period with respect to a single-dwelling interest—

(a)

an annual tax on enveloped dwellings return, or

(b)

a return of the adjusted chargeable amount,

a taxpayer notice may not be given for the purpose of checking the person's annual tax on enveloped dwellings position as regards the matters dealt with in that return.

(2)

Sub-paragraph (1) does not apply where, or to the extent that, any of conditions A to C is met.

(3)

Condition A is that notice of enquiry has been given in respect of—

(a)

the return, or

(b)

a claim (or an amendment of a claim) made by the person in relation to the chargeable period,

and the enquiry has not been completed.

(4)

In sub-paragraph (3) “notice of enquiry” means a notice under paragraph 8 of Schedule 33 to FA 2013 or paragraph 7 of Schedule 11A to FA 2003 (as applied by paragraphs 28(2) and 31(3) of Schedule 33 to FA 2013).

(5)

Condition B is that, as regards the person, an officer of Revenue and Customs has reason to suspect that—

(a)

an amount that ought to have been assessed to annual tax on enveloped dwellings for the chargeable period may not have been assessed,

(b)

an assessment to annual tax on enveloped dwellings for the chargeable period may be or have become insufficient, or

(c)

relief from annual tax on enveloped dwellings for the chargeable period may be or have become excessive.

(6)

Condition C is that the notice is given for the purpose of obtaining any information or document that is also required for the purpose of checking that person's position as regards a tax other than annual tax on enveloped dwellings.

(7)

In this Schedule references to a “single-dwelling interest” are to be read in accordance with section 108 of FA 2013.

Deceased persons

22

An information notice given for the purpose of checking the tax position of a person who has died may not be given more than 4 years after the person's death.

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I22Sch. 36 para. 22 in force at 1.4.2009 by S.I. 2009/404, art. 2

Auditors

24

(1)

An information notice does not require a person who has been appointed as an auditor for the purpose of an enactment—

(a)

to provide information held in connection with the performance of the person's functions under that enactment, or

(b)

to produce documents which are that person's property and which were created by that person or on that person's behalf for or in connection with the performance of those functions.

(2)

Sub-paragraph (1) has effect subject to paragraph 26.

Tax advisers

25

(1)

An information notice does not require a tax adviser—

(a)

to provide information about relevant communications, or

(b)

to produce documents which are the tax adviser's property and consist of relevant communications.

(2)

Sub-paragraph (1) has effect subject to paragraph 26.

(3)

In this paragraph—

relevant communications” means communications between the tax adviser and—

(a)

a person in relation to whose tax affairs he has been appointed, or

(b)

any other tax adviser of such a person,

the purpose of which is the giving or obtaining of advice about any of those tax affairs, and

tax adviser” means a person appointed to give advice about the tax affairs of another person (whether appointed directly by that person or by another tax adviser of that person).

Auditors and tax advisers: supplementary

26

(1)

Paragraphs 24(1) and 25(1) do not have effect in relation to—

(a)

information explaining any information or document which the person to whom the notice is given has, as tax accountant, assisted any client in preparing for, or delivering to, HMRC, or

(b)

a document which contains such information.

(2)

In the case of a notice given under paragraph 5, paragraphs 24(1) and 25(1) do not have effect in relation to—

(a)

any information giving the identity or address of a person to whom the notice relates or of a person who has acted on behalf of such a person, or

(b)

a document which contains such information.

(3)

Paragraphs 24(1) and 25(1) are not disapplied by sub-paragraph (1) or (2) if the information in question has already been provided, or a document containing the information in question has already been produced, to an officer of Revenue and Customs.

27

(1)

This paragraph applies where paragraph 24(1) or 25(1) is disapplied in relation to a document by paragraph 26(1) or (2).

(2)

An information notice that requires the document to be produced has effect as if it required any part or parts of the document containing the information mentioned in paragraph 26(1) or (2) to be produced.

Corresponding restrictions on inspection of F183... documents

28

An officer of Revenue and Customs may not inspect a F184... document under Part 2 of this Schedule if or to the extent that, by virtue of this Part of this Schedule, an information notice given at the time of the inspection to the occupier of the premises could not require the occupier to produce the document.

Part 5Appeals against information notices

Right to appeal against taxpayer notice

29

(1)

Where a taxpayer is given a taxpayer notice, the taxpayer may appeal F185... against the notice or any requirement in the notice.

(2)

Sub-paragraph (1) does not apply to a requirement in a taxpayer notice to provide any information, or produce any document, that forms part of the taxpayer's statutory records.

(3)

Sub-paragraph (1) does not apply if the F186tribunal approved the giving of the notice in accordance with paragraph 3.

Right to appeal against third party notice

30

(1)

Where a person is given a third party notice, the person may appeal F187... against the notice or any requirement in the notice on the ground that it would be unduly onerous to comply with the notice or requirement.

(2)

Sub-paragraph (1) does not apply to a requirement in a third party notice to provide any information, or produce any document, that forms part of the taxpayer's statutory records.

(3)

Sub-paragraph (1) does not apply if the F188tribunal approved the giving of the notice in accordance with paragraph 3.

Right to appeal against notice given under paragraph 5 F189or 5A

31

Where a person is given a notice under paragraph 5 F190or 5A, the person may appeal F191... against the notice or any requirement in the notice on the ground that it would be unduly onerous to comply with the notice or requirement.

Procedure

32

(1)

Notice of an appeal under this Part of this Schedule must be given—

(a)

in writing,

(b)

before the end of the period of 30 days beginning with the date on which the information notice is given, and

(c)

to the officer of Revenue and Customs by whom the information notice was given.

(2)

Notice of an appeal under this Part of this Schedule must state the grounds of appeal.

(3)

On an appeal F192that is notified to the tribunal, the tribunal may—

(a)

confirm the information notice or a requirement in the information notice,

(b)

vary the information notice or such a requirement, or

(c)

set aside the information notice or such a requirement.

(4)

Where the F193tribunal confirms or varies the information notice or a requirement, the person to whom the information notice was given must comply with the notice or requirement—

(a)

within such period as is specified by the F194tribunal , or

(b)

if the F195tribunal does not specify a period, within such period as is reasonably specified in writing by an officer of Revenue and Customs following the F196tribunal’s decision.

F197(5)

Notwithstanding the provisions of sections 11 and 13 of the Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007 a decision of the tribunal on an appeal under this Part of this Schedule is final.

(6)

Subject to this paragraph, the provisions of Part 5 of TMA 1970 relating to appeals have effect in relation to appeals under this Part of this Schedule as they have effect in relation to an appeal against an assessment to income tax.

Special cases

33

This Part of this Schedule has effect subject to Part 6 of this Schedule.

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I33Sch. 36 para. 33 in force at 1.4.2009 by S.I. 2009/404, art. 2

Part 6Special cases

Supply of goods or services etc

34

(1)

This paragraph applies to a taxpayer notice or third party notice that refers only to information or documents that form part of any person's statutory records and relate to—

(a)

the supply of goods or services,

(b)

the acquisition of goods from another member State, or

(c)

the importation of goods from a place outside the member States in the course of carrying on a business.

(2)

Paragraph 3(1) (requirement for consent to, or approval of, third party notice) does not apply to such a notice.

(3)

Where a person is given such a notice, the person may not appeal F198... against the notice or any requirement in the notice.

(4)

Sections 5, 11 and 15 of, and Schedule 4 to, VATA 1994, and any orders made under those provisions, apply for the purposes of this paragraph as if it were part of that Act.

F199Involved third parties

F20034A

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Registered pension schemes etc

34B

(1)

This paragraph applies to a third party notice or a notice under paragraph 5 if it refers only to information or documents that relate to any pensions matter.

(2)

Pensions matter” means any matter relating to—

(a)

a registered pension scheme,

(b)

an annuity purchased with sums or assets held for the purposes of a registered pension scheme or a pre-2006 pension scheme, F201...

(c)

an employer-financed retirement benefits scheme,

F202(d)

a QROPS or former QROPS, or

(e)

an annuity purchased with sums or assets held for the purposes of a QROPS or former QROPS.

(3)

In relation to such a third party notice—

(a)

paragraph 3(1) (approval etc of third party notices) does not apply,

(b)

paragraph 4(1) (copying third party notices to taxpayer) does not apply, and

(c)

paragraph 30(1) (appeal) has effect as if it permitted an appeal on any grounds.

(4)

In relation to such a notice under paragraph 5—

(a)

sub-paragraphs (3) and (4) of that paragraph (approval of tribunal) have effect as if they permitted, but did not require, an authorised officer of Revenue and Customs to obtain the approval of the tribunal, and

(b)

paragraph 31 (appeal) has effect as if it permitted an appeal on any grounds.

F203(4A)

In relation to a notice to which this paragraph applies that refers only to information or documents relating to a matter within sub-paragraph (2)(d) or (e), paragraph 20 (old documents) has effect as if the reference to 6 years were to 10 years.

(5)

A person may not appeal against a requirement in the notice to provide any information, or produce any document, that forms part of any person's statutory records.

(6)

Where the notice relates to a matter within sub-paragraph (2)(a) or (b), the officer of Revenue and Customs who gives the notice must give a copy of the notice to the scheme administrator in relation to the pension scheme.

(7)

Where the notice relates to a matter within sub-paragraph (2)(c), the officer of Revenue and Customs who gives the notice must give a copy of the notice to the responsible person in relation to the employer-financed retirement benefits scheme.

F204(7A)

Where the notice relates to a matter within sub-paragraph (2)(d) or (e), the officer of Revenue and Customs who gives the notice must give a copy of the notice to the scheme manager in relation to the pension scheme.

(8)

Sub-paragraphs (6) F205to (7A) do not apply if the notice is given to a person who, in relation to the scheme or annuity to which the notice relates, is a prescribed description of person.

Registered pension schemes etc: interpretation

34C

In paragraph 34B—

employer-financed retirement benefits scheme” has the same meaning as in Chapter 2 of Part 6 of ITEPA 2003 (see sections 393A and 393B of that Act);

pension scheme” has the same meaning as in Part 4 of FA 2004;

pre-2006 pension scheme” means a scheme that, at or in respect of any time before 6 April 2006, was—

(a)

a retirement benefits scheme approved for the purposes of Chapter 1 of Part 14 of ICTA,

(b)

a former approved superannuation fund (as defined in paragraph 1(3) of Schedule 36 to FA 2004),

(c)

a relevant statutory scheme (as defined in section 611A of ICTA) or a pension scheme treated as if it were such a scheme, or

(d)

a personal pension scheme approved under Chapter 4 of Part 14 of ICTA;

prescribed” means prescribed by regulations made by the Commissioners;

F206“QROPS” and “former QROPS” have the meanings given by section 169(8) of FA 2004;

registered pension scheme” means a pension scheme that is or has been a registered pension scheme within the meaning of Part 4 of FA 2004 or in relation to which an application for registration under that Part of that Act has been made;

responsible person”, in relation to an employer-financed retirement benefits scheme, has the same meaning as in Chapter 2 of Part 6 of ITEPA 2003 (see section 399A of that Act);

scheme administrator”, in relation to a pension scheme, has the same meaning as in Part 4 of FA 2004 (see section 270 of that Act);

F206scheme manager”, in relation to a pension scheme, has the meaning given by section 169(3) of FA 2004.

Groups of undertakings

35

(1)

This paragraph applies where an undertaking is a parent undertaking in relation to another undertaking (a subsidiary undertaking).

(2)

Where a third party notice is given to any person for the purpose of checking the tax position of the parent undertaking and any of its subsidiary undertakings,F207

(a)

paragraph 2(2) only requires the notice to state this and name the parent undertaking F208, and

(b)

the references in paragraph 3(5) to naming the taxpayer are to making that statement and naming the parent undertaking.

(3)

In relation to such a notice—

(a)

in paragraphs 3 and 4 (approval etc of notices and copying third party notices to taxpayer), the references to the taxpayer have effect as if they were references to the parent undertaking, but

(b)

in paragraph 30(2) (no appeal in relation to taxpayer's statutory records), the reference to the taxpayer has effect as if it were a reference to the parent undertaking and each of its subsidiary undertakings.

F209(4)

Where a third party notice is given to the parent undertaking for the purpose of checking the tax position of more than one subsidiary undertaking—

(a)

paragraph 2(2) only requires the notice to state this, and

(b)

the references in paragraph 3(5) to naming the taxpayer are to making that statement.

(4A)

In relation to such a notice—

(a)

in paragraph 3 (approval etc of notices), sub-paragraphs (1) and (3)(e) do not apply,

(b)

paragraph 4(1) (copying third party notices to taxpayer) does not apply,

(c)

F210paragraphs 21 and 21A (restrictions on giving taxpayer notice where taxpayer has made return) F211apply as if the notice was a taxpayer notice or taxpayer notices given to each subsidiary undertaking (or, if the notice names the subsidiary undertakings to which it relates, to each of those undertakings),

(d)

paragraph 30(1) (appeal) has effect as if it permitted an appeal on any grounds, and

(e)

in paragraph 30(2) (no appeal in relation to taxpayer's statutory records), the reference to the taxpayer has effect as if it were a reference to the parent undertaking or any of its subsidiary undertakings.

(5)

Where a notice is given under paragraph 5 to the parent undertaking for the purpose of checking the tax position of one or more subsidiary undertakings whose identities are not known to the officer giving F212

(a)

sub-paragraphs (3) and (4) of that paragraph (approval of tribunal) have effect as if they permitted, but did not require, the officer to obtain the approval of the tribunal, and

(b)

paragraph 31 (appeal) has effect as if it permitted an appeal on any grounds, but the parent undertaking may not appeal against a requirement in the notice to produce any document that forms part of the statutory records of the parent undertaking or any of its subsidiary undertakings.

F213(6)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

(7)

In this paragraph “parent undertaking”, “subsidiary undertaking” and “undertaking” have the same meaning as in the Companies Acts (see sections 1161 and 1162 of, and Schedule 7 to, the Companies Act 2006 (c. 46)).

Change of ownership of companies

36

(1)

Sub-paragraph (2) applies where it appears to the Commissioners that—

(a)

there has been a change in the ownership of a company, and

(b)

in connection with that change a person (“the seller”) may be or become liable to be assessed and charged to corporation tax under F214section 710 or 713 of CTA 2010.

(2)

Paragraph 21 (restrictions on giving taxpayer notice where taxpayer has made tax return) does not apply in relation to a taxpayer notice given to the seller.

(3)

F215Chapter 7 of Part 14 of CTA 2010 applies for the purposes of determining when there has been a change in the ownership of a company.

Partnerships

37

(1)

This paragraph applies where a business is carried on by two or more persons in partnership.

F216(2)

Where, in respect of a chargeable period, any of the partners has—

(a)

made a tax return under section 12AA of TMA 1970 (partnership returns), or

(b)

made a claim or election in accordance with section 42(6)(b) of TMA 1970 (partnership claims and elections),

paragraph 21 (restrictions where taxpayer has made tax return) has effect as if that return, claim or election had been made by each of the partners.

F217(2A)

Where, in respect of a transaction entered into as purchaser by or on behalf of the members of the partnership, any of the partners has—

(a)

delivered a land transaction return under Part 4 of FA 2003 (stamp duty land tax), or

(b)

made a claim under that Part of that Act,

paragraph 21A (restrictions where taxpayer has delivered land transaction return) has effect as if that return had been delivered, or that claim had been made, by each of the partners.

F218(2B)

Where, in respect of a single-dwelling interest (see paragraph 21B(7)) to which one or more companies are or were entitled as members of a partnership, any member of the partnership has—

(a)

delivered an annual tax on enveloped dwellings return or a return of the adjusted chargeable amount under Part 3 of FA 2013, or

(b)

made a claim under that Part of that Act,

paragraph 21B (restrictions where taxpayer has delivered return) has effect as if that return had been delivered, or that claim had been made, by each member of the partnership.

(3)

Where a third party notice is given F219... for the purpose of checking the tax position of more than one of the partners (in their capacity as such), F220

(a)

paragraph 2(2) only requires the notice to state this and give a name in which the partnership is registered for any purpose F221, and

(b)

the references in paragraph 3(5) to naming the taxpayer are to making that statement and naming the partnership.

(4)

In relation to such a notice F222given to a person other than one of the partners

(a)

in paragraphs 3 and 4 (approval etc of notices and copying third party notices to taxpayer), the references to the taxpayer have effect as if they were references to at least one of the partners, and

(b)

in paragraph 30(2) (no appeal in relation to taxpayer's statutory records), the reference to the taxpayer has effect as if it were a reference to F223any of the partners in the partnership.

F224(5)

In relation to a third party notice given to one of the partners for the purpose of checking the tax position of one or more of the other partners (in their capacity as such)—

(a)

in paragraph 3 (approval etc of notices), sub-paragraphs (1) and (3)(e) do not apply,

(b)

paragraph 4(1) (copying third party notices to taxpayer) does not apply,

(c)

paragraph 30(1) (appeal) has effect as if it permitted an appeal on any grounds, and

(d)

in paragraph 30(2) (no appeal in relation to taxpayer's statutory records), the reference to the taxpayer has effect as if it were a reference to any of the partners in the partnership.

(6)

Where a notice is given under paragraph 5 to one of the partners for the purpose of checking the tax position of one or more of the other partners whose identities are not known to the officer giving the notice F225

(a)

sub-paragraphs (3) and (4) of that paragraph (approval of tribunal) have effect as if they permitted, but did not require, the officer to obtain the approval of the tribunal, and

(b)

paragraph 31 (appeal) has effect as if it permitted an appeal on any grounds, but the partner to whom the notice is given may not appeal against a requirement in the notice to produce any document that forms part of that partner's statutory records.

F226(7)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F227Information in connection with herd basis election

37A

(1)

This paragraph applies to a taxpayer notice given to a person carrying on a trade in relation to which a herd basis election is made if the notice refers only to information or documents that relate to—

(a)

the animals kept for the purposes of the trade, or

(b)

the products of those animals.

(2)

Paragraph 21 (restrictions on giving taxpayer notice where taxpayer has made tax return) does not apply in relation to the notice.

(3)

Herd basis election” means an election under Chapter 8 of Part 2 of ITTOIA 2005 or Chapter 8 of Part 3 of CTA 2009.

Information from persons liable to counteraction of tax advantage

37B

(1)

This paragraph applies to a taxpayer notice given to a person if—

(a)

it appears to an officer of Revenue and Customs that a counteraction provision may apply to the person by reason of one or more transactions, and

(b)

the notice refers only to information or documents relating to the transaction (or, if there are two or more transactions, any of them).

(2)

Paragraph 21 (restrictions on giving taxpayer notice where taxpayer has made tax return) does not apply in relation to the notice.

(3)

Counteraction provision” means—

F228(a)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

(b)

section 684 of ITA 2007 (person liable to counteraction of income tax advantage)F229, or

(c)

section 733 of CTA 2010 (company liable to counteraction of corporation tax advantage).

Application to the Crown

38

This Schedule (other than Part 8) applies to the Crown, but not to Her Majesty in Her private capacity (within the meaning of the Crown Proceedings Act 1947 (c. 44)).

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I38Sch. 36 para. 38 in force at 1.4.2009 by S.I. 2009/404, art. 2

Part 7Penalties

F230... penalties F231for failure to comply or obstruction

39

(1)

This paragraph applies to a person who—

(a)

fails to comply with an information notice, or

(b)

deliberately obstructs an officer of Revenue and Customs in the course of an inspection under Part 2 of this Schedule that has been approved by the F232tribunal.

(2)

F233The person is liable to a penalty of £300.

(3)

The reference in this paragraph to a person who fails to comply with an information notice includes a person who conceals, destroys or otherwise disposes of, or arranges for the concealment, destruction or disposal of, a document in breach of paragraph 42 or 43.

Daily default penalties

40

(1)

This paragraph applies if the failure or obstruction mentioned in paragraph 39(1) continues after the date on which a penalty is imposed under that paragraph in respect of the failure or obstruction.

(2)

The person is liable to a further penalty or penalties not exceeding £60 for each subsequent day on which the failure or obstruction continues.

F234Penalties for inaccurate information and documents

40A

(1)

This paragraph applies if—

(a)

in complying with an information notice, a person provides inaccurate information or produces a document that contains an inaccuracy, and

(b)

condition F235A, B or C is met.

(2)

Condition A is that the inaccuracy is careless or deliberate.

(3)

An inaccuracy is careless if it is due to a failure by the person to take reasonable care.

F236(3A)

Condition B is that the person knows of the inaccuracy at the time the information is provided or the document produced but does not inform HMRC at that time.

(4)

Condition F237C is that the person—

(a)

discovers the inaccuracy some time later, and

(b)

fails to take reasonable steps to inform HMRC.

(5)

The person is liable to a penalty not exceeding £3,000.

(6)

Where the information or document contains more than one inaccuracy, a penalty is payable for each inaccuracy.

Power to change amount of F238... penalties

41

(1)

If it appears to the Treasury that there has been a change in the value of money since the last relevant date, they may by regulations substitute for the sums for the time being specified in paragraphs 39(2) F239, 40(2) and 40A(5) such other sums as appear to them to be justified by the change.

(2)

In sub-paragraph (1) F240, in relation to a specified sum,relevant date” means—

(a)

the date on which this Act is passed, and

(b)

each date on which the power conferred by that sub-paragraph has been exercised F241in relation to that sum.

(3)

Regulations under this paragraph do not apply to F242

(a)

any failure or obstruction which began before the date on which they come into force F243, or

(b)

an inaccuracy in any information or document provided to HMRC before that date.

Concealing, destroying etc documents following information notice

42

(1)

A person must not conceal, destroy or otherwise dispose of, or arrange for the concealment, destruction or disposal of, a document that is the subject of an information notice addressed to the person (subject to sub-paragraphs (2) and (3)).

(2)

Sub-paragraph (1) does not apply if the person acts after the document has been produced to an officer of Revenue and Customs in accordance with the information notice, unless an officer of Revenue and Customs has notified the person in writing that the document must continue to be available for inspection (and has not withdrawn the notification).

(3)

Sub-paragraph (1) does not apply, in a case to which paragraph 8(1) applies, if the person acts after the expiry of the period of 6 months beginning with the day on which a copy of the document was produced in accordance with that paragraph unless, before the expiry of that period, an officer of Revenue and Customs made a request for the original document under paragraph 8(2)(b).

Concealing, destroying etc documents following informal notification

43

(1)

A person must not conceal, destroy or otherwise dispose of, or arrange for the concealment, destruction or disposal of, a document if an officer of Revenue and Customs has informed the person that the document is, or is likely, to be the subject of an information notice addressed to that person (subject to sub-paragraph (2)).

(2)

Sub-paragraph (1) does not apply if the person acts after—

(a)

at least 6 months has expired since the person was, or was last, so informed, or

(b)

an information notice has been given to the person requiring the document to be produced.

Failure to comply with time limit

44

A failure by a person to do anything required to be done within a limited period of time does not give rise to liability to a penalty under paragraph 39 or 40 if the person did it within such further time, if any, as an officer of Revenue and Customs may have allowed.

Reasonable excuse

45

(1)

Liability to a penalty under paragraph 39 or 40 does not arise if the person satisfies HMRC or F244(on an appeal notified to the tribunal) the tribunal that there is a reasonable excuse for the failure or the obstruction of an officer of Revenue and Customs.

(2)

For the purposes of this paragraph—

(a)

an insufficiency of funds is not a reasonable excuse unless attributable to events outside the person's control,

(b)

where the person relies on any other person to do anything, that is not a reasonable excuse unless the first person took reasonable care to avoid the failure or obstruction, and

(c)

where the person had a reasonable excuse for the failure or obstruction but the excuse has ceased, the person is to be treated as having continued to have the excuse if the failure is remedied, or the obstruction stops, without unreasonable delay after the excuse ceased.

F245Assessment of ... penalty

46

(1)

Where a person becomes liable for a penalty under paragraph 39 F246, 40 or 40A, F247... —

(a)

F248HMRC may assess the penalty, and

(b)

F249if they do so, they must notify the person.

(2)

An assessment of a penalty under paragraph 39 or 40 must be made F250within the period of 12 months beginning with the date on which the person became liable to the penalty, subject to sub-paragraph (3).

F251(3)

In a case involving an information notice against which a person may appeal, an assessment of a penalty under paragraph 39 or 40 must be made within the period of 12 months beginning with the latest of the following—

(a)

the date on which the person became liable to the penalty,

(b)

the end of the period in which notice of an appeal against the information notice could have been given, and

(c)

if notice of such an appeal is given, the date on which the appeal is determined or withdrawn.

(4)

An assessment of a penalty under paragraph 40A must be made—

(a)

within the period of 12 months beginning with the date on which the inaccuracy first came to the attention of an officer of Revenue and Customs, and

(b)

within the period of 6 years beginning with the date on which the person became liable to the penalty.

F252Right to appeal against ... penalty

47

A person may appeal F253... against any of the following decisions of an officer of Revenue and Customs—

(a)

a decision that a penalty is payable by that person under paragraph 39 F254, 40 or 40A, or

(b)

a decision as to the amount of such a penalty.

F255Procedure on appeal against ... penalty

48

(1)

Notice of an appeal under paragraph 47 must be given—

(a)

in writing,

(b)

before the end of the period of 30 days beginning with the date on which the notification under paragraph 46 was issued, and

(c)

to HMRC.

(2)

Notice of an appeal under paragraph 47 must state the grounds of appeal.

(3)

On an appeal under paragraph 47(a) F256that is notified to the tribunal, the tribunal may confirm or cancel the decision.

(4)

On an appeal under paragraph 47(b) F256that is notified to the tribunal, the tribunal may—

(a)

confirm the decision, or

(b)

substitute for the decision another decision that the officer of Revenue and Customs had power to make.

(5)

Subject to this paragraph and paragraph 49, the provisions of Part 5 of TMA 1970 relating to appeals have effect in relation to appeals under this Part of this Schedule as they have effect in relation to an appeal against an assessment to income tax.

F257Enforcement of ... penalty

49

(1)

A penalty under paragraph 39 F258, 40 or 40A must be paid—

(a)

before the end of the period of 30 days beginning with the date on which the notification under paragraph 46 was issued, or

(b)

if a notice of an appeal against the penalty is given, before the end of the period of 30 days beginning with the date on which the appeal is determined or withdrawn.

(2)

A penalty under paragraph 39 F259, 40 or 40A may be enforced as if it were income tax charged in an assessment and due and payable.

F260Increased daily default penalty

49A

(1)

This paragraph applies if—

(a)

a penalty under paragraph 40 is assessed under paragraph 46 in respect of a person's failure to comply with a notice under paragraph 5,

(b)

the failure continues for more than 30 days beginning with the date on which notification of that assessment was issued, and

(c)

the person has been told that an application may be made under this paragraph for an increased daily penalty to be imposed.

(2)

If this paragraph applies, an officer of Revenue and Customs may make an application to the tribunal for an increased daily penalty to be imposed on the person.

(3)

If the tribunal decides that an increased daily penalty should be imposed, then for each applicable day (see paragraph 49B) on which the failure continues—

(a)

the person is not liable to a penalty under paragraph 40 in respect of the failure, and

(b)

the person is liable instead to a penalty under this paragraph of an amount determined by the tribunal.

(4)

The tribunal may not determine an amount exceeding £1,000 for each applicable day.

(5)

But subject to that, in determining the amount the tribunal must have regard to—

(a)

the likely cost to the person of complying with the notice,

(b)

any benefits to the person of not complying with it, and

(c)

any benefits to anyone else resulting from the person's non-compliance.

(6)

Paragraph 41 applies in relation to the sum specified in sub-paragraph (4) as it applies in relation to the sums mentioned in paragraph 41(1).

49B

(1)

If a person becomes liable to a penalty under paragraph 49A, HMRC must notify the person.

(2)

The notification must specify the day from which the increased penalty is to apply.

(3)

That day and any subsequent day is an “applicable day” for the purposes of paragraph 49A(3).

49C

(1)

A penalty under paragraph 49A must be paid before the end of the period of 30 days beginning with the date on which the notification under paragraph 49B is issued.

(2)

A penalty under paragraph 49A may be enforced as if it were income tax charged in an assessment and due and payable.

Tax-related penalty

50

(1)

This paragraph applies where—

(a)

a person becomes liable to a penalty under paragraph 39,

(b)

the failure or obstruction continues after a penalty is imposed under that paragraph,

(c)

an officer of Revenue and Customs has reason to believe that, as a result of the failure or obstruction, the amount of tax that the person has paid, or is likely to pay, is significantly less than it would otherwise have been,

(d)

before the end of the period of 12 months beginning with the relevant date F261..., an officer of Revenue and Customs makes an application to the Upper Tribunal for an additional penalty to be imposed on the person, and

(e)

the Upper Tribunal decides that it is appropriate for an additional penalty to be imposed.

(2)

The person is liable to a penalty of an amount decided by the Upper Tribunal.

(3)

In deciding the amount of the penalty, the Upper Tribunal must have regard to the amount of tax which has not been, or is not likely to be, paid by the person.

(4)

Where a person becomes liable to a penalty under this paragraph, HMRC must notify the person.

(5)

Any penalty under this paragraph is in addition to the penalty or penalties under paragraph 39 or 40.

(6)

In the application of the following provisions, no account shall be taken of a penalty under this paragraph—

(a)

section 97A of TMA 1970 (multiple penalties),

(b)

paragraph 12(2) of Schedule 24 to FA 2007 (interaction with other penalties), and

(c)

paragraph 15(1) of Schedule 41 (interaction with other penalties).

F262(7)

In sub-paragraph (1)(d) “the relevant date” means—

(a)

in a case involving an information notice against which a person may appeal, the latest of—

(i)

the date on which the person became liable to the penalty under paragraph 39,

(ii)

the end of the period in which notice of an appeal against the information notice could have been given, and

(iii)

if notice of such an appeal is given, the date on which the appeal is determined or withdrawn, and

(b)

in any other case, the date on which the person became liable to the penalty under paragraph 39.

Enforcement of tax-related penalty

51

(1)

A penalty under paragraph 50 must be paid before the end of the period of 30 days beginning with the date on which the notification of the penalty is issued.

(2)

A penalty under paragraph 50 may be enforced as if it were income tax charged in an assessment and due and payable.

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I51Sch. 36 para. 51 in force at 1.4.2009 by S.I. 2009/404, art. 2

Double jeopardy

52

A person is not liable to a penalty under this Schedule in respect of anything in respect of which the person has been convicted of an offence.

Part 8Offence

Concealing etc documents following information notice

53

(1)

A person is guilty of an offence (subject to sub-paragraphs (2) and (3)) if—

(a)

the person is required to produce a document by an information notice,

(b)

the F263tribunal approved the giving of the notice in accordance with paragraph 3 or 5, and

(c)

the person conceals, destroys or otherwise disposes of, or arranges for the concealment, destruction or disposal of, that document.

(2)

Sub-paragraph (1) does not apply if the person acts after the document has been produced to an officer of Revenue and Customs in accordance with the information notice, unless an officer of Revenue and Customs has notified the person in writing that the document must continue to be available for inspection (and has not withdrawn the notification).

(3)

Sub-paragraph (1) does not apply, in a case to which paragraph 8(1) applies, if the person acts after the expiry of the period of 6 months beginning with the day on which a copy of the document was so produced unless, before the expiry of that period, an officer of Revenue and Customs made a request for the original document under paragraph 8(2)(b).

Concealing etc documents following informal notification

54

(1)

A person is also guilty of an offence (subject to sub-paragraph (2)) if the person conceals, destroys or otherwise disposes of, or arranges for the concealment, destruction or disposal of a document after the person has been informed by an officer of Revenue and Customs in writing that—

(a)

the document is, or is likely, to be the subject of an information notice addressed to that person, and

(b)

an officer of Revenue and Customs intends to seek the approval of the F264tribunal to the giving of the notice under paragraph 3 or 5 in respect of the document.

(2)

A person is not guilty of an offence under this paragraph if the person acts after—

(a)

at least 6 months has expired since the person was, or was last, so informed, or

(b)

an information notice has been given to the person requiring the document to be produced.

Fine or imprisonment

55

A person who is guilty of an offence under this Part of this Schedule is liable—

(a)

on summary conviction, to a fine not exceeding the statutory maximum, and

(b)

on conviction on indictment, to imprisonment for a term not exceeding 2 years or to a fine, or both.

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I55Sch. 36 para. 55 in force at 1.4.2009 by S.I. 2009/404, art. 2

F265Part 9Miscellaneous provisions and interpretation

Application of provisions of TMA 1970

56

Subject to the provisions of this Schedule, the following provisions of TMA 1970 apply for the purposes of this Schedule as they apply for the purposes of the Taxes Acts—

(a)

section 108 (responsibility of company officers),

(b)

section 114 (want of form), and

(c)

section 115 (delivery and service of documents).

Regulations under this Schedule

57

(1)

Regulations made by the Commissioners or the Treasury under this Schedule are to be made by statutory instrument.

(2)

A statutory instrument containing regulations under this Schedule is subject to annulment in pursuance of a resolution of the House of Commons.

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I57Sch. 36 para. 57 in force at 1.4.2009 by S.I. 2009/404, art. 2

General interpretation

58

In this Schedule—

checking” includes carrying out an investigation or enquiry of any kind,

the Commissioners” means the Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs,

document” includes a part of a document (except where the context otherwise requires),

enactment” includes subordinate legislation (within the meaning of the Interpretation Act 1978 (c. 30)),

HMRC” means Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs,

premises” includes—

(a)

any building or structure,

(b)

any land, and

(c)

any means of transport,

the Taxes Acts” means—

(a)

TMA 1970,

(b)

the Tax Acts, and

(c)

TCGA 1992 and all other enactments relating to capital gains tax, F266...

taxpayer”, in relation to a taxpayer notice or a third party notice, has the meaning given in paragraph 1(1) or 2(1) (as appropriate) F267, and .

F268“tribunal” means the First-tier Tribunal or, where determined by or under Tribunal Procedure Rules, the Upper Tribunal.

Authorised officer of Revenue and Customs

59

A reference in a provision of this Schedule to an authorised officer of Revenue and Customs is a reference to an officer of Revenue and Customs who is, or is a member of a class of officers who are, authorised by the Commissioners for the purpose of that provision.

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I59Sch. 36 para. 59 in force at 1.4.2009 by S.I. 2009/404, art. 2

Business

60

(1)

In this Schedule (subject to regulations under this paragraph), references to carrying on a business include—

(a)

the letting of property,

(b)

the activities of a charity, and

(c)

the activities of a government department, a local authority, a local authority association and any other public authority.

F269(1A)

A person who under section 41 of FA 1996 is liable to pay landfill tax charged on a taxable disposal is treated for the purposes of this Schedule (subject to regulations under this paragraph) as carrying on a business.

(2)

In sub-paragraph (1)—

F270...

local authority” has the meaning given in section 999 of ITA 2007, and

local authority association” has the meaning given in section 1000 of that Act.

(3)

The Commissioners may by regulations provide that for the purposes of this Schedule—

(a)

the carrying on of an activity specified in the regulations, or

(b)

the carrying on of such an activity (or any activity) by a person specified in the regulations,

is or is not to be treated as the carrying on of a business.

Chargeable period

61

In this Schedule “chargeable period” means—

(a)

in relation to income tax or capital gains tax, a tax year, and

(b)

in relation to corporation tax, an accounting period.

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I61Sch. 36 para. 61 in force at 1.4.2009 by S.I. 2009/404, art. 2

F271Involved third parties

61A

(1)

In this Schedule “involved third party” means a person described in the first column of the Table below.

(2)

In this Schedule, in relation to an involved third party, F272... “relevant document” and “relevant tax” have the meaning given in the corresponding entries in that Table.

Involved third party

Relevant F273... documents

Relevant tax

1.

A body approved by an officer of Revenue and Customs for the purpose of paying donations within the meaning of Part 12 of ITEPA 2003 (donations to charity: payroll giving) (see section 714 of that Act)

F274Documents relating to the donations

Income tax

2.

A plan manager (see section 696 of ITTOIA 2005 (managers of individual investment plans))

F274Documents relating to the plan, including investments which are or have been held under the plan

Income tax

3.

An account provider in relation to a child trust fund (as defined in section 3 of the Child Trust Funds Act 2004)

F274Documents relating to the fund, including investments which are or have been held under the fund

Income tax

4.

A person who is or has been registered as a managing agent at Lloyd's in relation to a syndicate of underwriting members of Lloyd's

F274Documents relating to, and to the activities of, the syndicate

Income tax

Capital gains tax

Corporation tax

5.

A person involved (in any capacity) in an insurance business (as defined for the purposes of Part 3 of FA 1994)

F274Documents relating to contracts of insurance entered into in the course of the business

Insurance premium tax

6.

A person who makes arrangements for persons to enter into contracts of insurance

F274Documents relating to the contracts

Insurance premium tax

7.

A person who—

  1. (a)

    is concerned in a business that is not an insurance business (as defined for the purposes of Part 3 of FA 1994), and

  2. (b)

    has been involved in the entry into a contract of insurance providing cover for any matter associated with that business

F274Documents relating to the contracts

Insurance premium tax

8.

A person who, in relation to a charge to stamp duty reserve tax on an agreement, transfer, issue, appropriation or surrender, is an accountable person (as defined in regulation 2 of the Stamp Duty Reserve Tax Regulations S.I. 1986/1711 (as amended from time to time))

F274Documents relating to the agreement, transfer, issue, appropriation or surrender

Stamp duty reserve tax

9.

A responsible person in relation to an oil field (as defined for the purposes of Part 1 of OTA 1975)

F274Documents relating to the oil field

Petroleum revenue tax

10.

A person involved (in any capacity) in subjecting aggregate to exploitation in the United Kingdom (as defined for the purposes of Part 2 of FA 2001) or in connected activities

F274Documents relating to matters in which the person is or has been involved

Aggregates levy

11.

A person involved (in any capacity) in making or receiving F275supplies of taxable commodities (as defined for the purposes of Schedule 6 to FA 2000) or in connected activities

F274Documents relating to matters in which the person is or has been involved

Climate change levy

12.

A person involved (in any capacity) with any F276disposal of material (as defined for the purposes of Part 3 of FA 1996)

F274Documents relating to the disposal

Landfill tax

Statutory records

62

(1)

For the purposes of this Schedule, information or a document forms part of a person's statutory records if it is information or a document which the person is required to keep and preserve under or by virtue of—

(a)

the Taxes Acts, or

F277(b)

any other enactment relating to a tax,

subject to the following provisions of this paragraph.

(2)

To the extent that any information or document that is required to be kept and preserved under or by virtue of the Taxes Acts—

(a)

does not relate to the carrying on of a business, and

(b)

is not also required to be kept or preserved under or by virtue of F278any other enactment relating to a tax,

it only forms part of a person's statutory records to the extent that the chargeable period or periods to which it relates has or have ended.

(3)

Information and documents cease to form part of a person's statutory records when the period for which they are required to be preserved by the enactments mentioned in sub-paragraph (1) has expired.

Tax

63

(1)

In this Schedule, except where the context otherwise requires, “tax” means all or any of the following—

(a)

income tax,

(b)

capital gains tax,

(c)

corporation tax,

F279(ca)

diverted profits tax,

F280(cb)

apprenticeship levy,

(d)

VAT,

F281(e)

insurance premium tax,

(f)

inheritance tax,

(g)

stamp duty land tax,

(h)

stamp duty reserve tax,

F282(ha)

annual tax on enveloped dwellings,

(i)

petroleum revenue tax,

F283(ia)

soft drinks industry levy,

(j)

aggregates levy,

(k)

climate change levy,

(l)

landfill tax, and

(m)

relevant foreign tax,

and references to “a tax” are to be interpreted accordingly.

(2)

In this Schedule “corporation tax” includes any amount assessable or chargeable as if it were corporation tax.

(3)

In this Schedule “VAT” means—

(a)

value added tax charged in accordance with VATA 1994, F284...

(b)

value added tax charged in accordance with the law of another member State F285, and

(c)

amounts listed in sub-paragraph (3A).

F286(3A)

Those amounts are—

(a)

any amount that is recoverable under paragraph 5(2) of Schedule 11 to VATA 1994 (amounts shown on invoices as VAT), and

(b)

any amount that is treated as VAT by virtue of regulations under section 54 of VATA 1994 (farmers etc).

(4)

In this Schedule “relevant foreign tax” means—

(a)

a tax of a member State, other than the United Kingdom, which is covered by the provisions for the exchange of information under F287Council Directive 2011/16/EU of 15 February 2011 on administrative cooperation in the field of taxation (as amended from time to time), and

(b)

any tax or duty which is imposed under the law of a territory in relation to which arrangements having effect by virtue of section 173 of FA 2006 (international tax enforcement arrangements) have been made and which is covered by the arrangements.

Tax position

64

(1)

In this Schedule, except as otherwise provided, “tax position”, in relation to a person, means the person's position as regards any tax, including the person's position as regards—

(a)

past, present and future liability to pay any tax,

(b)

penalties and other amounts that have been paid, or are or may be payable, by or to the person in connection with any tax, and

(c)

claims, elections, applications and notices that have been or may be made or given in connection with F288the person's liability to pay any tax,

and references to a person's position as regards a particular tax (however expressed) are to be interpreted accordingly.

(2)

References in this Schedule to a person's tax position include, where appropriate, a reference to the person's position as regards any deductions or repayments of tax, or of sums representing tax, that the person is required to make—

(a)

under PAYE regulations,

(b)

under Chapter 3 of Part 3 of FA 2004 or regulations made under that Chapter (construction industry scheme), or

(c)

by or under any other provision of the Taxes Acts.

F289(2A)

References in this Schedule to a person's tax position also include, where appropriate, a reference to the person's position as regards the withholding by the person of another person's PAYE income (as defined in section 683 of ITEPA 2003).

(3)

References in this Schedule to the tax position of a person include the tax position of—

(a)

a company that has ceased to exist, and

(b)

an individual who has died.

(4)

References in this Schedule to a person's tax position are to the person's tax position at any time or in relation to any period, unless otherwise stated.

Part 10Consequential provisions

TMA 1970

65

TMA 1970 is amended as follows.

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I65Sch. 36 para. 65 in force at 1.4.2009 by S.I. 2009/404, art. 2

66

Omit section 19A (power to call for documents for purposes of enquiries).

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I66Sch. 36 para. 66 in force at 1.4.2009 by S.I. 2009/404, art. 2

67

Omit section 20 (power to call for documents of taxpayer and others).

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I67Sch. 36 para. 67 in force at 1.4.2009 by S.I. 2009/404, art. 2

68

(1)

Section 20B (restrictions on powers to call for documents under ss20 and 20A) is amended as follows.

(2)

In the heading, for “ss 20 and” substitute section.

(3)

In subsection (1)—

(a)

omit “under section 20(1), (3) or (8A), or”,

(b)

omit “(or, in the case of section 20(3), to deliver or make available)”,

(c)

omit “, or to furnish the particulars in question”, and

(d)

omit “section 20(7) or (8A) or, as the case may be,”.

(4)

Omit subsections (1A) and (1B).

(5)

In subsection (2), omit from the beginning to “taxpayer; and”.

(6)

In subsection (3)—

(a)

omit “under section 20(1) or (3) or”, and

(b)

omit “section 20(3) and (4) and”.

(7)

In subsection (4)—

(a)

omit “section 20(1) or”, and

(b)

omit “, and as an alternative to delivering documents to comply with a notice under section 20(3) or (8A)”.

(8)

Omit subsections (5), (6) and (7).

(9)

In subsection (8), omit “section 20(3) or (8A) or”.

(10)

Omit subsections (9) to (14).

69

(1)

Section 20BB (falsification etc. of documents) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1)(a), omit “20 or”.

(3)

In subsection (2)(b), omit “or, in a case within section 20(3) or (8A) above, inspected”.

70

(1)

Section 20D (interpretation) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (2), for “sections 20 and” substitute “ section ”.

(3)

Omit subsection (3).

71

In section 29(6)(c) (assessment where loss of tax discovered), omit “, whether in pursuance of a notice under section 19A of this Act or otherwise”.

72

Omit section 97AA (failure to produce documents under section 19A).

73

In section 98 (penalties), in the Table—

(a)

in the first column, omit the entry for section 767C of ICTA, and

(b)

in the second column, omit the entry for section 28(2) of F(No.2)A 1992.

F29074

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

75

(1)

Section 107A (relevant trustees) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (2)(a), for “, 95 or 97AA” substitute “ or 95 ”.

(3)

In subsection (3)(a), omit “or 97AA(1)(b)”.

76

In section 118 (interpretation), in the definition of “tax”, omit “20,”.

77

In Schedule 1A (claims etc. not included in returns), omit paragraphs 6 and 6A (power to call for documents for purposes of enquiries and power to appeal against notice to produce documents).

National Savings Bank Act 1971 (c. 29)

78

In section 12(3) (secrecy), for the words from “and of section 20(3)” to the end substitute “ and of Schedule 36 to the Finance Act 2008 (powers of officers of Revenue and Customs to obtain information and documents and inspect business premises) ”.

ICTA

79

ICTA is amended as follows.

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I78Sch. 36 para. 79 in force at 1.4.2009 by S.I. 2009/404, art. 2

F29180

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

81

Omit section 767C (change in company ownership: information).

F29282

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

FA 1990

83

In section 125 of FA 1990 (information for tax authorities in other member States)—

(a)

omit subsections (1) and (2),

F293(b)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F293(c)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F293(d)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

Social Security Administration Act 1992 (c. 5)

84

In section 110ZA of the Social Security Administration Act 1992 (Class 1, 1A, 1B or 2 contributions: powers to call for documents etc), for subsections (1) and (2) substitute—

“(1)

Schedule 36 to the Finance Act 2008 (information and inspection powers) applies for the purpose of checking a person's position as regards relevant contributions as it applies for the purpose of checking a person's tax position, subject to the modifications in subsection (2).

(2)

That Schedule applies as if—

(a)

references to any provision of the Taxes Acts were to any provision of this Act or the Contributions and Benefits Act relating to relevant contributions,

(b)

references to prejudice to the assessment or collection of tax were to prejudice to the assessment of liability for, and payment of, relevant contributions,

(c)

the reference to information relating to the conduct of a pending appeal relating to tax were a reference to information relating to the conduct of a pending appeal relating to relevant contributions, and

(d)

paragraphs 21, 35(4)(b), 36 and 37(2) of that Schedule (restrictions on giving taxpayer notice where taxpayer has made tax return) were omitted.”

Social Security Administration (Northern Ireland) Act 1992 (c. 8)

85

In section 104ZA of the Social Security Administration (Northern Ireland) Act 1992 (Class 1, 1A, 1B or 2 contributions: powers to call for documents etc), for subsections (1) and (2) substitute—

“(1)

Schedule 36 to the Finance Act 2008 (information and inspection powers) applies for the purpose of checking a person's position as regards relevant contributions as it applies for the purpose of checking a person's tax position, subject to the modifications in subsection (2).

(2)

That Schedule applies as if—

(a)

references to any provision of the Taxes Acts were to any provision of this Act or the Contributions and Benefits Act relating to relevant contributions,

(b)

references to prejudice to the assessment or collection of tax were to prejudice to the assessment of liability for, and payment of, relevant contributions,

(c)

the reference to information relating to the conduct of a pending appeal relating to tax were a reference to information relating to the conduct of a pending appeal relating to relevant contributions, and

(d)

paragraphs 21, 35(4)(b), 36 and 37(2) of that Schedule (restrictions on giving taxpayer notice where taxpayer has made tax return) were omitted.”

F(No.2)A 1992

86

Omit section 28(1) to (3) (powers of inspection).

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I83Sch. 36 para. 86 in force at 1.4.2009 by S.I. 2009/404, art. 2

VATA 1994

87

(1)

Schedule 11 to VATA 1994 is amended as follows.

(2)

In paragraph 7 (furnishing information and producing documents), omit sub-paragraphs (2) to (9).

(3)

In paragraph 10 (entry and search of premises and persons), omit sub-paragraphs (1) to (2A).

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I84Sch. 36 para. 87 in force at 1.4.2009 by S.I. 2009/404, art. 2

FA 1998

88

In Schedule 18 to FA 1998 (company tax returns), omit paragraphs 27, 28 and 29 (notice to produce documents etc. for purposes of enquiry into company tax return, power to appeal against such notices and penalty for failure to produce documents etc).

FA 1999

89

In section 13(5) (gold), omit paragraph (c).

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I86Sch. 36 para. 89 in force at 1.4.2009 by S.I. 2009/404, art. 2

Tax Credits Act 2002 (c. 21)

90

In section 25 of the Tax Credits Act 2002 (payments of working tax credit by employers), omit subsections (3) and (4).

FA 2006

91

Omit section 174 of FA 2006 (international tax enforcement arrangements: information powers).

Other repeals

92

In consequence of the preceding provisions of this Part of this Schedule, omit the following—

(a)

section 126 of FA 1988,

(b)

sections 142(2), (3), (4), (6)(a), (7), (8) and (9) and 144(3), (5) and (7) of FA 1989,

(c)

sections 187 and 255 of, and paragraph 29 of Schedule 19 to, FA 1994,

(d)

paragraph 6 of Schedule 1 to the Civil Evidence Act 1995 (c. 38),

(e)

paragraph 17 of Schedule 3, paragraph 3 of Schedule 19 and paragraph 2 of Schedule 22 to FA 1996,

(f)

section 115 of, and paragraphs 36 and 42(6) and (7) of Schedule 19 to, FA 1998,

(g)

section 15(3) of FA 1999,

(h)

paragraphs 21 and 38(4) of Schedule 29 to FA 2001,

(i)

section 20 of FA 2006, and

(j)

paragraph 350 of Schedule 1 to ITA 2007.

SCHEDULE 37Record-keeping

Section 115

TMA 1970

1

TMA 1970 is amended as follows.

2

(1)

Section 12B (records to be kept for purposes of income tax and capital gains tax returns) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (2)—

(a)

in paragraph (b), for “in any other case” substitute “ otherwise ”, and

(b)

after that paragraph insert— “ or (in either case) such earlier day as may be specified in writing by the Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs (and different days may be specified for different cases). ”

(3)

In subsection (3), omit paragraph (b) and the “and” before it.

(4)

After that subsection insert—

“(3A)

The Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs may by regulations—

(a)

provide that the records required to be kept and preserved under this section include, or do not include, records specified in the regulations, and

(b)

provide that those records include supporting documents so specified.”

(5)

For subsection (4) substitute—

“(4)

The duty under subsection (1) or (2A) to preserve records may be discharged—

(a)

by preserving them in any form and by any means, or

(b)

by preserving the information contained in them in any form and by any means,

subject to subsection (4A) and any conditions or further exceptions specified in writing by the Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs.”

(6)

In subsection (4A), for “The records which fall within this subsection are” substitute “ Subsection (4)(b) does not apply in the case of the following kinds of records ”.

(7)

After subsection (5B) insert—

“(5C)

Regulations under this section may—

(a)

make different provision for different cases, and

(b)

make provision by reference to things specified in a notice published by the Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs in accordance with the regulations (and not withdrawn by a subsequent notice).”

3

(1)

Paragraph 2A of Schedule 1A (records to be kept for the purposes of claims) is amended as follows.

(2)

After sub-paragraph (2) insert—

“(2A)

The Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs may by regulations—

(a)

provide that the records required to be kept and preserved under sub-paragraph (1) include, or do not include, records specified in the regulations, and

(b)

provide that those records include supporting documents so specified.”

(3)

For sub-paragraph (3) substitute—

“(3)

The duty under sub-paragraph (1) to preserve records may be discharged—

(a)

by preserving them in any form and by any means, or

(b)

by preserving the information contained in them in any form and by any means,

subject to sub-paragraph (3A) and any conditions or further exceptions specified in writing by the Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs.

(3A)

Sub-paragraph (3)(b) does not apply in the case of records of the kinds specified in section 12B(4A) or paragraph 22(3) of Schedule 18 to the Finance Act 1998.”

(4)

Insert at the end—

“(6)

Regulations under this paragraph may—

(a)

make different provision for different cases, and

(b)

make provision by reference to things specified in a notice published by the Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs in accordance with the regulations (and not withdrawn by a subsequent notice).

(7)

In this paragraph “supporting documents” includes accounts, books, deeds, contracts, vouchers and receipts.”

VATA 1994

4

Schedule 11 to VATA 1994 (administration, collection and enforcement) is amended as follows.

5

(1)

Paragraph 6 (duty to keep records) is amended as follows.

(2)

In sub-paragraph (3), for “require”, in the second place, substitute “ specify in writing (and different periods may be specified for different cases) ”.

(3)

For sub-paragraphs (4) to (6) substitute—

“(4)

The duty under this paragraph to preserve records may be discharged—

(a)

by preserving them in any form and by any means, or

(b)

by preserving the information contained in them in any form and by any means,

subject to any conditions or exceptions specified in writing by the Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs.”

6

In paragraph 6A(7) (application of provisions of paragraph 6 where directions under paragraph 6A require records to be kept)—

(a)

for “Sub-paragraphs (4) to (6) of paragraph 6 (preservation of information by means approved by the Commissioners) apply” substitute “ Sub-paragraph (4) of paragraph 6 (preservation of information) applies ”, and

(b)

for “they apply” substitute “ it applies ”.

FA 1998

7

Schedule 18 to FA 1998 (company tax returns) is amended as follows.

8

(1)

Paragraph 21 (duty to keep and preserve records) is amended as follows.

(2)

In sub-paragraph (2), for the words from “for six years” to the end substitute “ until the end of the relevant day. ”

(3)

After that sub-paragraph insert—

“(2A)

In this paragraph “relevant day” means—

(a)

the sixth anniversary of the end of the period for which the company may be required to deliver a company tax return, or

(b)

such earlier day as may be specified in writing by the Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs (and different days may be specified for different cases).”

(4)

In sub-paragraph (3), for “that six year period” substitute “ the relevant day ”.

(5)

In sub-paragraph (4), for “that six year period” substitute “ the relevant day ”.

(6)

After sub-paragraph (5) insert—

“(5A)

The Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs may by regulations—

(a)

provide that the records required to be kept and preserved under this paragraph include, or do not include, records specified in the regulations, and

(b)

provide that those records include supporting documents so specified.

(5B)

Regulations under this paragraph may—

(a)

make different provision for different cases, and

(b)

make provision by reference to things specified in a notice published by the Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs in accordance with the regulations (and not withdrawn by a subsequent notice).”

(7)

In sub-paragraph (6), omit the first sentence.

9

(1)

Paragraph 22 (preservation of information instead of original records) is amended as follows.

(2)

For sub-paragraph (1) substitute—

“(1)

The duty under paragraph 21 to preserve records may be discharged—

(a)

by preserving them in any form and by any means, or

(b)

by preserving the information contained in them in any form and by any means,

subject to sub-paragraph (3) and any conditions or exceptions specified in writing by the Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs.”

(3)

Omit sub-paragraph (2).

(4)

In sub-paragraph (3), for “The records excluded from sub-paragraph (1) are” substitute “ Sub-paragraph (1)(b) does not apply in the case of the following kinds of records ”.

(5)

Accordingly, in the heading before that paragraph, for “instead of original records” substitute etc.

Consequential provisions

10

In section 13(6) of FA 1999 (VAT and gold)—

(a)

for “(6)” substitute “ (4) ”,

(b)

after “above” insert “ , and to records kept in pursuance of such regulations, ”, and

(c)

insert at the end “ and to records kept in pursuance of that paragraph ”.

11

In consequence of the amendments made by paragraph 2 omit—

(a)

section 105(4)(b) of FA 1995, and

(b)

section 124(2) and (6) of FA 1996.

SCHEDULE 38Disclosure of tax avoidance schemes

Section 116

Amendments of Part 7 of FA 2004

1

Part 7 of FA 2004 (disclosure of tax avoidance schemes) is amended as follows.

2

(1)

Section 308 (duties of promoter) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1)—

(a)

for “The promoter” substitute “ A person who is a promoter in relation to a notifiable proposal ”, and

(b)

for “any” substitute “ the ”.

(3)

In subsection (2)(a), for “a” substitute “ the ”.

(4)

In subsection (3)—

(a)

for “The promoter” substitute “ A person who is a promoter in relation to notifiable arrangements ”, and

(b)

for “any notifiable” substitute “ the notifiable ”.

(5)

For subsection (4) substitute—

“(4)

Subsection (4A) applies where a person complies with subsection (1) in relation to a notifiable proposal for arrangements and another person is—

(a)

also a promoter in relation to the notifiable proposal or is a promoter in relation to a notifiable proposal for arrangements which are substantially the same as the proposed arrangements (whether they relate to the same or different parties), or

(b)

a promoter in relation to notifiable arrangements implementing the notifiable proposal or notifiable arrangements which are substantially the same as notifiable arrangements implementing the notifiable proposal (whether they relate to the same or different parties).

(4A)

Any duty of the other person under subsection (1) or (3) in relation to the notifiable proposal or notifiable arrangements is discharged if—

(a)

the person who complied with subsection (1) has notified the identity and address of the other person to HMRC or the other person holds the reference number allocated to the proposed notifiable arrangements under section 311, and

(b)

the other person holds the information provided to HMRC in compliance with subsection (1).

(4B)

Subsection (4C) applies where a person complies with subsection (3) in relation to notifiable arrangements and another person is—

(a)

a promoter in relation to a notifiable proposal for arrangements which are substantially the same as the notifiable arrangements (whether they relate to the same or different parties), or

(b)

also a promoter in relation to the notifiable arrangements or notifiable arrangements which are substantially the same (whether they relate to the same or different parties).

(4C)

Any duty of the other person under subsection (1) or (3) in relation to the notifiable proposal or notifiable arrangements is discharged if—

(a)

the person who complied with subsection (3) has notified the identity and address of the other person to HMRC or the other person holds the reference number allocated to the notifiable arrangements under section 311, and

(b)

the other person holds the information provided to HMRC in compliance with subsection (3).”

3

In section 311(1) (arrangements to be given reference number)—

(a)

after “complies” insert “ or purports to comply ”,

(b)

omit “may within 30 days”,

(c)

before “allocate” insert “ may within 30 days ”, and

(d)

for “notify the person of that number” substitute“must notify that number to the person and (where the person is one who has complied or purported to comply with section 308(1) or (3)) to any other person—

(i)

who is a promoter in relation to the notifiable proposal (or arrangements implementing the notifiable proposal) or the notifiable arrangements (or proposal implemented by the notifiable arrangements), and

(ii)

whose identity and address has been notified to HMRC by the person.”

4

For section 312 substitute—

“312Duty of promoter to notify client of number

(1)

This section applies where a person who is a promoter in relation to notifiable arrangements is providing (or has provided) services to any person (“the client”) in connection with the notifiable arrangements.

(2)

The promoter must, within 30 days after the relevant date, provide the client with prescribed information relating to any reference number (or, if more than one, any one reference number) that has been notified to the promoter (whether by HMRC or any other person) in relation to—

(a)

the notifiable arrangements, or

(b)

any arrangements substantially the same as the notifiable arrangements (whether involving the same or different parties).

(3)

In subsection (2) “the relevant date” means the later of—

(a)

the date on which the promoter becomes aware of any transaction which forms part of the notifiable arrangements, and

(b)

the date on which the reference number is notified to the promoter.

(4)

But where the conditions in subsection (5) are met the duty imposed on the promoter under subsection (2) to provide the client with information in relation to notifiable arrangements is discharged.

(5)

Those conditions are that —

(a)

the promoter is also a promoter in relation to a notifiable proposal and provides services to the client in connection with them both,

(b)

the notifiable proposal and the notifiable arrangements are substantially the same, and

(c)

the promoter has provided to the client, in a form and manner specified by HMRC, prescribed information relating to the reference number that has been notified to the promoter in relation to the proposed notifiable arrangements.

(6)

HMRC may give notice that, in relation to notifiable arrangements specified in the notice, promoters are not under the duty under subsection (2) after the date specified in the notice.

312ADuty of client to notify parties of number

(1)

This section applies where a person (a “client”) to whom a person who is a promoter in relation to notifiable arrangements or a notifiable proposal is providing (or has provided) services in connection with the notifiable arrangements or notifiable proposal receives prescribed information relating to the reference number allocated to the notifiable arrangements or proposed notifiable arrangements.

(2)

The client must, within the prescribed period, provide prescribed information relating to the reference number to any other person—

(a)

who the client might reasonably be expected to know is or is likely to be a party to the arrangements or proposed arrangements, and

(b)

who might reasonably be expected to gain a tax advantage in relation to any relevant tax by reason of the arrangements or proposed arrangements.

(3)

For the purposes of subsection (1) a tax is a “relevant tax” in relation to arrangements or arrangements proposed in a proposal of any description if it is prescribed in relation to arrangements or proposals of that description by regulations under section 306.

(4)

HMRC may give notice that, in relation to notifiable arrangements or a notifiable proposal specified in the notice, persons are not under the duty under subsection (2) after the date specified in the notice.

(5)

The duty under subsection (2) does not apply in prescribed circumstances.”

5

(1)

Section 313 (duty of parties to notifiable arrangements to notify HMRC of number etc) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1)(a), omit “under section 311 by the Board or under section 312 by the promoter”.

(3)

In subsection (3)—

(a)

for “under subsection (1)” substitute “ made by HMRC,

(b)

in paragraph (a), for “number and other information” substitute “ information prescribed under subsection (1) ”, and

(c)

in paragraph (b), for “number and other information” substitute “ information prescribed under subsection (1) and such other information as is prescribed ”.

(4)

Insert at the end—

“(5)

HMRC may give notice that, in relation to notifiable arrangements specified in the notice, persons are not under the duty under subsection (1) after the date specified in the notice.”

6

For section 316 substitute—

“316Information to be provided in form and manner specified by HMRC

(1)

HMRC may specify the form and manner in which information required to be provided by any of the information provisions must be provided if the provision is to be complied with.

(2)

The “information provisions” are sections 308(1) and (3), 309(1), 310, 312(2), 312A(2) and 313(1) and (3).”

Amendments of TMA 1970

7

(1)

Section 98C of TMA 1970 (penalties for failure to comply with duties under Part 7 of FA 2004) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (2)—

(a)

in paragraph (d), for “312(1)” substitute “ 312(2) ”, and

(b)

after that paragraph (but before the “and”) insert—

“(da)

section 312A(2) (duty of client to notify parties of reference number),”.

(3)

In subsection (3)—

(a)

for “section 313(1)” substitute “ subsection (1) of section 313 ”, and

(b)

after “etc.)” insert “ or regulations under subsection (3) of that section ”.

(4)

In subsection (4), for “313(1)” (in both places) substitute “ subsection (1) of section 313 or regulations under subsection (3) of that section ”.

SCHEDULE 39Time limits for assessments, claims etc.

Section 118

TMA 1970

1

TMA 1970 is amended as follows.

2

In section 28C(5)(a) (time limit for determination of tax where no return delivered and self-assessment superseding determination), for “five years” substitute “ 3 years ”.

3

In section 29(4) (assessment where loss of tax discovered), for “is attributable to fraudulent or negligent conduct on the part of” substitute “ was brought about carelessly or deliberately by ”.

4

In section 30B(5) (amendment of partnership statement where loss of tax discovered), for “is attributable to fraudulent or negligent conduct on the part of” substitute “ was brought about carelessly or deliberately by ”.

5

In section 33(1) (claim for error or mistake), for “not later than five years after the 31st January next following” substitute “ not more than 4 years after the end of ”.

6

In section 33A(2) (error or mistake in partnership return), for “not later than 31st January of Year 6” substitute “ not more than 4 years after the end of the year of assessment in question, or in which the relevant period ends, ”.

7

(1)

Section 34 (ordinary time limit for assessments) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for “not later than five years after the 31st January next following” substitute “ not more than 4 years after the end of ”.

(3)

Accordingly, in the heading, for “six years” substitute 4 years.

8

In section 35 (time limit: income received after year for which it is assessable), for “within six years after” substitute “ not more than 4 years after the end of ”.

9

(1)

Section 36 (fraudulent or negligent conduct) is amended as follows.

(2)

For subsection (1) substitute—

“(1)

An assessment on a person in a case involving a loss of income tax or capital gains tax brought about carelessly by the person may be made at any time not more than 6 years after the end of the year of assessment to which it relates (subject to subsection (1A) and any other provision of the Taxes Acts allowing a longer period).

(1A)

An assessment on a person in a case involving a loss of income tax or capital gains tax —

(a)

brought about deliberately by the person,

(b)

attributable to a failure by the person to comply with an obligation under section 7, or

(c)

attributable to arrangements in respect of which the person has failed to comply with an obligation under section 309, 310 or 313 of the Finance Act 2004 (obligation of parties to tax avoidance schemes to provide information to Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs),

may be made at any time not more than 20 years after the end of the year of assessment to which it relates (subject to any provision of the Taxes Acts allowing a longer period).

(1B)

In subsections (1) and (1A) references to a loss brought about by the person who is the subject of the assessment include a loss brought about by another person acting on behalf of that person.”

(3)

In subsection (2)—

(a)

for “Where the person in default” substitute “ Where the person mentioned in subsection (1) or (1A) (“the person in default”) ”, and

(b)

for “subsection (1) above” substitute “ subsection (1A) or (1B) ”.

(4)

In subsection (3), after “(1)” insert “ or (1A) ”.

(5)

In subsection (4), for “subsection (1)” substitute “ subsections (1) and (1A) ”.

(6)

Accordingly, for the heading substitute Loss of tax brought about carelessly or deliberately etc.

10

In section 37A (effect of assessment where allowances transferred), for the words from “for the purpose” to “conduct” substitute “ in a case falling within section 36(1) or (1A) ”.

11

(1)

Section 40 (assessment on personal representatives) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for “beyond the end of the period of three years beginning with the 31st January next following” substitute “ more than 4 years after the end of ”.

(3)

In subsection (2)—

(a)

for the words from the beginning to “died” substitute “ In a case involving a loss of tax brought about carelessly or deliberately by a person who has died (or another person acting on that person's behalf before that person's death) ”, and

(b)

for “before the end of the period of three years beginning with the 31st January next following” substitute “ not more than 4 years after the end of ”.

12

In section 43(1) (time limit for making claims), for “five years after the 31st January next following” substitute “ 4 years after the end of ”.

13

In section 43A(1)(b) (further assessments: claims etc), for the words from “attributable” to the end substitute “ brought about carelessly or deliberately by that person or by someone acting on behalf of that person. ”

14

In section 43C(1)(b) (consequential claims etc), for “attributable to fraudulent or negligent conduct on the part of” substitute “ brought about carelessly or deliberately by ”.

15

In section 118 (interpretation) insert at the end—

“(5)

For the purposes of this Act a loss of tax or a situation is brought about carelessly by a person if the person fails to take reasonable care to avoid bringing about that loss or situation.

(6)

Where—

(a)

information is provided to Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs,

(b)

the person who provided the information, or the person on whose behalf the information was provided, discovers some time later that the information was inaccurate, and

(c)

that person fails to take reasonable steps to inform Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs,

any loss of tax or situation brought about by the inaccuracy shall be treated for the purposes of this Act as having been brought about carelessly by that person.

(7)

In this Act references to a loss of tax or a situation brought about deliberately by a person include a loss of tax or a situation that arises as a result of a deliberate inaccuracy in a document given to Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs by or on behalf of that person.”

ICTA

16

ICTA is amended as follows.

F29417

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F29518

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F29519

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F29520

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F29621

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F29722

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F29723

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F29824

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F29925

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

F30026

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

FA 1991

F30127

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

TCGA 1992

28

TCGA 1992 is amended as follows.

29

In section 203(2) (claims in respect of certain capital losses), for “6 years” substitute “ 4 years ”.

30

In section 253(4A) (claims for relief for loans to traders)—

(a)

in paragraph (a), for “on or before the fifth anniversary of the 31st January next following” substitute “ not more than 4 years after the end of ”, and

(b)

in paragraph (b), for “6 years” substitute “ 4 years ”.

31

In section 279(5) (claims in respect of delayed remittance of gain from disposal of foreign assets)—

(a)

in paragraph (a), for “at any time after the fifth anniversary of the 31st January next following” substitute “ more than 4 years after the end of ”, and

(b)

in paragraph (b), for “6 years” substitute “ 4 years ”.

VATA 1994

32

VATA 1994 is amended as follows.

33

In section 33A(4) (refunds of VAT to museums and galleries), for “3 years” substitute “ 4 years ”.

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I128Sch. 39 para. 33 in force at 1.4.2009 for the purposes of the amendment made by that paragraph by S.I. 2009/403, art. 2(1) (with art. 3)

34

(1)

Section 77 (assessments: time limits and supplementary assessments) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1)(a) and (b), for “3 years” substitute “ 4 years ”.

(3)

For subsection (4) substitute—

“(4)

In any case falling within subsection (4A), an assessment of a person (“P”), or of an amount payable by P, may be made at any time not more than 20 years after the end of the prescribed accounting period or the importation, acquisition or event giving rise to the penalty, as appropriate (subject to subsection (5)).

(4A)

Those cases are—

(a)

a case involving a loss of VAT brought about deliberately by P (or by another person acting on P's behalf),

(b)

a case in which P has participated in a transaction knowing that it was part of arrangements of any kind (whether or not legally enforceable) intended to bring about a loss of VAT,

(c)

a case involving a loss of VAT attributable to a failure by P to comply with a notification obligation, and

(d)

a case involving a loss of VAT attributable to a scheme in respect of which P has failed to comply with an obligation under paragraph 6 of Schedule 11A.

(4B)

In subsection (4A) the references to a loss of tax brought about deliberately by P or another person include a loss that arises as a result of a deliberate inaccuracy in a document given to Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs by that person.

(4C)

In subsection (4A)(c) “notification obligation” means an obligation under—

(a)

paragraph 5, 6, 7 or 14(2) or (3) of Schedule 1,

(b)

paragraph 3 of Schedule 2,

(c)

paragraph 3 or 8(2) of Schedule 3,

(d)

paragraph 3, 4 or 7(2) or (3) of Schedule 3A, or

(e)

regulations under paragraph 2(4) of Schedule 11.”

(4)

In subsection (5)—

(a)

in paragraph (a), for “3 years” substitute “ 4 years ”, and

(b)

omit paragraph (b) and the “and” before it.

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I129Sch. 39 para. 34 in force at 1.4.2009 for the purposes of the amendments made by that paragraph by S.I. 2009/403, art. 2(1) (with arts. 4, 9)

35

In section 78(11) (interest in certain cases of official error), for “three years” substitute “ 4 years ”.

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I130Sch. 39 para. 35 in force at 1.4.2009 for the purposes of the amendment made by that paragraph by S.I. 2009/403, art. 2(1) (with art. 5)

36

In section 80(4) (credit for, or repayment of, overstated or overpaid VAT), for “3 years” substitute “ 4 years ”.

Annotations:
Commencement Information

I131Sch. 39 para. 36 in force at 1.4.2009 for the purposes of the amendment made by that paragraph by S.I. 2009/403, art. 2(1) (with art. 6)

FA 1998

37

Schedule 18 to FA 1998 (company tax returns) is amended as follows.

38

In paragraph 36(5) (determination of tax payable if no return delivered), for “five years” substitute “ 3 years ”.

39

In paragraph 37(4) (determination of tax payable if notice complied with in part), for “five years” substitute “ 3 years ”.

40

In paragraph 40(3) (time limit for self-assessment superseding determination), for “five years” substitute “ 3 years ”.

41

(1)

Paragraph 43 (fraudulent or negligent conduct) is amended as follows.

(2)

For “is attributable to fraudulent or negligent conduct on the part of” substitute “ was brought about carelessly or deliberately by ”.

(3)

Accordingly, for the heading before the paragraph substitute Loss of tax brought about carelessly or deliberately.

42

(1)

Paragraph 46 (general time limits for assessments) is amended as follows.

(2)

In sub-paragraph (1), for “six years” substitute “ 4 years ”.

(3)

For sub-paragraph (2) substitute—

“(2)

An assessment in a case involving a loss of tax brought about carelessly by the company (or a related person) may be made at any time not more than 6 years after the end of the accounting period to which it relates (subject to sub-paragraph (2A) and to any other provision of the Taxes Acts allowing a longer period).

(2A)

An assessment in a case involving a loss of tax—

(a)

brought about deliberately by the company (or a related person),

(b)

attributable to a failure by the company to comply with an obligation under paragraph 2, or

(c)

attributable to arrangements in respect of which the company has failed to comply with an obligation under section 309, 310 or 313 of the Finance Act 2004 (obligation of parties to tax avoidance schemes to provide information to Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs),

may be made at any time not more than 20 years after the end of the accounting period to which it relates (subject to any provision of the Taxes Acts allowing a longer period).

(2B)

In this paragraph “related person”, in relation to a company, means—

(a)

a person acting on behalf of the company, or

(b)

a person who was a partner of the company at the relevant time.”

43

In paragraph 51(1)(c) (relief in case of mistake in return), for “six years” substitute “ 4 years ”.

44

(1)

Paragraph 53 (time limit for recovery of excessive payments etc) is amended as follows.

(2)

In sub-paragraph (1), for “six year” substitute “ 4 year ”.

(3)

In sub-paragraph (2), for “paragraph 46(2) (time limit for assessment in case of fraud or negligence)” substitute “ paragraph 46(2) and (2A) (time limit for assessment in case of loss of tax brought about carelessly or deliberately) ”.

45

In paragraph 55 (general time limit for making claims), for “six years” substitute “ 4 years ”.

46

In paragraph 61(2) (consequential claims etc arising out of certain Revenue amendments or assessments), for “fraudulent or negligent conduct on the part of” substitute “ a loss of tax brought about carelessly or deliberately by ”.

47

(1)

Paragraph 65 (consequential claims) is amended as follows.

(2)

In sub-paragraph (1), for “fraudulent or negligent conduct on the part of” substitute “ a loss of tax brought about carelessly or deliberately by ”.

(3)

Accordingly, in the heading before the paragraph, for “fraud or negligence” substitute loss of tax brought about carelessly or deliberately.

FA 2002

F30248

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

ITEPA 2003

49

In section 711(2) (notice requiring officer of Revenue and Customs to give notice requiring tax return), for “5 years” substitute “ 3 years ”.

ITTOIA 2005

50

ITTOIA 2005 is amended as follows.

51

In section 301(3) (claims for repayment of tax payable in connection with sale with right to reconveyance), for “6 years” substitute “ 4 years ”.

52

In section 302(3) (claims for repayment of tax payable in connection with sale and leaseback transactions), for “6 years” substitute “ 4 years ”.

53

In section 840A(1) (claims for relief for backdated pensions charged on arising basis) (inserted by Schedule 7 to this Act), for “on or before the fifth anniversary of the normal self-assessment filing date for” substitute “ not more than 4 years after the end of ”.

ITA 2007

54

ITA 2007 is amended as follows.

55

In section 40(1)(a) (election for transfer of blind person's allowance), for “on or before the fifth anniversary of the normal self-assessment filing date for” substitute “ not more than 4 years after the end of ”.

56

In section 46(6)(b) (marriages and civil partnerships on or after 5 December 2005: election specifying person entitled to relief), for “on or before the fifth anniversary of the normal self-assessment filing date for” substitute “ not more than 4 years after the end of ”.

57

In section 53(4)(a) (notice in respect of transfer of unused relief), for “on or before the fifth anniversary of the normal self-assessment filing date for” substitute “ not more than 4 years after the end of ”.

58

In section 155 (claim for loss relief against miscellaneous income), in each of subsections (1) and (2), for “on or before the fifth anniversary of the normal self-assessment filing date for” substitute “ not more than 4 years after the end of ”.

59

(1)

Section 237 (EIS relief: time limits for assessments) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1)—

(a)

omit “not”, and

(b)

for “more than” substitute “ at any time not more than ”.

(3)

In subsection (3)—

(a)

for “36” substitute “ 36(1A) ”, and

(b)

for “(fraudulent or negligent conduct)” substitute “ (loss of tax brought about deliberately etc) ”.

60

In section 372 (withdrawal or reduction of community investment tax relief), insert at the end—

“(4)

An assessment under this paragraph may be made at any time not more than 6 years after the end of the tax year for which the relief was obtained.

(5)

Subsection (4) is without prejudice to section 36(1A) of TMA 1970 (loss of tax brought about deliberately etc).”

61

In section 668(7) (claim for relief for unremittable transfer proceeds), for “on or before the fifth anniversary of the normal self-assessment filing date for” substitute “ not more than 4 years after the end of ”.

62

In section 669(4) (claim for relief for unremittable transfer proceeds: section 630 profits), for “on or before the fifth anniversary of the normal self-assessment filing date for” substitute “ not more than 4 years after the end of ”.

Consequential amendments

63

In section 178(3) of FA 1993 (stop-loss and quota share insurance)—

(a)

in paragraph (a), for “six years” substitute “ 4 years ”, and

(b)

in paragraph (b), for “fraudulent or negligent conduct” substitute “ loss of tax brought about carelessly or deliberately ”.

64

In section 225(3)(b) of FA 1994 (stop-loss and quota share insurance), for “fraudulent or negligent conduct” substitute “ loss of tax brought about carelessly or deliberately ”.

65

In consequence of the preceding provisions of this Schedule, omit—

(a)

section 149(4)(a)(i) and (ii) of FA 1989,

(b)

paragraphs 4 and 6 of Schedule 21 to FA 1996,

(c)

section 47(10) of FA 1997,

(d)

paragraph 18 of Schedule 19 to FA 1998, and

(e)

section 91(6)(b) of FA 2007.

Saving

F30366

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

SCHEDULE 40Penalties: amendments of Schedule 24 to FA 2007

Section 122

1

Schedule 24 to FA 2007 (penalties for errors) is amended as follows.

2

(1)

Paragraph 1 (error in taxpayer's document) is amended as follows.

(2)

In sub-paragraph (2)—

(a)

for “P's” substitute “ a ”, and

(b)

omit “by P”.

(3)

In sub-paragraph (3), for “careless or deliberate (within the meaning of paragraph 3)” substitute “ careless (within the meaning of paragraph 3) or deliberate on P's part ”.

(4)

In the Table, after the entry relating to income tax and capital gains tax: accounts in connection with a partnership return insert—

“Income tax

Return under section 254 of FA 2004.”

(5)

In the Table, after the entries relating to VAT insert—

“Insurance premium tax

Return under regulations under section 54 of FA 1994.

Insurance premium tax

Return, statement or declaration in connection with a claim.

Inheritance tax

Account under section 216 or 217 of IHTA 1984.

Inheritance tax

Information or document under regulations under section 256 of IHTA 1984.

Inheritance tax

Statement or declaration in connection with a deduction, exemption or relief.

Stamp duty land tax

Return under section 76 of FA 2003.

Stamp duty reserve tax

Return under regulations under section 98 of FA 1986.

Petroleum revenue tax

Return under paragraph 2 of Schedule 2 to the Oil Taxation Act 1975.

Petroleum revenue tax

Statement or declaration in connection with a claim under Schedule 5, 6, 7 or 8 to the Oil Taxation Act 1975.

Petroleum revenue tax

Statement under section 1(1)(a) of the Petroleum Revenue Tax Act 1980.

Aggregates levy

Return under regulations under section 25 of FA 2001.

Climate change levy

Return under regulations under paragraph 41 of Schedule 6 to FA 2000.

Landfill tax

Return under regulations under section 49 of FA 1996.

Air passenger duty

Return under section 38 of FA 1994.

Alcoholic liquor duties

Return under regulations under section 13, 49, 56 or 62 of the Alcoholic Liquor Duties Act 1979.

Alcoholic liquor duties

Statement or declaration in connection with a claim for repayment of duty under section 4(4) of FA 1995.

Tobacco products duty

Return under regulations under section 7 of the Tobacco Products Duties Act 1979.

Hydrocarbon oil duties

Return under regulations under section 21 of the Hydrocarbon Oil Duties Act 1979.

Excise duties

Return under regulations under section 93 of CEMA 1979.

Excise duties

Return under regulations under section 100G or 100H of CEMA 1979.

Excise duties

Statement or declaration in connection with a claim.

General betting duty

Return under regulations under paragraph 2 of Schedule 1 to BGDA 1981.

Pool betting duty

Return under regulations under paragraph 2A of Schedule 1 to BGDA 1981.

Bingo duty

Return under regulations under paragraph 9 of Schedule 3 to BGDA 1981.

Lottery duty

Return under regulations under section 28(2) of FA 1993.

Gaming duty

Return under directions under paragraph 10 of Schedule 1 to FA 1997.

Remote gaming duty

Return under regulations under section 26K of BGDA 1981.”

(6)

In the Table, in the last entry, in column 1, for “Income tax, capital gains tax, corporation tax or VAT” substitute “ Any of the taxes mentioned above ”.

(7)

Insert at the end—

“(5)

In relation to a return under paragraph 2 of Schedule 2 to the Oil Taxation Act 1975, references in this Schedule to P include any person who, after the giving of the return for a taxable field (within the meaning of that Act), becomes the responsible person for the field (within the meaning of that Act).”

3

After that paragraph insert—

“Error in taxpayer's document attributable to another person

1A

(1)

A penalty is payable by a person (T) where—

(a)

another person (P) gives HMRC a document of a kind listed in the Table in paragraph 1,

(b)

the document contains a relevant inaccuracy, and

(c)

the inaccuracy was attributable to T deliberately supplying false information to P (whether directly or indirectly), or to T deliberately withholding information from P, with the intention of the document containing the inaccuracy.

(2)

A “relevant inaccuracy” is an inaccuracy which amounts to, or leads to—

(a)

an understatement of a liability to tax,

(b)

a false or inflated statement of a loss, or

(c)

a false or inflated claim to repayment of tax.

(3)

A penalty is payable under this paragraph in respect of an inaccuracy whether or not P is liable to a penalty under paragraph 1 in respect of the same inaccuracy.”

4

(1)

Paragraph 2 (under-assessment by HMRC) is amended as follows.

(2)

In sub-paragraph (1), for “tax” substitute “ a relevant tax ”.

(3)

For sub-paragraph (3) substitute—

“(3)

In sub-paragraph (1) “relevant tax” means any tax mentioned in the Table in paragraph 1.”

5

(1)

Paragraph 3 (degrees of culpability) is amended as follows

(2)

In sub-paragraph (1)—

(a)

for “Inaccuracy in” substitute “ For the purposes of a penalty under paragraph 1, inaccuracy in ”, and

(b)

after “is deliberate” (in both places) insert “ on P's part ”.

(3)

In sub-paragraph (2), after “deliberate” insert “ on P's part ”.

6

In paragraph 4 (standard amount), after sub-paragraph (1) insert—

“(1A)

The penalty payable under paragraph 1A is 100% of the potential lost revenue.”

7

In paragraph 5(1) (potential lost revenue: normal rule), after “document” insert “ (including an inaccuracy attributable to a supply of false information or withholding of information) ”.

8

(1)

Paragraph 6 (potential lost revenue: multiple errors) is amended as follows.

(2)

In sub-paragraphs (1) and (2), after “penalty” insert “ under paragraph 1 ”.

(3)

In sub-paragraph (5), after “calculating” insert “ for the purposes of a penalty under paragraph 1 ”.

9

(1)

Paragraph 9 (reductions for disclosure) is amended as follows.

(2)

Before sub-paragraph (1) insert—

“A1

Paragraph 10 provides for reductions in penalties under paragraphs 1, 1A and 2 where a person discloses an inaccuracy, a supply of false information or withholding of information, or a failure to disclose an under-assessment.”

(3)

In sub-paragraph (1)—

(a)

after “an inaccuracy” insert “ , a supply of false information or withholding of information, ”, and

(b)

in paragraphs (b) and (c), for “or” substitute “ , the inaccuracy attributable to the supply or false information or withholding of information, or the ”.

(4)

In sub-paragraph (2)(a), for “or under-assessment” substitute “ , the supply of false information or withholding of information, or the under-assessment ”.

10

In paragraph 11(1) (special reduction), after “1” insert “ , 1A ”.

11

(1)

Paragraph 12 (interaction with other penalties) is amended as follows.

(2)

In sub-paragraph (2), for the words after “other penalty” substitute “ incurred by P, or any surcharge for late payment of tax imposed on P, if the amount of the penalty or surcharge is determined by reference to the same tax liability. ”

(3)

After sub-paragraph (3) insert—

“(4)

Where penalties are imposed under paragraphs 1 and 1A in respect of the same inaccuracy, the aggregate of the amounts of the penalties must not exceed 100% of the potential lost revenue.”

(4)

In the heading before paragraph 12, insert at the end and late payment surcharges.

12

(1)

Paragraph 13 (assessment) is amended as follows.

(2)

In sub-paragraph (1)—

(a)

for “Where P” substitute “ Where a person ”,

(b)

after “1” insert “ , 1A ”, and

(c)

for “notify P” substitute “ notify the person ”.

(3)

After that sub-paragraph insert—

“(1A)

A penalty under paragraph 1, 1A or 2 must be paid before the end of the period of 30 days beginning with the day on which notification of the penalty is issued.”

(4)

In sub-paragraph (3)—

(a)

after “1” insert “ or 1A ”,

(b)

for “within the” substitute “ before the end of the ”, and

(c)

after “no assessment” insert “ to the tax concerned ”.

(5)

In sub-paragraph (4), for the words after “made” substitute“before the end of the period of 12 months beginning with—

(a)

the end of the appeal period for the assessment of tax which corrected the understatement, or

(b)

if there is no assessment within paragraph (a), the date on which the understatement is corrected.”

13

In paragraph 15 (right of appeal)—

(a)

for “P may” (in each place) substitute “ A person may ”, and

(b)

for “by P” (in each place) substitute “ by the person ”.

F30414

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

15

In paragraph 18(3) (agency), after “penalty” insert “ under paragraph 1 or 2 ”.

16

(1)

Paragraph 19 (companies: officers' liability) is amended as follows.

(2)

In sub-paragraph (1), for the words from “of the company” to “as they” substitute “ of the company, the officer is liable to pay such portion of the penalty (which may be 100%) as HMRC.

(3)

For sub-paragraph (5) substitute—

“(5)

Where HMRC have specified a portion of a penalty in a notice given to an officer under sub-paragraph (1)—

(a)

paragraph 11 applies to the specified portion as to a penalty,

(b)

the officer must pay the specified portion before the end of the period of 30 days beginning with the day on which the notice is given,

(c)

paragraph 13(2), (3) and (5) apply as if the notice were an assessment of a penalty,

(d)

a further notice may be given in respect of a portion of any additional amount assessed in a supplementary assessment in respect of the penalty under paragraph 13(6),

(e)

paragraphs 15(1) and (2), 16 and 17(1) to (3) and (6) apply as if HMRC had decided that a penalty of the amount of the specified portion is payable by the officer, and

(f)

paragraph 21 applies as if the officer were liable to a penalty.”

17

In paragraph 21 (double jeopardy)—

(a)

for “P is” substitute “ A person is ”,

(b)

after “1” insert “ , 1A ”, and

(c)

for “P has” substitute “ the person has ”.

18

In paragraph 22 (interpretation: introduction), for “26” substitute “ 27 ”.

19

After paragraph 23 insert—

“23A

“Tax”, without more, includes duty.”

20

(1)

Paragraph 28 (interpretation) is amended as follows.

(2)

In paragraph (c) (meaning of “direct tax”), omit “and” after paragraph (ii) and after paragraph (iii) insert“and

(iv)

petroleum revenue tax,”.

F305(3)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

(4)

In paragraph (f), insert at the end “ against tax or to a payment of a corporation tax credit ”.

(5)

After that paragraph insert—

“(fa)

corporation tax credit” means—

(i)

an R&D tax credit under Schedule 20 to FA 2000,

(ii)

a land remediation tax credit or life assurance company tax credit under Schedule 22 to FA 2001,

(iii)

a tax credit under Schedule 13 to FA 2002 (vaccine research etc),

(iv)

a film tax credit under Schedule 5 to FA 2006, or

(v)

a first-year tax credit under Schedule A1 to CAA 2001,”.

21

In consequence of this Schedule the following provisions are omitted—

(a)

paragraphs 8 and 9 of Schedule 2 to OTA 1975,

(b)

in section 1(3B) of the Petroleum Revenue Tax Act 1980, “, 8 and 9”,

(c)

in IHTA 1984—

(i)

section 247(1) and (2),

(ii)

in section 248, in subsection (1), “account,” and “delivered,” (in both places) and, in subsection (2), “under section 247 above”, and

(iii)

section 250(2),

(d)

in FA 1994—

(i)

section 8, and

(ii)

paragraphs 12 and 13 of Schedule 7,

(e)

paragraphs 18 to 20 of Schedule 5 to FA 1996,

(f)

paragraphs 83ZA(4) and (5), 83F, 83L, 83R and 83X of Schedule 18 to FA 1998,

(g)

section 108(2)(a) of FA 1999,

(h)

paragraphs 98 to 100 of Schedule 6 to FA 2000,

(i)

in Schedule 6 to FA 2001, paragraphs 7 to 9, and in paragraph 9A(5), paragraph (b) and the “or” before it,

(j)

section 133(2) to (4) of FA 2002,

(k)

in FA 2003—

(i)

section 192(8), and

(ii)

paragraph 8 of Schedule 10 to FA 2003, and

(l)

section 295(4)(a) of FA 2004.

SCHEDULE 41Penalties: failure to notify and certain VAT and excise wrongdoing

Section 123

Failure to notify etc

1

A penalty is payable by a person (P) where P fails to comply with an obligation specified in the Table below (a “relevant obligation”).

Tax to which obligation relates

Obligation

Income tax and capital gains tax

Obligation under section 7 of TMA 1970 (obligation to give notice of liability to income tax or capital gains tax).

Corporation tax

Obligation under paragraph 2 of Schedule 18 to FA 1998 (obligation to give notice of chargeability to corporation tax).

F306Diverted profits tax

Obligation under section 92 of FA 2015 (duty to notify if within scope of diverted profits tax).

Value added tax

Obligations under paragraphs 5, 6, 7 and 14(2) and (3) of Schedule 1 to VATA 1994 (obligations to notify liability to register and notify material change in nature of supplies made by person exempted from registration).

F307Value added tax

Obligations under paragraphs 5, 6 and 13(3) of Schedule 1A to VATA 1994 (obligations to notify liability to register and notify material change in nature of supplies made by person exempted from registration).

Value added tax

Obligation under paragraph 3 of Schedule 2 to VATA 1994 (obligation to notify liability to register).

Value added tax

Obligations under paragraphs 3 and 8(2) of Schedule 3 to VATA 1994 (obligations to notify liability to register and notify acquisition affecting exemption from registration).

Value added tax

Obligations under paragraphs 3, 4 and 7(2) and (3) of Schedule 3A to VATA 1994 (obligations to notify liability to register and notify relevant change in supplies made by person exempted from registration).

Value added tax

Obligation under regulations under paragraph 2(4) of Schedule 11 to VATA 1994 (obligation to give notification of acquisition of goods from another member State).

Insurance premium tax

Obligations under section 53(1) and (2) of FA 1994 (obligations to register in respect of receipt of premiums in course of taxable business and notify intended receipt of premiums in course of taxable business).

Insurance premium tax

Obligations under section 53AA(1) and (3) of FA 1994 (obligations to register as taxable intermediary and notify intention to charge taxable intermediary's fees).

F308Soft drinks industry levy

Obligation under section 44 of FA 2017 (obligation to give notice of liability to be registered).

Aggregates levy

Obligations under section 24(2) of, and paragraph 1 of Schedule 4 to, FA 2001 (obligations to register in respect of carrying out of taxable activities and notify intention of carrying out such activities).

Climate change levy

Obligations under paragraphs 53 and 55 of Schedule 6 to FA 2000 (obligations to register in respect of taxable supplies and notify intention to make, or have made, taxable supply).

Landfill tax

Obligations under F309section 47(2), (3) and (3A) of FA 1996 (obligations to register in respect of carrying out of taxable activities and notify intention of carrying out such activities).

Air passenger duty

Obligation under section 33(4) F310or 33A(4) of FA 1994 (obligation to give notice of liability to register to operate chargeable aircraft).

Alcohol liquor duties

Obligation to be authorised and registered to obtain and use duty stamps under regulations under paragraph 4 of Schedule 2A to ALDA 1979 (duty stamps).

Alcohol liquor duties

Obligations under sections 12(1), 47(1), 54(2), 55(2) and 62(2) of ALDA 1979 (obligations to hold licence to manufacture spirits, register to brew beer, hold licence to produce wine or made-wine and register to make cider).

Alcohol liquor duties

Obligation to have plant and processes approved for the manufacture of spirits under regulations under section 15(6) of ALDA 1979 (distillers' warehouses).

Tobacco products duty

Obligation to manufacture tobacco products only on premises registered under regulations under section 7 of TPDA 1979 (management of tobacco products duty).

Hydrocarbon oil duties

Obligation to make entry of premises intended to be used for production of oil under regulations under section 21 of HODA 1979 (administration and enforcement).

Excise duties

Obligation to receive, deposit or hold duty suspended excise goods only in premises approved under regulations under section 92 of CEMA 1979 (approval of warehouses).

Excise duties

Obligation to receive duty suspended excise goods only if approved or registered (or approved and registered) as a F311Registered Consignee under regulations under section 100G or 100H of CEMA 1979 (registered excise dealers and shippers etc).

Excise duties

Obligation to receive, deposit or hold duty suspended excise goods only if approved or registered (or approved and registered) as a registered owner, a duty representative, a registered mobile operator or a fiscal representative of a registered mobile operator or an authorised warehousekeeper under regulations under section 100G or 100H of CEMA 1979 (registered excise dealers and shippers etc).

F312Excise duties

Obligation to dispatch excise goods under duty suspension arrangements upon their release for free circulation in accordance with Article 79 of Council Regulation 2913/92/EEC only if approved and registered (or approved and registered) as a Registered Consignor under regulations under section 100G or 100H of CEMA 1979 (registered excise dealers and shippers etc).

F313General betting duty

Obligation to register under section 164(2) of FA 2014 (registration of persons liable etc for general betting duty).

Pool betting duty

Obligation to register under section 164(2) of FA 2014 (registration of persons liable etc for pool betting duty).

Bingo duty

Obligations under paragraph 10(1) and (1A) of Schedule 3 to BGDA 1981 (obligation to notify and register in respect of bingo-promotion).

Lottery duty

Obligation under section 29(1) of FA 1993 (obligation to register in respect of promotion of lotteries).

Gaming duty

Obligations under paragraphs 3 and 6 of Schedule 1 to FA 1997 (obligations to register in respect of gaming and to notify premises).

F314Remote gaming duty

Obligation to register under section 164(2) of FA 2014 (registration of persons liable etc for remote gaming duty).

F315Machine games duty

Obligation under paragraph 20(3) of Schedule 24 to FA 2012 (obligation to register in respect of premises).

F316. . .

F316. . .

Issue of invoice showing VAT by unauthorised person

2

(1)

A penalty is payable by a person (P) where P makes an unauthorised issue of an invoice showing VAT.

(2)

P makes an unauthorised issue of an invoice showing VAT if P—

(a)

is an unauthorised person, and

(b)

issues an invoice showing an amount as being value added tax or as including an amount attributable to value added tax.

(3)

In sub-paragraph (2)(a) “an unauthorised person” means anyone other than—

(a)

a person registered under VATA 1994,

(b)

a body corporate treated for the purposes of section 43 of that Act as a member of a group,

(c)

a person treated as a taxable person under regulations under section 46(4) of that Act,

(d)

a person authorised to issue an invoice under regulations under paragraph 2(12) of Schedule 11 to that Act, or

(e)

a person acting on behalf of the Crown.

(4)

This paragraph has effect in relation to any invoice which—

(a)

for the purposes of any provision made under subsection (3) of section 54 of VATA 1994 shows an amount as included in the consideration for any supply, and

(b)

either fails to comply with the requirements of any regulations under that section or is issued by a person who is not for the time being authorised to do so for the purposes of that section,

as if the person issuing the invoice were an unauthorised person and that amount were shown on the invoice as an amount attributable to value added tax.

Putting product to use that attracts higher duty

3

(1)

A penalty is payable by a person (“P”) where P does an act which enables HMRC to assess an amount as duty due from P under any of the provisions in the Table below (a “relevant excise provision”).

Provision under which assessment may be made

Subject-matter of provision

ALDA 1979 section 8(4)

Spirits for use for medical or scientific purposes.

ALDA 1979 section 10(4)

Spirits for use in art or manufacture.

ALDA 1979 section 11(3)

Imported goods not for human consumption containing spirits.

HODA 1979 section 10(3)

Duty-free oil.

HODA 1979 section 13(1A)

Rebated heavy oil.

HODA 1979 section 13AB(1)(a) or (2)(a)

Kerosene.

HODA 1979 section 13AD(2)

Kerosene.

HODA 1979 section 13ZB(1)

Heating oil etc.

HODA 1979 section 14(4)

Light oil for use as furnace oil.

HODA 1979 section 14D(1)

Rebated biodiesel or bioblend.

HODA 1979 section 14F(2)

Rebated heavy oil or bioblend.

F317HODA 1979 section 20AAD(5)

Mixtures containing aqua methanol.

HODA 1979 section 23(1B)

Road fuel gas on which no duty paid.

HODA 1979 section 24(4A)

Duty-free and rebated oil.

(2)

A penalty is payable by a person (“P”) where P supplies a product knowing that it will be used in a way which enables HMRC to assess an amount as duty due from another person under a relevant excise provision.

F318Involvement in landfill disposal by unregistered person

3A

A penalty is payable by a person (“P”) where P does an act which enables HMRC to assess an amount as landfill tax due from P under section 50A of FA 1996.

Handling goods subject to unpaid excise duty F319etc

4

(1)

A penalty is payable by a person (P) where—

(a)

after the excise duty point for any goods which are chargeable with a duty of excise, P acquires possession of the goods or is concerned in carrying, removing, depositing, keeping or otherwise dealing with the goods, and

(b)

at the time when P acquires possession of the goods or is so concerned, a payment of duty on the goods is outstanding and has not been deferred.

F320(1A)

A penalty is payable by a person (P) where—

(a)

after a charge to soft drinks industry levy has arisen in respect of chargeable soft drinks, P acquires possession of them or is concerned with carrying, removing, depositing, keeping or otherwise dealing with them, and

(b)

at the time when P acquires possession of the chargeable soft drinks or is so concerned, a payment of soft drinks industry levy in respect of the chargeable soft drinks is due or payable and has not been paid.

(2)

In F321this paragraph

excise duty point” has the meaning given by section 1 of F(No.2)A 1992, and

goods” has the meaning given by section 1(1) of CEMA 1979.

F322chargeable soft drinks” has the same meaning as in Part 2 of FA 2017.

Degrees of culpability

5

(1)

A failure by P to comply with a relevant obligation is—

(a)

“deliberate and concealed” if the failure is deliberate and P makes arrangements to conceal the situation giving rise to the obligation, and

(b)

“deliberate but not concealed” if the failure is deliberate but P does not make arrangements to conceal the situation giving rise to the obligation.

(2)

The making by P of an unauthorised issue of an invoice showing VAT is—

(a)

“deliberate and concealed” if it is done deliberately and P makes arrangements to conceal it, and

(b)

“deliberate but not concealed” if it is done deliberately but P does not make arrangements to conceal it.

(3)

The doing by P of an act which enables HMRC to assess an amount of duty as due from P under a relevant excise provision F323, or to assess an amount of landfill tax as due from P under section 50A of FA 1996, is—

(a)

“deliberate and concealed” if it is done deliberately and P makes arrangements to conceal it, and

(b)

“deliberate but not concealed” if it is done deliberately but P does not make arrangements to conceal it.

(4)

P's acquiring possession of, or being concerned in dealing with, goods on which a payment of duty is outstanding and has not been deferred F324or (as the case may be) chargeable soft drinks in respect of which a payment of soft drinks industry levy is due and payable and has not been paid is—

(a)

“deliberate and concealed” if it is done deliberately and P makes arrangements to conceal it, and

(b)

“deliberate but not concealed” if it is done deliberately but P does not make arrangements to conceal it.

Amount of penalty: standard amount

F3256

(1)

This paragraph sets out the penalty payable under paragraph 1.

(2)

If the failure is in category 1, the penalty is—

(a)

for a deliberate and concealed failure, 100% of the potential lost revenue,

(b)

for a deliberate but not concealed failure, 70% of the potential lost revenue, and

(c)

for any other case, 30% of the potential lost revenue.

(3)

If the failure is in category 2, the penalty is—

(a)

for a deliberate and concealed failure, 150% of the potential lost revenue,

(b)

for a deliberate but not concealed failure, 105% of the potential lost revenue, and

(c)

for any other case, 45% of the potential lost revenue.

(4)

If the failure is in category 3, the penalty is—

(a)

for a deliberate and concealed failure, 200% of the potential lost revenue,

(b)

for a deliberate but not concealed failure, 140% of the potential lost revenue, and

(c)

for any other case, 60% of the potential lost revenue.

(5)

Paragraph 6A explains the 3 categories of failure.

6A

(1)

A failure is in category 1 if—

(a)

it involves a domestic matter, or

(b)

it involves an offshore matter and—

(i)

the territory in question is a category 1 territory, or

(ii)

the tax at stake is a tax other than income tax or capital gains tax.

(2)

A failure is in category 2 if—

(a)

it involves an offshore matter F326or an offshore transfer,

(b)

the territory in question is a category 2 territory, and

(c)

the tax at stake is income tax or capital gains tax.

(3)

A failure is in category 3 if—

(a)

it involves an offshore matter F327or an offshore transfer,

(b)

the territory in question is a category 3 territory, and

(c)

the tax at stake is income tax or capital gains tax.

(4)

A failure “involves an offshore matter” if it results in a potential loss of revenue that is charged on or by reference to—

(a)

income arising from a source in a territory outside the UK,

(b)

assets situated or held in a territory outside the UK,

(c)

activities carried on wholly or mainly in a territory outside the UK, or

(d)

anything having effect as if it were income, assets or activities of a kind described above.

F328(4A)

A failure “involves an offshore transfer” if—

(a)

it does not involve an offshore matter,

(b)

it is deliberate (whether or not concealed) and results in a potential loss of revenue,

(c)

the tax at stake is income tax or capital gains tax, and

(d)

the applicable condition in paragraph 6AA is satisfied.

(5)

A failure “involves a domestic matter” if it results in a potential loss of revenue F329and does not involve either an offshore matter or an offshore transfer.

(6)

If a single failure is in more than one category (each referred to as a “relevant category”)—

(a)

it is to be treated for the purposes of this Schedule as if it were separate failures, one in each relevant category according to the matters F330or transfers that it involves, and

(b)

the potential lost revenue in respect of each separate failure is taken to be such share of the potential lost revenue in respect of the single failure (see paragraphs 7 and 11) as is just and reasonable.

(7)

For the purposes of this Schedule—

(a)

paragraph 21A of Schedule 24 to FA 2007 (classification of territories) has effect, but

(b)

an order under that paragraph does not apply to relevant obligations that are to be complied with by a date before the date on which the order comes into force.

F331(8)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

(9)

In this paragraph F332and paragraph 6AA

assets” has the meaning given in section 21(1) of TCGA 1992, but also includes sterling;

UK” means the United Kingdom, including the territorial sea of the United Kingdom.

F3336AA

(1)

This paragraph makes provision in relation to offshore transfers.

(2)

Where the tax at stake is income tax, the applicable condition is satisfied if the income on or by reference to which the tax is charged, or any part of the income—

(a)

is received in a territory outside the UK, or

(b)

is transferred before the calculation date to a territory outside the UK.

(3)

Where the tax at stake is capital gains tax, the applicable condition is satisfied if the proceeds of the disposal on or by reference to which the tax is charged, or any part of the proceeds—

(a)

are received in a territory outside the UK, or

(b)

are transferred before the calculation date to a territory outside the UK.

(4)

In the case of a transfer falling within sub-paragraph (2)(b) or (3)(b), references to the income or proceeds transferred are to be read as including references to any assets derived from or representing the income or proceeds.

(5)

In relation to an offshore transfer, the territory in question for the purposes of paragraph 6A is the highest category of territory by virtue of which the failure involves an offshore transfer.

(6)

In this paragraph “calculation date” means the date by reference to which the potential lost revenue is to be calculated (see paragraph 7).

F3336AB

Regulations under paragraph 21B of Schedule 24 to FA 2007 (location of assets etc) apply for the purposes of paragraphs 6A and 6AA of this Schedule as they apply for the purposes of paragraphs 4A and 4AA of that Schedule.

6B

The penalty payable under any of paragraphs 2, 3(1) and 4 is—

(a)

for a deliberate and concealed act or failure, 100% of the potential lost revenue,

(b)

for a deliberate but not concealed act or failure, 70% of the potential lost revenue, and

(c)

for any other case, 30% of the potential lost revenue.

6C

The penalty payable under paragraph 3(2) is 100% of the potential lost revenue.

F3346CA

(1)

The penalty payable under paragraph 3A is—

(a)

for a deliberate and concealed act or failure, 100% of the potential lost revenue, and

(b)

for a deliberate but not concealed act or failure, 70% of the potential lost revenue.

(2)

No penalty is payable under paragraph 3A in any other case.

6D

Paragraphs 7 to 11 define “potential lost revenue”.

Potential lost revenue

7

(1)

“The potential lost revenue” in respect of a failure to comply with a relevant obligation is as follows.

F335(1A)

In the case of an obligation under section 7 of TMA 1970 which arises by virtue of subsection (1B) of that section, the potential lost revenue is so much of any income tax or capital gains tax to which P is liable in respect of the tax year in question as is, by reason of the failure to comply with the obligation—

(a)

where the period specified in subsection (1C)(b)(ii) of that section applies and ends after the relevant date, unpaid at the end of that period, or

(b)

in any other case, unpaid on the relevant date.

(1B)

For the purposes of sub-paragraph (1A) the relevant date is—

(a)

31 January following the tax year, or

(b)

if, after that date, HMRC refund a payment on account in respect of the tax year to P, the day after the refund is issued.

(2)

In the case of a relevant obligation relating to income tax or capital gains tax and a tax year F336 (not falling within sub-paragraph (1A)), the potential lost revenue is so much of any income tax or capital gains tax to which P is liable in respect of the tax year as by reason of the failure is unpaid on 31 January following the tax year.

(3)

In the case of a relevant obligation relating to corporation tax and an accounting period, the potential lost revenue is (subject to sub-paragraph (4)) so much of any corporation tax to which P is liable in respect of the accounting period as by reason of the failure is unpaid 12 months after the end of the accounting period.

(4)

In computing the amount of that tax no account shall be taken of any relief under F337section 458 of CTA 2010 (relief in respect of repayment etc of loan) which is deferred under F338subsection (5) of that section.

F339(4A)

In the case of a relevant obligation relating to diverted profits tax, the potential lost revenue is the amount of diverted profits tax for which P would be liable at the end of the period of 6 months beginning immediately after the accounting period assuming—

(a)

a charge to diverted profits tax had been imposed on P on the taxable diverted profits arising to P for the accounting period, and

(b)

that tax was required to be paid before the end of that period of 6 months.

(5)

In any case where the failure is a failure to comply with the obligation under paragraph 2(4) of Schedule 11 to VATA 1994, the potential lost revenue is the value added tax on the acquisition to which the failure relates.

(6)

In the case of any other relevant obligation relating to value added tax, the potential lost revenue is the amount of the value added tax (if any) for which P is, or but for any exemption from registration would be, liable for the relevant period (see sub-paragraph (7)), but subject to sub-paragraph (8).

(7)

The relevant period” is—

(a)

in relation to a failure to comply with paragraph 14(2) or (3) of Schedule 1 to VATA 1994, paragraph 8(2) of Schedule 3 to that Act or paragraph 7(2) or (3) of Schedule 3A to that Act, the period beginning on the date of the change or alteration concerned and ending on the date on which HMRC received notification of, or otherwise became fully aware of, that change or alteration, and

(b)

in relation to a failure to comply with an obligation under any other provision, the period beginning on the date with effect from which P is required in accordance with that provision to be registered and ending on the date on which HMRC received notification of, or otherwise became fully aware of, P's liability to be registered.

(8)

But the amount mentioned in sub-paragraph (6) is reduced—

(a)

if the amount of the tax mentioned in that sub-paragraph includes tax on an acquisition of goods from another member State, by the amount of any VAT which HMRC are satisfied has been paid on the supply in pursuance of which the goods were acquired under the law of that member State, and

(b)

if the amount of that tax includes tax chargeable by virtue of section 7(4) of VATA 1994 on a supply, by the amount of any VAT which HMRC are satisfied has been paid on that supply under the law of another member State.

F340(8A)

In the case of a relevant obligation under section 47 of FA 1996 (which relates to landfill tax), the potential lost revenue is the amount of tax (if any) for which P is liable for the period—

(a)

beginning with the date with effect from which P is required in accordance with that section to be registered or (as the case may be) from which the Commissioners may register P under that section, and

(b)

ending with the day on which HMRC received notification of, or otherwise became fully aware of, P's liability to be registered or (as the case may be) the Commissioners' power to register P.

(9)

In the case of a relevant obligation under any provision relating to insurance premium tax, aggregates levy, climate change levy F341... or air passenger duty, the potential lost revenue is the amount of the tax (if any) for which P is liable for the period—

(a)

beginning on the date with effect from which P is required in accordance with that provision to be registered, and

(b)

ending on the date on which HMRC received notification of, or otherwise became fully aware of, P's liability to be registered.

(10)

In the case of a failure to comply with a relevant obligation relating to any other tax, the potential lost revenue is the amount of any tax which is unpaid by reason of the failure.

8

In the case of the making of an unauthorised issue of an invoice showing VAT, the potential lost revenue is the amount shown on the invoice as value added tax or the amount to be taken as representing value added tax.

9

In the case of—

(a)

the doing of an act which enables HMRC to assess an amount of duty as due under a relevant excise provision, or

(b)

supplying a product knowing that it will be used in a way which enables HMRC to assess an amount as duty due from another person under a relevant excise provision,

the potential lost revenue is the amount of the duty which may be assessed as due.

F3429A

In the case of the doing of an act which enables HMRC to assess an amount of landfill tax as due under section 50A of FA 1996, the potential lost revenue is the amount of the tax which may be assessed as due.

10

In the case of acquiring possession of, or being concerned in dealing with, goods the payment of duty on which is outstanding and has not been deferred F343or (as the case may be) chargeable soft drinks in respect of which a payment of soft drinks industry levy is due and payable and has not been paid, the potential lost revenue is an amount equal to the amount of duty due on the goods.

11

(1)

In calculating potential lost revenue in respect of a relevant act or failure on the part of P no account is to be taken of the fact that a potential loss of revenue from P is or may be balanced by a potential over-payment by another person (except to the extent that an enactment requires or permits a person's tax liability to be adjusted by reference to P's).

(2)

In this Schedule “a relevant act or failure” means—

(a)

a failure to comply with a relevant obligation,

(b)

the making of an unauthorised issue of an invoice showing VAT,

(c)

the doing of an act which enables HMRC to assess an amount of duty as due under a relevant excise provision or supplying a product knowing that it will be used in a way which enables HMRC to assess an amount as duty due from another person under a relevant excise provision, or

(d)

acquiring possession of, or being concerned in dealing with, goods the payment of duty on which is outstanding and has not been deferred F344or (as the case may be) chargeable soft drinks in respect of which a payment of soft drinks industry levy is due and payable and has not been paid.

Reductions for disclosure

12

F345(1)

Paragraph 13 provides for reductions in penalties—

(a)

under paragraph 1 where P discloses a relevant failure that involves a domestic matter, and

(b)

under paragraphs 2 to 4 where P discloses a relevant act or failure.

(1A)

Paragraph 13A provides for reductions in penalties under paragraph 1 where P discloses a relevant failure that involves an offshore matter or an offshore transfer.

(1B)

Sub-paragraph (2) applies where P discloses—

(a)

a relevant failure that involves a domestic matter,

(b)

a non-deliberate relevant failure that involves an offshore matter, or

(c)

a relevant act or failure giving rise to a penalty under any of paragraphs 2 to 4.

(2)

P discloses F346the relevant act or failure by—

(a)

telling HMRC about it,

(b)

giving HMRC reasonable help in quantifying the tax unpaid by reason of it, and

(c)

allowing HMRC access to records for the purpose of checking how much tax is so unpaid.

F347(2A)

Sub-paragraph (2B) applies where P discloses—

(a)

a deliberate relevant failure (whether concealed or not) that involves an offshore matter, or

(b)

a relevant failure that involves an offshore transfer.

(2B)

P discloses the failure by—

(a)

telling HMRC about it,

(b)

giving HMRC reasonable help in quantifying the tax unpaid by reason of it,

(c)

allowing HMRC access to records for the purpose of checking how much tax is so unpaid, and

(d)

providing HMRC with additional information.

(2C)

The Treasury must make regulations setting out what is meant by “additional information” for the purposes of sub-paragraph (2B)(d).

(2D)

Regulations under sub-paragraph (2C) are to be made by statutory instrument.

(2E)

An instrument containing regulations under sub-paragraph (2C) is subject to annulment in pursuance of a resolution of the House of Commons.

(3)

Disclosure of a relevant act or failure—

(a)

is “unprompted” if made at a time when the person making it has no reason to believe that HMRC have discovered or are about to discover the relevant act or failure, and

(b)

otherwise, is “prompted”.

(4)

In relation to disclosure “quality” includes timing, nature and extent.

F348(5)

Paragraph 6A(4) to (5) applies to determine whether a failure involves an offshore matter, an offshore transfer or a domestic matter for the purposes of this paragraph.

(6)

In this paragraph “relevant failure” means a failure to comply with a relevant obligation.

F34913

(1)

If a person who would otherwise be liable to a penalty of a percentage shown in column 1 of the Table (a “standard percentage”) has made a disclosure, HMRC must reduce the standard percentage to one that reflects the quality of the disclosure.

(2)

But the standard percentage may not be reduced to a percentage that is below the minimum shown for it—

(a)

for a prompted disclosure, in column 2 of the Table, and

(b)

for an unprompted disclosure, in column 3 of the Table.

(3)

Where the Table shows a different minimum for case A and case B—

(a)

the case A minimum applies if—

(i)

the penalty is one under paragraph 1, and

(ii)

HMRC become aware of the failure less than 12 months after the time when the tax first becomes unpaid by reason of the failure, and

(b)

otherwise, the case B minimum applies.

F350Standard %

Minimum % for prompted disclosure

Minimum % for unprompted disclosure

30%

case A: 10%

case B: 20%

case A: 0%

case B: 10%

70%

35%

20%

100%

50%

30%

F35113A

(1)

If a person who would otherwise be liable to a penalty of a percentage shown in column 1 of the Table (a “standard percentage”) has made a disclosure, HMRC must reduce the standard percentage to one that reflects the quality of the disclosure.

(2)

But the standard percentage may not be reduced to a percentage that is below the minimum shown for it—

(a)

for a prompted disclosure, in column 2 of the Table, and

(b)

for an unprompted disclosure, in column 3 of the Table.

(3)

Where the Table shows a different minimum for case A and case B—

(a)

the case A minimum applies if HMRC becomes aware of the failure less than 12 months after the time when the tax first becomes unpaid by reason of the failure;

(b)

otherwise, the case B minimum applies.

Standard %

Minimum % for prompted disclosure

Minimum % for unprompted disclosure

30%

case A: 10%

case B: 20%

case A: 0%

case B: 10%

37.5%

case A: 12.5%

case B: 25%

case A: 0%

case B: 12.5%

45%

case A: 15%

case B: 30%

case A: 0%

case B:15%

60%

case A: 20%

case B: 40%

case A: 0%

case B: 20%

70%

45%

30%

87.5%

53.75%

35%

100%

60%

40%

105%

62.5%

40%

125%

72.5%

50%

140%

80%

50%

150%

85%

55%

200%

110%

70%

Special reduction

14

(1)

If HMRC think it right because of special circumstances, they may reduce a penalty under any of paragraphs 1 to 4.

(2)

In sub-paragraph (1) “special circumstances” does not include—

(a)

ability to pay, or

(b)

the fact that a potential loss of revenue from one taxpayer is balanced by a potential over-payment by another.

(3)

In sub-paragraph (1) the reference to reducing a penalty includes a reference to—

(a)

staying a penalty, and

(b)

agreeing a compromise in relation to proceedings for a penalty.

Interaction with other penalties and late payment surcharges

15

(1)

The amount of a penalty for which P is liable under any of paragraphs 1 to 4 shall be reduced by the amount of any other penalty incurred by P, or any surcharge for late payment of tax imposed on P, if the amount of the penalty or surcharge is determined by reference to the same tax liability.

F352(1A)

In sub-paragraph (1) “any other penalty” does not include a penalty under Part 4 of FA 2014 (penalty where corrective action not taken after follower notice etc) F353or Schedule 22 to FA 2016 (asset-based penalty).

(2)

If P is liable to a penalty under section 9 of FA 1994 in respect of a failure to comply with a relevant obligation, the amount of any penalty payable under paragraph 1 in respect of the failure is to be reduced by the amount of the penalty under that section.

(3)

Where penalties are imposed under paragraph 3(1) and (2) in respect of the same act or use, the aggregate of the amounts of the penalties must not exceed 100% of the potential lost revenue.

Assessment

16

(1)

Where P becomes liable for a penalty under any of paragraphs 1 to 4 HMRC shall—

(a)

assess the penalty,

(b)

notify P, and

(c)

state in the notice the period in respect of which the penalty is assessed.

(2)

A penalty under any of paragraphs 1 to 4 must be paid before the end of the period of 30 days beginning with the day on which notification of the penalty is issued.

(3)

An assessment—

(a)

shall be treated for procedural purposes in the same way as an assessment to tax (except in respect of a matter expressly provided for by this Act),

(b)

may be enforced as if it were an assessment to tax, and

(c)

may be combined with an assessment to tax.

(4)

An assessment of a penalty under any of paragraphs 1 to 4 must be made before the end of the period of 12 months beginning with—

(a)

the end of the appeal period for the assessment of tax unpaid by reason of the relevant act or failure in respect of which the penalty is imposed, or

(b)

if there is no such assessment, the date on which the amount of tax unpaid by reason of the relevant act or failure is ascertained.

(5)

In sub-paragraph (4)(a) “appeal period” means the period during which—

(a)

an appeal could be brought, or

(b)

an appeal that has been brought has not been determined or withdrawn.

(6)

Subject to sub-paragraph (4), a supplementary assessment may be made in respect of a penalty if an earlier assessment operated by reference to an underestimate of potential lost revenue.

(7)

The references in this paragraph to “an assessment to tax” are, in relation to a penalty under paragraph 2, a demand for recovery.

Appeal

17

(1)

P may appeal against a decision of HMRC that a penalty is payable by P.

(2)

P may appeal against a decision of HMRC as to the amount of a penalty payable by P.

F35418

(1)

An appeal shall be treated in the same way as an appeal against an assessment to the tax concerned (including by the application of any provision about bringing the appeal by notice to HMRC, about HMRC review of the decision or about determination of the appeal by the First-tier Tribunal or the Upper Tribunal).

(2)

F355Sub-paragraph (1) does not apply—

(a)

so as to require P to pay a penalty before an appeal against the assessment of the penalty is determined, or

(b)

in respect of any other matter expressly provided for by this Act.

19

(1)

On an appeal under paragraph 17(1) the F356tribunal may affirm or cancel HMRC's decision.

(2)

On an appeal under paragraph 17(2) the F356tribunal may—

(a)

affirm HMRC's decision, or

(b)

substitute for HMRC's decision another decision that HMRC had power to make.

(3)

If the F356tribunal substitutes its decision for HMRC's, the F357tribunal may rely on paragraph 14—

(a)

to the same extent as HMRC (which may mean applying the same percentage reduction as HMRC to a different starting point), or

(b)

to a different extent, but only if the F357tribunal thinks that HMRC's decision in respect of the application of paragraph 14 was flawed.

(4)

In sub-paragraph (3)(b) “flawed” means flawed when considered in the light of the principles applicable in proceedings for judicial review.

F358(5)

In this paragraph, “tribunal” means the First-tier Tribunal or Upper Tribunal (as appropriate by virtue of paragraph 18(1)).

Reasonable excuse

20

(1)

Liability to a penalty under any of paragraphs 1, 2, 3(1) and 4 does not arise in relation to an act or failure which is not deliberate if P satisfies HMRC or F359(on an appeal notified to the tribunal) the tribunal that there is a reasonable excuse for the act or failure.

(2)

For the purposes of sub-paragraph (1)—

(a)

an insufficiency of funds is not a reasonable excuse unless attributable to events outside P's control,

(b)

where P relies on any other person to do anything, that is not a reasonable excuse unless P took reasonable care to avoid the relevant act or failure, and

(c)

where P had a reasonable excuse for the relevant act or failure but the excuse has ceased, P is to be treated as having continued to have the excuse if the relevant act or failure is remedied without unreasonable delay after the excuse ceased.

Agency

21

(1)

In paragraph 1 the reference to a failure by P includes a failure by a person who acts on P's behalf; but P is not liable to a penalty in respect of any failure by P's agent where P satisfies HMRC or F360(on an appeal notified to the tribunal) the tribunal that P took reasonable care to avoid the failure.

(2)

In paragraph 2 the reference to the making by P of an unauthorised issue of an invoice showing VAT includes the making of such an unauthorised issue by a person who acts on P's behalf; but P is not liable to a penalty in respect of any action by P's agent where P satisfies HMRC or F360(on an appeal notified to the tribunal) the tribunal that P took reasonable care to avoid it.

(3)

In paragraph 3(1) the reference to the doing by P of an act which enables HMRC to assess an amount as duty due from P under a relevant excise provision includes the doing of such an act by a person who acts on P's behalf; but P is not liable to a penalty in respect of any action by P's agent where P satisfies HMRC or F360(on an appeal notified to the tribunal) the tribunal that P took reasonable care to avoid it.

(4)

In F361paragraph 4(1) the reference to P acquiring possession of, or being concerned in dealing with, goods the payment of duty on which is outstanding and has not been deferred includes a person who acts on P's behalf doing so; but P is not liable to a penalty in respect of any action by P's agent where P satisfies HMRC or F360(on an appeal notified to the tribunal) the tribunal that P took reasonable care to avoid it.

F362(5)

In paragraph 4(1A) the reference to P acquiring possession of, or being concerned in dealing with, chargeable soft drinks in respect of which a payment of soft drinks industry levy is payable but has not been paid includes a person who acts on P's behalf in doing so; but P is not liable to a penalty in respect of any action by P's agent where P satisfies HMRC or (on appeal) the First-tier Tribunal that P took reasonable care to avoid it.

Companies: officers' liability

22

(1)

Where a penalty under any of paragraphs 1, 2, 3(1) and 4 is payable by a company for a deliberate act or failure which was attributable to an officer of the company, the officer is liable to pay such portion of the penalty (which may be 100%) as HMRC may specify by written notice to the officer.

(2)

Sub-paragraph (1) does not allow HMRC to recover more than 100% of a penalty.

(3)

In the application of sub-paragraph (1) to a body corporate F363other than a limited liability partnershipofficer” means—

(a)

a director (including a shadow director within the meaning of section 251 of the Companies Act 2006 (c. 46)), F364...

F365(aa)

a manager, and

(b)

a secretary.

F366(3A)

In the application of sub-paragraph (1) to a limited liability partnership, “officer” means a member.

(4)

In the application of sub-paragraph (1) in any other case “officer” means—

(a)

a director,

(b)

a manager,

(c)

a secretary, and

(d)

any other person managing or purporting to manage any of the company's affairs.

(5)

Where HMRC have specified a portion of a penalty in a notice given to an officer under sub-paragraph (1)—

(a)

paragraph 14 applies to the specified portion as to a penalty,

(b)

the officer must pay the specified portion before the end of the period of 30 days beginning with the day on which the notice is given,

(c)

paragraph 16(3) to (5) and (7) apply as if the notice were an assessment of a penalty,

(d)

a further notice may be given in respect of a portion of any additional amount assessed in a supplementary assessment in respect of the penalty under paragraph 16(6),

(e)

paragraphs 17 to 19 apply as if HMRC had decided that a penalty of the amount of the specified portion is payable by the officer, and

(f)

paragraph 23 applies as if the officer were liable to a penalty.

F367(6)

In this paragraph “company” means any body corporate or unincorporated association, but does not include a partnership, a local authority or a local authority association.

Double jeopardy

23

P is not liable to a penalty under any of paragraphs 1 to 4 in respect of a failure or action in respect of which P has been convicted of an offence.

Interpretation

24

(1)

This paragraph applies for the construction of this Schedule

(2)

HMRC” means Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs.

(3)

“Tax”, without more, includes duty.

(4)

An expression used in relation to value added tax has the same meaning as in VATA 1994.

Consequential repeals

25

In consequence of this Schedule the following provisions are omitted—

(a)

in TMA 1970—

(i)

section 7(8), and

(ii)

in the table in section 98, in the second column, the entry relating to section 55 of FA 2004,

(b)

section 170A of CEMA 1979,

(c)

in ALDA 1979—

(i)

in section 47(5), “which shall be calculated by reference to the amount of duty charged on the beer produced”,

(ii)

in section 54(5), “which shall be calculated by reference to the amount of duty charged on the wine produced”,

(iii)

in section 55(6), “which shall be calculated by reference to the amount of duty charged on the made-wine produced”, and

(iv)

in section 62(4), “which shall be calculated by reference to the amount of duty charged on the cider made”,

(d)

in HODA 1979—

(i)

section 13AD(4)(a) and (b), and

(ii)

section 14F(4)(a) and (b),

(e)

in FA 1994—

(i)

section 33(6),

(ii)

paragraph 13 of Schedule 4, and

(iii)

paragraph 14 of Schedule 7,

(f)

section 67 of VATA 1994,

(g)

section 32 of FA 1995,

(h)

in FA 1996—

(i)

section 37, and

(ii)

paragraph 21(1), (2) and (4) of Schedule 5,

(i)

section 27(11) of FA 1997,

(j)

paragraph 2(3) and (4) of Schedule 18 to FA 1998,

(k)

in FA 2000—

(i)

section 136(2), and

(ii)

paragraph 55(2) to (6) of Schedule 6, and

(l)

paragraph 1(2) to (6) of Schedule 4 to FA 2001.

SCHEDULE 42Alcoholic liquor duties: decisions subject to review and appeal

Section 125

1

Schedule 5 to FA 1994 (customs and excise decisions subject to review and appeal) is amended as follows.

2

(1)

Sub-paragraph (1) of paragraph 3 (decisions under or for the purposes of ALDA 1979) is amended as follows.

F368(2)

. . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . .

(3)

After paragraph (k) insert—

“(ka)

any decision by the Commissioners as to whether or not to remit or repay duty under section 46 of the Alcoholic Liquor Duties Act 1979 (remission or repayment of duty on spoilt beer) or the amount of duty to be so remitted or repaid;”.

(4)

After paragraph (m) insert—

“(ma)

any decision by the Commissioners as to whether or not to remit or repay duty under section 61 of the Alcoholic Liquor Duties Act 1979 (remission or repayment of duty on spoilt wine or made-wine) or the amount of duty to be so remitted or repaid;

(mb)

any decision by the Commissioners as to whether or not to remit or repay duty under section 64 of the Alcoholic Liquor Duties Act 1979 (remission or repayment of duty on spoilt cider) or the amount of duty to be so remitted or repaid;”.

3

(1)

Sub-paragraph (2) of paragraph 3 (decisions under regulations under section 13 or 77 of ALDA 1979) is amended as follows.

(2)

After “a decision” insert“—

(a)

 ”.

(3)

Insert at the end“; or

(b)

as to whether or not a person is to be required to give security for the fulfilment of an obligation or as to the form or amount of, or the conditions of, any such security.”

4

After sub-paragraph (2) of paragraph 3 insert—

“(2A)

Any decision which is made under or for the purposes of any regulations under section 15 of the Alcoholic Liquor Duties Act 1979 (distillers' warehouses) and is a decision as to whether or not a person is to be required to give security for the fulfilment of an obligation or as to the form or amount of, or the conditions of, any such security.

(2B)

Any decision which is made under or for the purposes of section 41A or 47, or any regulations under section 49, of the Alcoholic Liquor Duties Act 1979 (regulation of the making of beer) and is a decision—

(a)

as to whether or not to register a person or premises under section 41A or 47;

(b)

as to the conditions subject to which a person is, or premises are, so registered;

(c)

as to the revocation of such a registration;

(d)

as to whether or not a person is to be required to give security for the fulfilment of an obligation or as to the form or amount of, or the conditions of, any such security; or

(e)

as to whether or not to restrict or prohibit the movement of beer from one place to another without payment of duty.”

5

(1)

Sub-paragraph (3) of paragraph 3 (decisions under section 55, and regulations under section 56, of ALDA 1979) is amended as follows.

(2)

For “section 55” substitute “ section 54 or 55 ”.

(3)

After “a decision” insert“—

(a)

 ”.

(4)

For “that section” substitute “ section 54 or 55 ”.

(5)

Insert at the end—

“(b)

as to whether or not a person is to be required to give security for the fulfilment of an obligation or as to the form or amount of, or the conditions of, any such security; or

(c)

as to the conditions subject to which, or the purposes for which, wine or made-wine may be moved from one place to another without payment of duty.”

6

After sub-paragraph (3) of paragraph 3 insert—

“(3A)

Any decision which is made under or for the purposes of section 62 of the Alcoholic Liquor Duties Act 1979 (regulation of the making of cider), or any regulations under that section, and is a decision—

(a)

as to whether or not to register, or to cancel the registration of, a maker of cider;

(b)

as to whether or not a person is to be required to give security for the fulfilment of an obligation or as to the form or amount of, or the conditions of, any such security; or

(c)

as to the conditions subject to which, or the purposes for which, cider may be moved from one place to another without payment of duty.”

7

After paragraph 9 insert—

“The Finance Act 1995

9ZA

Any decision by the Commissioners—

(a)

on a claim under section 4 of the Finance Act 1995 for repayment of duty (alcoholic ingredients relief); or

(b)

as to whether or not to remit duty under that section.”

SCHEDULE 43Taking control of goods etc: consequential provision

Section 129

Part 1Consequential provision: taking control of goods

TMA 1970

1

(1)

Section 61 of TMA 1970 (distraint by collection) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), omit the words from “(a) in England and Wales” to “in Northern Ireland,”.

(3)

Omit subsection (1A).

(4)

Insert at the end—

“(7)

This section extends only to Northern Ireland.”

Social Security Administration Act 1992 (c. 5)

2

In the Social Security Administration Act 1992, omit section 121A (recovery of contributions etc in England and Wales).

FA 1994

3

(1)

FA 1994 is amended as follows.

(2)

Omit section 10A (breaches of controlled goods agreements).

(3)

In Schedule 7 (insurance premium tax), omit paragraph 18A (breaches of controlled goods agreements).

VATA 1994

4

In VATA 1994, omit section 67A (breach of controlled goods agreement).

FA 1996

5

In Schedule 5 to FA 1996 (landfill tax), omit paragraph 23A (controlled goods agreements).

FA 1997

6

In section 51 of FA 1997 (enforcement by distress), omit subsection (A1).

FA 2000

7

In Schedule 6 to FA 2000 (climate change levy), omit paragraph 89A (controlled goods agreements).

FA 2001

8

In Schedule 5 to FA 2001 (aggregates levy: recovery and interest), omit paragraph 14A (controlled goods agreements).

FA 2003

9

In Schedule 12 to FA 2003 (stamp duty land tax: collection and recovery), omit paragraph 1A (recovery of tax in England and Wales).

Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007 (c. 15)

10

(1)

Schedule 12 of the Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007 (taking control of goods) is amended as follows.

(2)

Omit paragraph 14(5)(relevant premises where enforcement agent acting under section 121A of Social Security Administration Act 1992).

(3)

In paragraph 19(2) (powers to use reasonable force), for paragraphs (b) to (e) substitute—

“(b)

section 127 of the Finance Act 2008.”

Other repeals

11

In consequence of the preceding provisions of this Schedule, omit—

(a)

paragraph 8 of Schedule 5 to the Social Security Contributions (Transfer of Functions, etc.) Act 1999 (c. 2),

(b)

paragraph 6 of Schedule 11 to the Welfare Reform and Pensions Act 1999 (c. 30),

(c)

section 5(1) of the National Insurance Contributions and Statutory Payments Act 2004 (c. 3), and

(d)

paragraphs 33, 104(2), 114, 116(2), 119, 123, 126(2), 136, 140 and 147(2) of Schedule 13 to the Tribunals, Courts and Enforcement Act 2007 (c. 15).

Part 2Consequential provision: summary warrant

TMA 1970

12

In TMA 1970 omit—

(a)

section 63 (recovery of tax in Scotland), and

(b)

section 63A (sheriff officer's fees and outlays).

Debtors (Scotland) Act 1987 (c. 18)

13

(1)

In section 1 (time to pay directions)—

(a)

in subsection (5)(d), for “in respect of tax or as if it were tax” substitute “ under or by virtue of any enactment or under a contract settlement ”,

(b)

in subsection (5)(f), omit sub-paragraphs (i), (iii) and (iv), and

(c)

after subsection (8) insert—

“(8A)

In paragraph (d) of subsection (5) above, “contract settlement” means an agreement made in connection with any person's liability to make a payment to the Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs under or by virtue of any enactment.”

(2)

In section 5 (time to pay orders)—

(a)

in subsection (4)(d), for “in respect of tax or as if it were tax” substitute “ under or by virtue of any enactment or under a contract settlement ”,

(b)

in subsection (4)(f), omit sub-paragraphs (i), (iii) and (iv), and

(c)

after subsection (8) insert—

“(8A)

In paragraph (d) of subsection (4) above, “contract settlement” means an agreement made in connection with any person's liability to make a payment to the Commissioners for Her Majesty's Revenue and Customs under or by virtue of any enactment.”

(3)

In section 106 (interpretation), in the definition of “summary warrant”—

(a)

omit paragraph (cc),

(b)

in paragraph (d), for “any of the enactments” substitute “ the enactments (other than the Taxes Management Act 1970) ”, and

(c)

after that paragraph insert—

“(e)

section 128 of the Finance Act 2008.”

Social Security Administration Act 1992 (c. 5)

14

In the Social Security Administration Act 1992, omit section 121B (recovery of contributions etc in Scotland).

FA 1997

15

In FA 1997, omit section 52 (recovery of relevant tax in Scotland).

FA 2003

16

In Schedule 12 to FA 2003 (stamp duty land tax: collection and recovery), omit paragraph 3 (recovery of tax in Scotland).

SCHEDULE 44Certificates of debt: consequential provision

Section 138

TMA 1970

1

In section 70 of TMA 1970 (evidence), omit subsections (1) and (2).

OTA 1975

2

In the table in paragraph 2(1) of Schedule 2 to OTA 1975 (management and collection of petroleum revenue tax), omit the entries in respect of section 70(1) and (2) of TMA 1970.

IHTA 1984

3

In section 254 of IHTA 1984 (evidence), omit subsection (2).

Social Security Administration Act 1992 (c. 5)

4

In section 118 of the Social Security Administration Act 1992 (evidence of non-payment), omit subsections (1), (3) and (7).

FA 1994

5

In Schedule 7 to FA 1994 (insurance premium tax), in paragraph 29(1) (evidence by certificate)—

(a)

in paragraph (a), after “Act,” insert “ or ”, and

(b)

omit paragraph (c) (and the “or” before it).

VATA 1994

6

In Schedule 11 to VATA 1994 (administration, collection and enforcement of VAT), in paragraph 14(1) (evidence by certificate), omit paragraph (d) (and the “or” before it).

FA 1996

7

In Schedule 5 to FA 1996 (landfill tax), in paragraph 37(1) (evidence by certificate)—

(a)

in paragraph (a), after “Act,” insert “ or ”, and

(b)

omit paragraph (c) (and the “or” before it).

FA 2000

8

In Schedule 6 to FA 2000 (climate change levy), in paragraph 135(1) (evidence by certificate)—

(a)

in paragraph (a), after “levy,” insert “ or ”, and

(b)

omit paragraphs (c) and (d).

FA 2001

9

In Schedule 7 to FA 2001 (aggregates levy: information and evidence etc), in paragraph 12(1)—

(a)

in paragraph (a), after “registered,” insert “ or ”, and

(b)

omit paragraphs (c) and (d).

FA 2003

10

In Schedule 12 to FA 2003 (stamp duty land tax: collection and recovery of tax), omit paragraph 7 (evidence of unpaid debt) and the heading before it.

Other repeals

11

In consequence of the preceding provisions of this Schedule, omit—

(a)

paragraph 21 of Schedule 19 to FA 1994,

(b)

section 62(1) of the Social Security Act 1998 (c. 14),

(c)

paragraph 32 of Schedule 19 to FA 1998,

(d)

paragraph 7(2) and (6) of Schedule 5 to the Social Security (Transfer of Functions, etc.) Act 1999 (c. 2),

(e)

section 89(3) of FA 2001, and

(f)

paragraph 135(2) of Schedule 6 to ITEPA 2003.

SCHEDULE 45Vehicle excise duty: offence of using or keeping unlicensed vehicle

Section 145

Introductory

1

VERA 1994 is amended as follows.

Amendments of section 29

2

(1)

Section 29 (offence of using or keeping unlicensed vehicle) is amended as follows.

(2)

In subsection (1), for “on a public road a vehicle (not being an exempt vehicle)” substitute “ a vehicle ”.

(3)

After subsection (2) insert—

“(2A)

Subsection (1) does not apply to a vehicle if—

(a)

it is an exempt vehicle in respect of which regulations under this Act require a nil licence to be in force and a nil licence is in force in respect of the vehicle, or

(b)

it is an exempt vehicle that is not one in respect of which regulations under this Act require a nil licence to be in force.

(2B)

Subsection (1) does not apply to a vehicle if—

(a)

the vehicle is being neither used nor kept on a public road, and

(b)

the particulars and declaration required to be furnished and made by regulations under section 22(1D) have been furnished and made in accordance with the regulations and the terms of the declaration have at no time been breached.

(2C)

Subsection (1) does not apply to a vehicle if the vehicle is kept by a motor trader or vehicle tester at business premises.

(2D)

The Secretary of State may by regulations make provision amending this section for the purpose of providing further exceptions from subsection (1) (or varying or revoking any such further exceptions).

(2E)

A person accused of an offence under subsection (1) is not entitled to the benefit of an exception from subsection (1) conferred by or under this section unless evidence is adduced that is sufficient to raise an issue with respect to that exception; but where evidence is so adduced it is for the prosecution to prove beyond reasonable doubt that the exception does not apply.”

(4)

In subsection (3), for “in respect of the vehicle” substitute “ in respect of using or keeping the vehicle on a public road ”.

(5)

In subsection (7), for “kept (but not used)” substitute “ not being used ”.

Amendment of section 30

3

In section 30(2) (additional penalty for keeper of unlicensed vehicle), for “appropriate to the vehicle” substitute “ chargeable in respect of using or keeping the vehicle on a public road ”.

Amendments of Schedule 2A

4

Schedule 2A (immobilisation, removal and disposal of vehicles) is amended as follows.

5

(1)

Paragraph 1 (immobilisation) is amended as follows.

(2)

In sub-paragraph (1), for “on a public road” substitute “ in any place other than a place to which this Schedule does not apply ”.

(3)

After that sub-paragraph insert—

“(1A)

This Schedule does not apply to—

(a)

any place which is within the curtilage of, or in the vicinity of, a dwelling-house, mobile home or houseboat and which is normally enjoyed with it, or

(b)

any place which is within the curtilage of, or in the vicinity of, a building consisting entirely (apart from common parts) of two or more dwellings and which is normally enjoyed only by the occupiers of one or more of those dwellings.”

(4)

In sub-paragraph (2)—

(a)

after “direction may” insert “ enter the place and ”, and

(b)

omit “on the same or another public road”.

(5)

For sub-paragraph (6) substitute—

“(6)

The second requirement is that—

(a)

evidence that no offence under section 29(1) was being committed when the immobilisation device was fixed or the vehicle moved is produced in accordance with instructions specified in the immobilisation notice,

(b)

such sum as may be prescribed is paid in any manner specified in the immobilisation notice, or

(c)

any other prescribed conditions are fulfilled.

(6A)

The conditions prescribed under sub-paragraph (6)(c) may include a condition that any of the following declarations is made—

(a)

a declaration that an appropriate licence was in force for the vehicle at the time when the immobilisation device was fixed or the vehicle moved,

(b)

(unless the vehicle was stationary on a public road) a declaration that a relevant declaration was in force for the vehicle at that time, or

(c)

a declaration that at that time the vehicle was an exempt vehicle which was not one in respect of which regulations under this Act require a nil licence to be in force.”

(6)

Insert at the end—

“(9)

In sub-paragraph (6A)(a) “appropriate licence”, in relation to a vehicle, means—

(a)

a vehicle licence,

(b)

a trade licence which entitled the holder to keep the vehicle where it was stationary, or

(c)

a nil licence.

(10)

For the purposes of sub-paragraph (6A)(b)—

(a)

relevant declaration” means the declaration required to be made by regulations under section 22(1D), and

(b)

a relevant declaration is in force for a vehicle if the vehicle is neither used nor kept on a public road (except under a trade licence) and the declaration has been made, and the particulars required to be furnished by regulations under section 22(1D) have been furnished, in relation to the vehicle in accordance within the regulations within the immediately preceding period of 12 months.”

6

In paragraph 2(4) (offences connected with immobilisation), for paragraphs (a) and (b) substitute—

“(a)

a person makes a declaration described in paragraph 1(6A)(a), (b) or (c) with a view to securing the release of a vehicle from an immobilisation device purported to have been fixed in accordance with the regulations, and”.

7

(1)

Paragraph 3 (removal and disposal of vehicles) is amended as follows.

(2)

In sub-paragraph (1)(a)(i), for “on a public road” substitute “ in any place other than a place to which this Schedule does not apply ”.

(3)

In sub-paragraph (2), after “direction, may” insert “ enter the place and ”.

(4)

In sub-paragraph (7), for paragraphs (c) and (d) substitute—

“(c)

the production of evidence that no offence under section 29(1) was committed;

(d)

payment of a prescribed sum where such evidence is not produced;

(e)

the making of a declaration described in paragraph 1(6A)(a), (b) or (c).”

8

In paragraph 4(1) (offences as to securing possession of vehicles), for paragraphs (a) and (b) substitute—

“(a)

a person makes a declaration described in paragraph 1(6A)(a), (b) or (c) with a view to securing possession of a vehicle purported to have been delivered into the custody of a person in accordance with provision made under paragraph 3, and”.

SCHEDULE 46Government borrowing: alternative finance arrangements

Section 157

Introduction

1

In this Schedule “regulations” means regulations under section 157.

2

Paragraphs 3 to 14 do not limit the generality of the power conferred by section 157.

Alternative finance arrangements that are to be available

3

(1)

Regulations may make provision about the kind or kinds of alternative finance arrangements that are to be available for raising money.

(2)

That includes provision specifying, or about the specification of, available arrangements (or any aspect of available arrangements).

Terms, conditions and procedures

4

(1)

Regulations may make provision about—

(a)

the terms on which money is to be raised through alternative finance arrangements,

(b)

the conditions subject to which money is to be raised through alternative finance arrangements, and

(c)

the procedures for the raising of money through alternative finance arrangements.

(2)

That includes provision specifying, or about the specification of, terms, conditions or procedures.

Decisions to raise money through alternative finance arrangements

5

(1)

Regulations may make provision about decisions by the Treasury to raise money through alternative finance arrangements.

(2)

Regulations under this paragraph may, in particular, make provision about considerations that may be, must be, or must not be, taken into account in—

(a)

deciding the terms on which to raise money through alternative finance arrangements,

(b)

deciding whether or not to raise money through alternative finance arrangements, or

(c)

deciding what amount of money to raise through alternative finance arrangements.

Involvement of persons other than the Treasury

6

(1)

Regulations may make provision about the involvement of persons other than the Treasury in the raising of money through alternative finance arrangements.

(2)

Regulations under this paragraph may, in particular, make provision for the Treasury to enter into arrangements with other persons.

Ancillary arrangements

7

(1)

Regulations may make provision about ancillary arrangements.

(2)

Regulations under this paragraph may, in particular, make provision about the terms or conditions of ancillary arrangements (including terms or conditions about payments).

(3)

That includes provision specifying, or about the specification of, terms or conditions.

(4)

In this paragraph “ancillary arrangements” means arrangements that are connected with the raising of money through alternative finance arrangements (including arrangements to facilitate or enable money to be raised through alternative finance arrangements).

Property

8

(1)

Regulations may make provision about property to be employed in raising money through alternative finance arrangements.

(2)

That includes provision—

(a)

about selection of property,

(b)

specifying, or about the specification of, property selected,

(c)

about dealings with property, and

(d)

about the holding of property.

(3)

Regulations under sub-paragraph (2)(c) or (d) may, in particular, make provision about the terms on which property is to be dealt with or held (including terms about payments).

(4)

That includes provision specifying, or about the specification of, terms or conditions.

(5)

In this paragraph “property” includes land.

(6)

In this paragraph a reference to a dealing with property includes—

(a)

a transfer of property, and

(b)

the creation or termination of a right, interest or estate in property (including a legal or equitable right, interest or estate).

Powers and duties

9

Regulations may confer powers, or impose duties, on any person (including the Treasury, the Secretary of State or another Minister of the Crown).

Liabilities

10

Regulations may make—

(a)

provision for expenditure and other liabilities to be incurred in connection with raising money through alternative finance arrangements, and

(b)

provision about how expenditure and other liabilities are to be met.

Money raised

11

(1)

Regulations may make provision about the treatment of money raised through alternative finance arrangements.

(2)

That includes provision specifying, or about the specification of, the account or fund into which money is to be paid.

Other legislation

12

(1)

Regulations may make modifications of any enactment.

(2)

Regulations may provide that available alternative finance arrangements are to be treated for the purposes of any enactment—

(a)

as an investment or security of a particular description, or

(b)

as an investment or security listed on a particular stock exchange.

(3)

In this paragraph—

available alternative finance arrangements” means alternative finance arrangements of a kind that, under regulations, are available for raising money;

enactment” means an enactment contained in an Act or other instrument;

modifications” includes amendments, repeals and revocations.

Things to be done otherwise than in regulations

13

(1)

The power under paragraph 3(2), 4(2), 7(3), 8(2)(b) or (4), or 11(2) to make provision about the specification of the matter mentioned there may, in particular, be exercised so as to provide for the Treasury or any other person to specify that matter otherwise than in regulations.

(2)

Regulations may provide for the Treasury or any other person to do anything else otherwise than in regulations.

14

(1)

This paragraph applies if regulations provide for a person to do something otherwise than in regulations.

(2)

Regulations may make provision about considerations that may be, must be, or must not be, taken into account by a person in connection with the doing of that thing.

Regulations to be made by SI

15

Regulations are to be made by statutory instrument.

Parliamentary scrutiny

16

(1)

A statutory instrument containing regulations that amend or repeal an enactment contained in an Act may not be made unless a draft has been laid before, and approved by resolution of, the House of Commons.

(2)

Subject to that, a statutory instrument containing regulations is subject to annulment in pursuance of a resolution of the House of Commons (unless a draft of the statutory instrument has been approved by resolution of the House of Commons).

Interpretation

17

(1)

In this Schedule a reference to a person other than the Treasury includes a reference to—

(a)

a body corporate established by or under regulations, and

(b)

a company formed under the Companies Acts.

(2)

For the purposes of sub-paragraph (1)(b), it does not matter—

(a)

whether a company is formed specially in connection with the raising of money through alternative finance arrangements,

(b)

whether a company is formed by the Treasury, or

(c)

whether a company is independent of the Treasury.